***************************************************
Author: Alan Dean Foster
Title: The False Mirror
Series: Book 2, The Damned
Series No:
Original copyright year: 1992
Genre: Science Fiction
Date of e-text: 04/29/2001
Prepared by:
Last Revised: / /
Revised by:
Version: 1.0
Comments: Please correct any errors you find in this e-text,
update the txt file’s version number and redistribute.
***************************************************
By Alan Dean Foster : Published by Ballantine Books:
ICERIGGER
MISSION TO MOULOKIN
THE DELUGE DRIVERS
FOR LOVE OF MOTHER‑NOT
THE TAR‑AIYM KRANG
ORPHAN STAR
THE END OF THE MATTER
FLINX IN FLUX
MID‑FLINX
BLOODHYPE
THE HOWLING STONES
Book One: A CALL TO ARMS
Book Two: THE FALSE MIRROR
Book Three: THE SPOILS OF WAR
THE BLACK HOLE CACHALOT
DARK STAR THE METROGNOME
and Other Stories
MIDWORLD NOR CRYSTALTEARS
SENTENCED TO PRISM SPLINTER OF THE
MIND'S EYE
STAR TREK@ LOGS ONE‑TEN VOYAGE TO THE
CITY OF THE DEAD
WITH FRIENDS LIKE THESE . . . ... WHO NEEDS ENEMIES?
MAD AMOS PARALLELITIES
PHYLOGENESIS DIRGE*
* forthcoming
Books published by The Ballantine Publishing Group
are available at quantity discounts on bulk purchases for premium, educational,
fund‑raising, and special sales use. For details, please call 1‑500‑733‑3000.
***************************************************
Sale of this book without a front cover may be unauthorized.
If
this book is coverless, it may have been reported to the
publisher
as "unsold or destroyed" and neither the author
I nor the publisher may have received payment for it
A
Del Rey® Book
Published
by Ballantine Books
Copyright © 1992 by Thranx, Inc.
All rights reserved under International and Pan-American
Copyright Conventions. Published in the United States by
Ballantine Books, a division of Random House, Inc., New
York, and simultaneously in Canada by Random House of
Canada
Limited, Toronto.
http://www.randomhouse.com
Library
of Congress Catalog Card Number: 91-73136
ISBN
0-345-37575-0
Printed
in Canada
First
Hardcover Edition: April 1992
First Mass Market Edition: June 1993
10 9 8 7
Cover by ?
***************************************************
For
Harry E. Fischer,
Able-bodied seaman and fellow voyager.
***************************************************
By the time he was twelve years old, Ranji knew he
liked to kill. His parents, naturally, encouraged him.
By the tinge of the Trials he had added four years
of experience, education, and maturity to a great deal of additional height,
weight, and strength. With these came confidence in his abilities, a
soft-spoken assurance much admired and valued by the rest of the
soldier-trainees in his age group.
There was no jealousy among them, that being an alien concept shared by the multitude of monsters whose ultimate goal was the destruction of civilization. Why would anyone be jealous of him? Were they not all striving for the sane end, seeking enthusiastically the same results? Achievement among friends was to be applauded, not envied. Who would not wish to have a soldier more skilled in the arts of combat than oneself fighting on his flank?
So each trainee strove to outdo his or her
competitors while simultaneously urging them to greater achievement.
Until the monsters arrived on the scene,
civilization had been advancing steadily across the cosmos, spreading
organization where hitherto had been only chaos. The pace had been slow but
gratifyingly inexorable. Occasional setbacks were accepted and taken in stride
until ground lost could, as it inevitably was, be regained.
'Then a thousand or so years ago the alliance of
monsters had been encountered, and everything had changed.
Many were unpleasant to contemplate physically as
well as intellectually, while others differed little in appearance from Ranji's
own kind. The worst were utterly unpredictable, savage and cunning beyond
belief, possessed of a feral intelligence that made them awful to encounter on
the battlefield.
With such as these in the vanguard, the alliance of
monsters had wreaked considerable havoc. But their recent advances had been
halted, the situation stabilized. Soon the civilized peoples would begin
pushing them back, rescuing as they advanced those poor, benighted populations
who had suffered for centuries under the monsters' dominion.
Ranji and his friends knew this to be inevitable.
Their own training both as soldiers and civilized citizens proved it so. No
matter how strong, the forces of chaos could never overcome and defeat those of
civilization. Not as long as determined fighters like Ranji-aar and his companions
continued to rise through the ranks to take their place at the forefront of
civilization's defense.
While there was no place in true society for jealousy, room was allowed for pardonable pride. In the fifteen-toseventeen-year-old cluster, he and his trainee squad repeatedly graded out at or near the top of their class. In fact, on all of Cossuut only one other squad regularly posted scores matching those of Ranji's. That was a group from Kizzmat Township, which lay just on the other side of the Massmari mountains, near the junction of the rivers Nerse and Joutoula. Near enough for a friendly rivalry of reputations to have been invented by the media. As graduation exercises progressed, both squads qualified easily for the planetary finals in their age group.
His mother and father took quiet pride in the
effortless qualification of their son and his friends, as they had in all his
achievements. Their delight was perhaps magnified somewhat by the fact that
neither of them had been a soldier. Ranji's father worked in a factory which
produced nanotronic components, while his mother was a teacher. Certainly her
tutoring abilities contributed to Ranji's success. as well as to that of his
younger brother, Saguio, and his baby sister, Cynsa.
Though jealousy was unknown among the trainees, it
was still a good thing that Ranji was not the best at every thing. His friend
Birachii-uun was stronger, Cossinza-iiv much faster. But in Ranji was found the
best combination of warrior attributes, a fact which was reflected in his individual
scores. Certainly he was the smartest of his companions.
Though only sixteen, he was often nominated to serve
as leader during important exercises. This was almost unheard of. Strategy
leaders were inevitably chosen from the ranks of seniors: seventeen- and
eighteen-year-olds. Fully conscious of such honors, he carried them well.
Coupled with exceptional organizational skills, his drive and determination
rarely disappointed those who placed their faith in him. His ability was a fact
his peers recognized and applauded.
He took pleasure in his accomplishments because he
saw how much they pleased his parents. To him, approbation meant little. He
was interested only in the job at hand, and in doing it well. For that reason
he looked forward eagerly to the coming graduation finals.
Until those were passed there was always the chance of failing, of not being awarded full soldier status. Even accomplished students like Ranji had been known to crack under the pressure. No opprobrium attached to such individuals. They simply served the war effort in some other fashion more suited to their actual skills.
Ranji was calm and ready. He had no intention of
failing. He could not fail. Not only did he want, like any healthy member of
his species, to be a soldier: he head to
be. He knew, sensed, felt, that he'd been born to it. To kill and chance being
killed in the defense of civilization. To fight the enemy for real, not merely
in simulations.
He always tried to approach the schooling
simulations in that state of mind, striving to convince himself that he was not
participating in simple tests but was actually engaging in combat against the monsters;
killing for real, destroying them one after another to protect his civilization,
his friends, his world.
Not to mention revenging his real mother and father.
Along with the parents of most of his friends, they
had perished when the monsters had invaded and destroyed Houcilat. He, his
brother, and his sister had been adopted and raised on Cossuut.
He had studied the history of the incident from an
early age, and the details had long ago burned themselves into his memory. How
the monsters had swept down without warning to ravage and obliterate every
structure, every vestige .of civilization in their lust for destruction. How
they had seared the planet's surface so badly that it could no longer support
higher life. And most meritoriously, how a few shuttles had darted gallantly
through the withering enemy fire to rescue what survivors they could, including
himself and his siblings, and carry them to the safety of waiting starships and
an eventual life of comparative peace on Cossuut.
His teachers had put off explaining his history to
him until he was old enough to comprehend, if not to understand. Only when he
asked for the information was it supplied. As he studied, and learned, he
developed the determination which had characterized him throughout his
adolescence.
He carried the horrific images of vanished Houcilat
with him into every test, every trial. They added resolve to his efforts,
enabling him to rise above even those of his mates, whose histories were no
less tragic than his own.
There were twenty-five of them, the same number as
in an actual commissioned attack squad. They had practiced together, trained
together since childhood, defeating one school
team after another. Now the culmination of those untiring efforts was at hand.
Some of his friends were apprehensive, others uncertain. As for Ranji, he
burned with anticipation.
Suddenly there were no more teams to defeat, no more
bedazzled opponents to overwhelm and intimidate. Ranji and his friends had
reached the summit of achievement: the planetary finals for their age cluster.
Of the hundreds of squads that had entered in hopes of being declared undisputed
strategic champions, only the team from Kizzmat Township stood in the way of
Ranji and his friends. Mysterious, enigmatic Kizzmat, from over the Massmari
mountains. Kizzmat, who in defeating one competitor after another had
demonstrated skills and swiftness equal to Ranji's own.
He was not worried. No matter their opponents'
record, Ranji and his friends never took them lightly. Such caution, along
with many other talents, was the legacy of their class-level supervisor.
Instructor Kouuad was shorter than he seemed to be.
Extensive combat experience and many honors gave him stature. Indeed, it was
unusual for so experienced a soldier to be assigned to teach younger age
levels. From the time they were old enough to understand such things, Ranji and
his companions were conscious of their great luck in having Kouuad as their
teacher.
Kouuad-iel-an's field career had been brought to an
early and untimely end by a severe injury which not even the best physicians
had been able to completely repair. It was rumored that he had suffered the
damage in hand-to-hand combat, with one of the most vicious of the monsters
themselves. His fellow teachers held him in some awe. The effect of his
reputation on his pupils was profound.
It was mentioned that access to such an
extraordinary instructor gave the trainees of Ciilpaan an unfair advantage over
the others in their age cluster. All such protests were disallowed by the
officials. It was the trainees who took the tests, not their teacher. As for
Ranji and his friends, they were more than willing to credit Kouuad for much of
their success.
"I warn you now," the venerable soldier
told them. one morning when they had assembled for practice. "Hitherto you
have run over, around, and through your opposition.
But this is no mere township exercise approaching.
These are your cluster's planetary finals. Career success can be guaranteed in
a few days. The trainees of Kizzmat know this. You need to ponder it as well.
"Remember that their record is as proud as
yours. They will not go down easily. I have seen recordings of them in action.
They are tougher and more resourceful than any group you have yet
confronted." Kouuad paced back and forth in front of the large-screen
simulator.
"Do not let your successes go to your heads.
Everything you have achieved in your lives to date is history. All your
accomplishments lie in the past. Only this forthcoming confrontation matters.
Everything else is dust. That is as true of real combat as of simulated.
`.Realize, too, that even as I speak thus to you,
they are receiving similar advice, they will be equally well prepared. "
He stopped and smiled proudly, squinting through aged eyes that had seen too
much death.
"You have met every challenge thrown at you.
All that remains is your cluster championship for all Cossuut. Bear in mind
that beyond this lies actual combat against the monsters. If you can advance
that day in your minds and approach this competition as if actual warfare were
involved, I think you will do well. Realize that you compete not for pride or
prize, but to preserve civilization."
Amusement suffused his expression.
"There is nothing wrong with winning a prize,
though. The record of your performance, both individually and as a group, will
become a matter of permanence. You want that record to be approving. -
"Don't worry, honored teacher," said an
enthusiastic Bielon. "We intend to win." Murmurs of agreement rose
from those around her.
"What about the Kizzmatis' methods?" came
a question from the back row.
" Yes," said another. "How do they
differ from what we have encountered so far? "
"Strategically we do not know what to expect,
" Kouuad explained. "Their tactics are unpredictable. That has been
one of their greatest strengths, as it has been one of yours. They are famous
improvisers, swift and decisive. Those of you who are squad leaders will
therefore accrue additional burdens in the field. The rest of you must obey
your leaders' instructions implicitly. There will be no time for animated,
lengthy tactical debate in this competition. Things will happen quickly. The
Kizzmati are fast." He stared hard at them. "I am counting on you to
be faster."
He was silent for a long moment. "These are the
planetary finals. There will be no opprobrium attached to losing, no disgrace
in defeat. To finish second among thousands is the grandest of
accomplishments."
"We're not coming in second!" someone
shouted from the back. Kouuad tilted his head slightly and smiled anew.
"You have already exceeded the achievements of
the majority of your contemporaries. Despite the knowledge that the greatest
prize of all is within your grasp, you should not forget that." He checked
his chronometer.
"I have nothing more to teach you. I suggest
you all go home and try to get a good night's sleep. Tomorrow morning we leave
for the competition site in the Joultasik foothills. "
A buzz of conversation rose from Ranji's friends.
Until then they had not been told where the competition was to be held. Secrecy
insured that neither side would be able to spy in advance on the competition
matrix and thus gain an unfair advantage over the competition.
Ranji was pleased. The Joultasik would provide variations
in terrain, and he usually performed best in multiple environments.
"What do you think our chances are?" he
asked his father that night. They sat at the dining table; mother and father at
opposite angles, Ranji, his brother, and his baby sister at the foot of the
triangle.
"You're gonna kill 'em, wipe 'em out, massacre
'em! Just like you have all the others! " Bereft of weaponry, Saguio waved
an eating utensil instead. Ranji gave his younger sibling a tolerant look.
"I want you to fight hard, but also to be
careful, dear. I don't want you or any of your friends to get hurt." His
mother was refilling their glasses with cold fruit juice. "The Kizzmatis'
reputation rivals your own. They're going to be hard to beat."
"I know, Mother."
"You'll kick the crap out of 'em. " Saguio
tried to speak and shovel food in at the same time.
Ranji regarded his sibling fondly. If anything,
Saguio was going to be a little taller, a little stronger than his older
brother. But not smarter. Testing had already been extensive enough to show
that. Still, he was going to be a credit to his family line.
Not his present family, Ranji reminded himself
darkly. The one that had been brutally extinguished by the monsters. They would
win tomorrow. All he had to do was picture the Kizzmatis as monsters.
"We will, Saguio."
His father gestured with his glass. "Beware
overconfidence, Ranji. Never chance overconfidence. Not because it might cost
you tomorrow, but because it will certainly cost you in combat. I don't care if
you win tomorrow or not. Just reaching the finals is a supreme achievement.
Where I don't want you to lose is on the real battlefield. "
"Don't worry, Father. I would never go into
battle overconfident against the monsters." He picked at his food.
"It's striking how close in appearance they are to us. Many times I've sat
studying the files and wondered if I was looking at my own kind, until the
differences became apparent. "
"Physical similarities mean nothing," his
mother said softly. She touched her forehead, then her chest. "Here and
here they are radically different from us, programmed to kill, to have no
mercy, to destroy civilization wherever they find it. They cannot build; they
can only destroy."
"That is why they must be stopped." His
father grunted. "If you and your friends can contribute to that, you will
gain the gratitude not only of your own kind but of all civilized beings
everywhere."
“Tear 'em up tomorrow, Ranj," his brother
growled.
"I'll do my best, Sagui.”
"You always have." His mother turned to
Cynsa, who had begun squealing and pounding on the table. Ranji's baby sister
was a terror. He smiled to himself. When she matured she'd probably be a
tougher fighter than either him or his brother. All three of them would do
their adoptive parents as well as their original lineage proud.
Trial finals first, he reminded himself. Graduation
before combat. He'd been pointing toward tomorrow ever since awareness had
claimed him. He and Birachii and Cossinza and all the rest. Now the ultimate
goal lay within their grasp. Only one more challenge to turn back, one more
group to demoralize and defeat. One more height to scale.
He dug into the remnants of his meal. He wasn't hungry,
but he knew he was going to need the fuel.
Everyone knew about the Finals Maze. If you were
training to be a soldier, you heard about it at least once a month all your
life. Externally its appearance differed little from similar competition mazes.
What might be found inside was a different matter entirely.
There would be partitions, of course. Sheer,
nonreflective, smooth-sided walls of impenetrable ceramic that would tower
over the tallest team member. These divided the Maze into corridors and arenas,
passageways and pits. Each partitioned region differed in size and shape from
those immediately tangent to it.
The Maze contained differing habitats, each of a
type undeclared in advance. Those attempting to pass through might encounter
burning desert, frozen tundra, steaming jungle, or temperate forest. The Maze
might be filled with water, fresh or salt. In addition to doing battle with
their competition, they would have to adapt instantly and successfully to
whatever local or alien biota had been programmed into the test field. A squad
could defeat its armed opponents only to be wiped out by a mock avalanche or
flood.
You took your people and advanced through the Maze
with the aim of wiping out your opponents or capturing their headquarters
position before they could reach yours. Goals were easy to envision but
difficult to achieve.
The sun was out and a few clouds marred the pale
blue sky. Not that it made any difference. Local conditions were meaningless
inside the Maze, which could generate its own internal weather. Ranji ignored
the bustle around him as he ran through a detailed final check of his own
equipment. The special competition pistol he carried would register mock
injury or death if its beam struck an opponent. In all respects except its
nonlethality it was identical to real military hardware.
Though access to the test area was limited, a fair
crowd was present. The Finals attracted interested observers and media
recorders from all over Cossuut. No family members were allowed to attend.
They would have to content themselves with watching the action at home, on
visual.
It was much remarked upon that the two final teams lived so close to one another yet had never before met in competition. A quirk of scheduling had started them competing in opposite directions, in effect forcing them to battle through a world's worth of opponents before the time came when they would be allowed to test one another.
As he continued with the. necessary preparations
Ranji regulated his breathing, trying to keep it slow and steady, using the
biocontrol techniques he had learned to moderate his adrenaline level. He
could see his companions doing likewise. No one said much. This was the last
opportunity any of them would have until the end of the competition to indulge
in private thoughts. Once in the Maze, their attention would become focused and
they would have to act and think in unison.
They were twenty-five to a team. Fourteen boys,
eleven girls. On the far side of the laze twenty-five young men and women from
Kizzmat Township were at this very moment going through the same motions and
thinking many of the same thoughts as Ranji and his friends. Afterward there
would be a celebration, a party, where victor and loser could meet in an
atmosphere of genuine conviviality and friendship. But before that happened
they would do their very best to mock-murder each other.
Ecozones occupied Ranji's thoughts. He hoped the
laze wouldn't be full of, say, arctic tundra. Tundra simplified things too
much. There was nowhere to hide, not enough variables. Dense jungle would suit
him better. Or maybe desiccated granite. Hopefully there wouldn't be a lot of
water. Ire didn't like, fighting wet.
Whatever they encountered, he and his friends were
prepared. They had trained in all conditions:
He was one of five squad leaders. Birachii was
another, Cossinza a third. Pretty blond Gjiann from the outskirts of the
township was a fourth, and Kohmaddu the fifth. Heavyset and slow, she
compensated for physical deficiencies with a brilliant mind and undisputed
courage and daring. No matter how tough the competition, her squad rarely suffered
a loss.
They were ready for the Kizzmatis, all right.
Victory lay on the far side of the laze. All they had to do was enter and take
it.
The pale glow of predawn heralded the incipient
appearance of Cossuut's sun as the five squads which comprised the Trials group
assembled for Kouuad's final briefing.
"I don't have to tell you how proud I am of
what you have already accomplished." Their squat instructor surveyed them
in fatherly fashion. "You have surpassed not only my expectations but also
those of your parents and learning mates.
"I am especially gratified by the performance
of those of you whose origins lie with devastated Houcilat. Your achievements
stand out all the more because of the additional burdens that were placed on
your maturation. Soon you will be given the opportunity to seek compensation.
Keep that in mind as you enter these Trials." He strove to make eye
contact with each of them in turn.
"May it go well for you," he said finally.
"Let each do their best. Whatever results, I will be there for you when
all is over."
They waited in respectful silence until their
instructor was out of earshot. It had been a typical Kouuad speech: terse, to
the point, and devoid of the flowery exhortations sometimes favored by other
instructors. No matter. They did not need fancy words. They had training. Ranji
knew they would not let the old warrior down.
A certain amount of pomp and ceremony was
unavoidable as they were marched to the south entrance of the Maze and
subjected to final Trial instructions. Somewhere to the north of their starting
position lay the Kizzmati headquarters and twenty-five highly trained opponents
as dedicated to winning as themselves. In between were the unscalable ceramic
walls that cut the Maze up into multiple twists and terrains.
Ranji paid little attention to the declamatory
Trials official. He and his companions knew the rules by heart. They were
assembled across from the Maze entrance, already planning and plotting, their
eyes alert for potential antagonists even though they knew that the Trials had
yet to begin.
Tense and expectant as he was, he knew this was no
more than a student exercise, a prelude to the real thing, to actual combat.
That would come soon enough. First there was this one final test to get past. A
last chance to accrue artificial glory.
As the official droned on, some of Ranji's friends
began running in place or performing restricted range-of-motion calisthenics to
stay loose. Cossinza's quintet was particularly agitated. As the fastest of the
five squads, they had been given the task of moving out first, striking quickly
for the enemy's headquarters in hopes of bypassing or catching any defenders
off guard. It was a risky strategy but one they had brought off before. For it
to work, Cossinza had to find the shortest path through the Maze on the initial
try.
The rest of the group would advance more
deliberately, cautious but still pressing the attack. Relentlessness was their
hallmark, a natural tendency which Kouuad had wisely encouraged. As far as
Ranji was concerned, emphasis on a strong defense was the sign of a battle
already half-lost.
No martial music, no blaring sirens announced the
start of the Trial Finals. An official simply gestured in their direction, and
a couple of squad leaders responded in kind. Led by Cossinza's people, the
young representatives of Ciilpaan entered the Maze.
Immediately they separated into their respective
squads. Moving forward at the run, Ranji's quintet passed through a ceramic
portal that opened onto gently rolling desert terrain. His heart sank even as
the temperature rose alarmingly. He didn't favor desert fighting. Automatically
he and his colleagues made appropriate adjustments to their equipment and
camouflage.
Small sandstone buttes glazed with the hue of
forgotten rust protruded from shifting dunes. To their right a small pool of
water collected at the end of a dry gully. Alien-looking, spiny plants were the
only visible life in the artificial landscape. Ranji reminded his friends to
avoid them. The Maze was as much their opponent as the Kizzmatis.
Squads Four and Two hugged opposite walls as all
three moved forward, Four taking up positions on slightly higher ground to
cover Two's advance while Ranji's people worked their way up the middle. While
it was unlikely that their opponents had come this far already, no one from
Ciilpaan was taking any chances. The Kizzmatis did not have a reputation as
sluggards.
Ranji's squad entered the gully. As they used its
cover and then that of a smaller tributary to work their way northward, he
wondered how Cossinza's people were faring. They had disappeared into a
different branch of the Maze. He glanced at his wrist communicator but did not
adjust it. Communication was allowed and possible only within individual Maze partitions.
Splitting up offered a testing group more attack options but reduced their
ability to coordinate strategy and defend their own headquarters. Radical
groups that divided into the maximum five squads were usually overwhelmed,
while those in which all twenty-five participants stayed together were almost
always outflanked.
It didn't matter to the Ciilpaans. They were
prepared for anything. Such tactical flexibility had been a major contributor
to their string of successes.
It took them most of the day to cross the desert
partition, advancing with a proven mix of care and speed. Evening produced the
first of several surprises.
Gleaming walls narrowed to form an intersection.
Whiteness glimmered beyond. Not the white of gypsum sand but of ice and snow.
Bitter cold leaked through the portal. Ranji's people were forced to make hasty
readjustments to their equipment.
The instant they darted through the opening
temperature and visibility fell sharply. Snow swirled around them, and the
clear desert sky of the partition just traversed was replaced by wind and
scudding dark clouds.
Ranji smiled to himself. There had been rumors. Not
only would they have to make their way through an infernally uncooperative
Maze, avoiding natural difficulties and traps along with their opponents, they
would also have to cope with environments that changed with each new partition.
That meant altering tactics accordingly. It was challenge enough to tax the
most resourceful.
Among other things, it meant they could not
predetermine how to allocate their supplies of food and water. Not when they
might have to go from spending days in .a comparatively benign temperate forest
to a week on a barren tundra. It complicated everything. Which was, of course,
the intention of the Maze's designers.
The next partition was dominated by higher, damper
desert. Dense succulent vegetation mimicked lusher climes while small creatures
scurried through the undergrowth. A sudden downpour caught them unaware,
leaving everyone drenched and considerably less buoyant than they had been the
previous morning.
And still no sign of the Kizzmatis.
Squad Four was out of range, having decided to
explore a different partition, but he was still in communication with Two.
Again he found himself wondering at Cossinza's progress, decrying the inability
of the communicators to penetrate the ceramic walls of the Maze.
Then the dry air was full of questing beams of
colored light and he was too busy shouting orders to worry about the
circumstances of distant colleagues.
As he scrambled frantically for the cover of a
cluster of thick-leaved bushes, he found himself marveling at the Kizzmatis'
speed. He'd repeatedly been told how fast they were, but it was still a shock
to encounter them this early in the game. From the volume of fire it was
impossible to tell how many of them there were. He guessed more than one full
squad but less than three. Lights flickered overhead, hunting responsive
targets.
A quick check revealed that his squad had suffered
two minor "injuries" and no "deaths." They were still at
full strength, which suggested either that the Kizzmatis were very bad shots or
else that they had also not expected to run into their opponents quite so soon.
A hasty call indicated that Birachii's Squad Two was in equally good shape. He
felt better.
"I think we've surprised them." Birachii
sounded confident over the communicator.
Ranji kept his lips close to the pickup. "It's
mutual. Don't try to move on 'em too fast. We want to be in position to support
each other.''
"Check. How many you estimate?"
"One to three squads."
"Affirmative. We're behind a little hill. I'll
try to work our way around to the west. They'll expect us to come over the
top."
"Don't count on it. Don't count on anything
with this lot. Watch yourselves."
Birachii responded with a rude noise, which left
Ranji and his companions grinning.
"They didn't waste any time."
Tourrnast-eir used,his perception lens to try and peer through the thick brush.
"By my ancestors, they're quick."
"Hopefully they're thinking the same of
us," said someone else. He held his pistol with both hands. "Maybe
they'll run right into our line of fire."
"Wonder if they've crossed more of the Maze
than we have?" mused a fourth member of the squad.
This was not how his people should be thinking.
"Nobody covers ground faster than the Ciilpaan," Ranji snapped. It
didn't matter that he did not believe it, only that his squad believed him.
"Check," murmured Tourtnast-eir. Crawling
on his belly, he began edging to his right. "Let's try and get behind them."
"No." Ranji put a restraining hand on his
friend's leg. "The first thing they'd expect in a situation like this is a
flanking move. They'll be setting up for it."
"Won't matter if we move faster than
them," observed Weennoon.
"If we don't and I'm right, then it's Trial end
for this squad. You ready to chance that, Weenn?" The older boy subsided,
thoughtful.
"What do you have in mind, Ranji?"
"Their reputation's as exalted as ours. I've
been thinking ever since we were told that they'd be our final opponents that
the same old strategies won't work. This isn't slow-stupid Goriiava from down
south. I've believed all along that we'd have to try something new to
prevail."
"Maybe so," Weenn agreed, "but we
can't sit here waiting for them to flank us, either."
"How about setting up and waiting for them back
at the last partition?" Tounnast looked hopeful. "The snow on the
other side might blind them temporarily."
"Good idea, except that we don't progress by
going backward. I don't want us to get into a protracted firefight. If that's
what they want then let them initiate it by retreating to a defensive position.
If they do that then we'll respond with countering strategies, but only
then."
Off to their left, Birachii's group continued to
exchange heavy fire with the enemy. That presented possibilities as well as
dangers. He relented enough to allow Tourmast to reconnoiter. His friend
returned moments later.
"I can see the fire off to the west. Still no
sign of anyone in front of us."
Ranji considered. "So all of them are engaging
Squad Two ... or else there's more of them ahead, waiting for us." He eyed
his companions. As usual, they were waiting for him to make the decisions.
"We're moving. Not flanking. Straight ahead and
in close-order single file. If they're all on Squad Two, then we'll be able to
slip in behind. If not, we offer as small a target as possible and try to sneak
past to the next partition. Kinjoww-uiv, you take tail position." The girl
nodded. She had wonderful reflexes and would hopefully insure that as they
advanced no enemy troops would slip up on their rear.
"No shooting unless you're positive you have a
target." Letting the sharp-sighted Tourmast lead the way, he rolled onto
his belly and followed his colleague into the brash.
His hands were protected by field gloves, but loose
gravel scraped his cheeks. He found himself wishing for the soft sands of the
desert environment they had traversed two partitions back. Participants,
naturally, had no control over the Trial environments. He reminded himself that
students who spent time complaining about the harshness of their surroundings
rarely did well in competition. It was, of course, irrelevant to actual combat.
Boots paused ahead of him. "I see them,"
Tourmast whispered back tersely. "Three ... no, four. They're not looking
this way. They're all firing at Squad Two's position."
"Got one, got one!" The soft yell of
triumph whispered over the communicator. If Birachii's people were indeed
occupying the full attention of the enemy and doing well in the bargain, then
it opened up all sorts of strategic possibilities for Ranji's squad. At the
least, it meant they were already in position to wipe out a good portion of
Squad Two's assailants, at little risk to themselves. They had been presented
with a wonderful opportunity.
Too wonderful.
If their reputation was legitimate, and there was no
reason to assume it was otherwise, it was hard to believe the Kizzmatis would
leave themselves open in such a fashion, much less throw all their resources
into an all-out attack on Birachii's well-defended hill position. Ranji made up
his mind quickly.
"Keep moving . . . and don't slow down!"
"But . . ."
He hurried to stifle dissent. "I know what
you're all thinking. That we should go to, Birachii's aid. But if they are trying
to flank him, he's in good position to hold them off; if they're not, then this
is our best chance to slip past and make progress through the Maze. That's our
ultimate objective. So let's move."
The battle of light pistols raged silently on their
left as they hurried forward, halting only when the next intersection became
visible. Ahead Ranji could make out vegetation denser than any they'd yet
encountered. Specific shapes were blurred by a dark curtain of rain. No
moisture fell in the partition they currently occupied. A light, cool breeze
blew in their faces while a glance behind showed only distant flashes of light.
"Up and left," he ordered curtly. Rising
in a body, they headed toward the portal in a crouching run.
Which sent them stumbling into the squad of startled
Kizzmatis who were busily occupied in excavating a defensive position just
inside the next intersection.
Clearly they expected that any advancing Ciilpaan
would be tied down by the firefight behind. So confident were they of having
enough time to finish their fortifications that they hadn't even posted a
guard. Tools fashioned from locally obtained Maze materials were thrown aside
as the Kizzmatis scrambled wildly for their weapons.
In the ensuing close-quarter gunfight Ranji
"lost" two of his own people before all five of the enemy could be
taken out. Now he found himself regarding the sullen Kizzmati squad leader as
he contemplated new options. The youth was even taller and more muscular than
Ranji himself.
"You're good." His opponent spoke
reluctantly as he sat on the slab of rock where he'd been ' 'killed.''
"Real good.'' He grinned unpleasantly, displaying a true warrior's smile.
"But it won't matter. The outcome will be the same."
As if on cue, Ranji's communicator suddenly filled
the air with shouts and curses. "Birachii!" Ranji yelled into the
pickup. "What's happening? What's going on?"
His friend's voice was panicky. "Behind us!
They were behind us all the time. They were behind us before the shooting
started! They just wanted to find out how many of us there were before they
attacked. They . . . !"
Communications ceased. "Birachii!" Ranji
said tightly. "Birachii, report. Anyone from Squad Two, report."
Silence taunted him.
The enemy squad leader looked smug. "Taken out.
All of 'em."
Slowly Ranji let his wrist communicator drop, gazed
narrowly at his defeated opponent. "We're even, then. Your people have
taken Birachii's squad; we've taken yours."
"At the cost of forty percent of your
strength," the squad leader reminded him, alluding to the pair of Ranji's
companions who'd received fatal "hits" during the unexpected
confrontation.
"You don't know how many of your own went down
in the fight with Birachii's squad. Our strength in this part of the Maze could
still be equal."
"I doubt it.'' The Kizzmati leader and his
companions exchanged amused glances. "You see, we're all here." He
nodded toward the now distant end of the partition.
"What are you talking about?" Tourmast
looked uneasy.
"All twenty-five of us. All five squads. We
just blasted through the main entrance and kept moving as fast as we could,
figuring you'd split up to try different passages. That way we'd be in shape to
overwhelm any opposition."
Tourmast was shaking his head. "That's old,
outmoded strategy. Nobody fights like that anymore. It's too predictable, too
easy to defend against."
The squad leader's grin widened. "Sure is.
That's why we figured it'd be the last thing you'd be expecting."
"A concerted defense could have pinned you down
here long enough for one of our squads to take your headquarters," Ranji
pointed out.
His opponent nodded. "Sure could. But it
hasn't, and now it won't. Your squad can't do a damn thing now. All our
remaining forces are between you and your headquarters. You're finished."
"In real combat a single burst could have wiped
out your entire group,'' Tourmast observed angrily.
"This isn't real combat. Neither side has
access to heavy weapons. All we're given are these." He held up his light
pistol, which had automatically deactivated the instant its owner had suffered
his fatal "injury." "You modify tactics to adapt to local
conditions." He turned his attention back to Ranji.
"I'm estimating from our speed of advance that
the body of our group is more than halfway to your headquarters, with nothing
between them that is capable of stopping them. You're fast. . . faster than any
group we've ever fought. But it won't do you any good. Because the rest of your
people are advancing in expectation of encountering resistance, and there isn't
any. We're all here, in one place."
"That means your headquarters is completely
undefended," Ranji observed.
"Unless I'm lying to you." His opponent
was clearly enjoying himself. "Are you going to base strategy on the words
of a 'dead' opponent? Not that it matters. I was watching your face when I made
my guess. We are more than halfway to your headquarters. Which means that
you're less than halfway to ours. There's no way you can get there first.
"If you've any sense at all you'll have left
one squad behind to defend. There'll be at least ten to fifteen of us
attacking. The outcome's inevitable. Why not register your surrender now?"
The Kizzmati stretched. "The sooner we march out of here and off Trial
rations, the more pleasant it'll be for all of us."
"Not a chance," Tourmast growled.
Their opponent looked disappointed. "Oh, well.
Prolong it if you must."
Ranji turned to leave, hesitated. "How can you
be so sure your group will get to our headquarters before any of our people can
reach yours? Maybe this isn't the shortest route through the Maze. Maybe your
other squads will wander around for days in search of the right
intersection."
The squad leader put his hands behind his head,
leaned back. "Oh, this is the shortest route, all right. You see, six days
ago we were finally able to bribe the member of the Trials committee we'd been
in contact with to provide us with a map." A stunned Ranji noted that this
confession was uttered without a hint of embarrassment or regret.
"You can't do that. It will invalidate the
results!"
"Think so? The Trials are supposed to simulate
real combat conditions. That means you win by any means possible short of
inflicting actual physical injury on your opponents. There's nothing in the
rules against bribery. At worst we'll have to repeat the Finals in a new Maze.
Myself, I think we'll gain merit for innovation.
"The teachers aren't interested in methodology.
Their sole concern is turning out winners, survivors. For all you and I know,
this is the standard tactic previous Finals winners have employed."
Ranji walked off to confer with his two surviving
companions.
"He can't be right . . . can he?" Weenn
looked dazed. "Knowing the route through the Maze would give them an
unbeatable advantage."
"No wonder they felt safe in keeping their
whole strength together," Tourmast muttered. "Surely the judges won't
uphold this."
"Unless the Kizzmati is right and they're only
interested in who wins, and not by what means." Weenn looked less than
confident.
"I don't know." Ranji was thinking
furiously. "If we could get in touch with Squads One and Five we could
bring them into the fight, but it would mean searching parallel partitions. We
don't have near enough time. With Birachii's people out of the way they'll be
on our headquarters before we could catch up with them." His gaze rose.
"If they can use unconventional tactics, so can
we."
"What do you mean?" Weenn asked.
"Everybody has their cutter?" His
companions checked their service belts for the tool, which was intended to help
them in downing and shaping vegetation for defensive fortifications and
shelter.
"We're going on, into the next partition. And
watch yourselves. Like their squad leader said, he might've been lying."
They left their smug opponents behind. They would be
restricted to the place where they had been removed from the competition, their
weapons and instrumentation deactivated.
"If there are fifteen to twenty of them
operating together and they know exactly where they're going, why are we
wasting our time?" Tourmast struck angrily at a protruding branch.
"We're going to have to rely on the determination of the judges.''
"I'm not relying on anybody but myself,"
Ranji shot back.
The next partition was filled with cool, dry
deciduous forest. While his companions kept puzzled watch, Ranji circled trees
until he found what he wanted.
"Get out your cutters," he ordered, making
three marks on the nearest trunk with his own. "Cut here, and here.
Everybody pick a side."
"What's the point of building a barrier?"
Weenn demanded to know even as he set to work.
"We're not making a barrier." Smoke rose
from the trunk. ' 'Just do as I say.''
Working in unison, they soon had the tree felled.
Ranji pocketed his cutter and started climbing. Tourmast gaped at him.
"You can't do that, Ranj. This is cheating,
too."
His squad leader looked down at him. "If
they're going to invalidate this Trial, it might as well be with equanimity.
Are you coming or not?''
Tourmast and Weenn exchanged a glance. Then Weenn
started up the slanting trunk. His companion followed.
Strange to be standing atop a partition wall. It was
barely as wide as his boot, Ranji noted. Just wide enough to walk . . .
provided you put one foot carefully in front of the other, had no fear of
heights and superb balance.
Below and to his right lay the partition of
deciduous forest. Behind them haze rose from the temperate desert until it was
blocked by the artificial atmospheric inversion layer of the Maze. His left
hand hung over wave-tossed water thick with the smell of salt: an oceanic
environment. Lucky they hadn't chosen to enter that one. If he fell he wanted
to make sure it was to his right. Better bruises and broken bones than
immersion.
Demonstrating their unsurpassed training to the
full, the three Ciilpaanians headed north, running along the crest of the
narrow wall.
It all looked so easy, so simple from up here, Ranji
reflected as he ran. Habitats which on the ground would have blocked or
hindered their progress slipped rapidly past.
Once, they observed figures slogging through a low,
boggy environment, advancing in a familiar diamond pattern. He recognized
Gjiann's squad and wanted to call out to her but did not, knowing she could not
hear him. Each partition was sealed for sound as well as ecology, to prevent
groups in neighboring partitions from communicating with one another by the
simple means of shouting over the barriers. He ran on.
The number of walls decreased as they progressed,
until Ranji ordered a slowdown above a partition filled from one side to the
other with a field of tall golden grain. A compact complex of monitoring
instrumentation, the Kizzmati headquarters lay at its far end. They had reached
the last partition, the north end of the Maze. The unit's internal lights were
on, indicating that the distant Ciilpaan headquarters continued to function. A
Kizzmati banner fluttered overhead.
Beyond the headquarters Ranji thought he could make
out a couple of senior referees, standing in the shade and chatting idly. They
did not see the three Ciilpaanians who crouched atop the wall for the simple
reason that there was no reason for them to look up.
"The Kizzmati didn't lie," Tourmast
murmured. "I don't see any defenders."
"That doesn't mean they didn't install some
kind of defense." Ranji pointed.
Stretching in a sweeping curve from one wall to the
other immediately in front of the headquarters instrumentation was an
exquisitely camouflaged ditch. Ranji admired the workmanship. At ground level
it would be quite invisible. An attacker getting this far and seeing no
defenders in sight would likely rush across the last open space to touch the
switch on the beacon mast and proclaim victory, only to stumble into the
wonderfully well-concealed trap. The entire Kizzmati team must have set to work
in an orgy of excavation the instant the Trial had begun, moving out only after
it had been completed. They'd had the time to install such a complex defense
only because they'd known from the beginning the shortest path through the
Maze.
Though you couldn't design something whose intent
was to physically injure an opponent, he suspected that anyone falling into the
ditch would not find it a simple matter to climb out.
"See," Weenn was saying as he pointed.
"It goes all the way from one wall to the other, and it's too wide to
jump. Cozzinza's squad could have made it all this way only to be trapped or
stopped at the last minute."
Ranji was nodding to himself as he studied the
layout. "No trees in this partition; only grains. Nothing to build a
bridge with. No wonder their squad leader was so confident. They were sure they
had an unstoppable offense and an impregnable defense."
Weenn shook his head slowly. "No way we could
have won with normal tactics."
"So we'll use abnormal ones."
Tourmast was frowning. "Not only is there
nothing to build a bridge with here, there're no trees to climb, either. How do
we get down?"
"Quickly." Ranji squinted south through
Maze haze. Having long since overwhelmed Birachii's squad, the Kizzmatis were
doubtless moving fast toward the Ciilpaani headquarters.
The internal walls of the Maze were perfectly
smooth, perfectly vertical. An insect could not find a purchase on that slick
surface.
Ranji rose from his crouch to regard his companions.
"Weenn, cross around. I'm going to have the two of you drop me."
"I dunno, Ranji." Tourmast was estimating
the height of the drop. "It won't do us any good if you break both
legs."
"It won't do us any good to squat up here
wondering, either.'' Turning, he knelt and gripped the edge of the wall as best
he could with both hands, then lowered himself over the edge.
His companions lay down on their stomachs and
pressed their thighs and knees against the opposite side of the wall. Each took
one of Ranji's wrists in their hands and lowered him another half body length
toward the waving, beckoning grain below. It was at that moment that one of the
referees spotted them. Ranji decided that the look on his face was worth
everything it had taken to get to this point, even if he and his friends were
eventually disqualified.
Shutting his eyes, he ran through a series of
relaxation exercises. When he was through there was nothing more to be done but
to do it. ' 'Okay,'' he whispered brusquely. The restraining pressure on his
wrists vanished.
It seemed a million minutes to the ground. He flexed
his knees as he struck, but the impact was still considerable. The shock ran
from his feet all the way up to his neck and he crumpled onto his right side.
When he tried to stand, the shooting pain that
blasted through his left leg brought him back to the ground. Whether it was broken
or simply badly twisted he didn't know. He crawled for a while, then managed to
straighten by using the unyielding wall as a brace against his back. Limping
severely, pain dulling his vision, he stumbled toward the Kizzmati headquarters
beacon.
His friends had dropped him behind the defensive
ditch, so the only thing that was stopping him from flipping the switch on the
beacon was the pain that threatened to overwhelm his senses. He knew Tourmast
and Weenn must be cheering him on, though he couldn't hear them. They were
above the inversion layer.
Having stopped at the Maze entrance, the two senior
referees stared openmouthed at the advancing limping figure. Ranji could hear
people running toward the site, though the pain made it impossible for him to
identify individual shapes. There were a few cheers, but mostly the air was
dense with stunned silence.
He felt himself weaving and swaying and fought to
stay erect and keep moving through the pain. It was entirely up to him, he
knew. Neither Weenn nor Tourmast could take such a fall.
He wondered how close the Kizzrnatis were to his own
headquarters as he threw himself forward to slam an open palm against the
beacon switch. He was very careful to hit it the first time because he sensed
through fading thoughts that he would not be able to muster enough strength or
control for a second try.
As it turned out, they beat the Kizzmatis by less
than four minutes.
To say that the outcome of that particular Finals
Trial was controversial was to say that the monsters were somewhat incorrect in
their opposition to the tenets of civilized society. Debate roiled the general
population as well as the Trials committee for days thereafter.
In the end it was decided that since the rules
barred only physical violence from the competition, everything else must be
allowed. And since the Kizzmatis had been the first to utilize what the
committee referred to euphemistically as "unorthodox tactics," they
could hardly object to the Ciilpaanians responding in similar fashion.
Ranji's group was declared winner.
The decision produced no animosity among the losers.
There was no shame in finishing second in a worldwide contest, and after all,
their ultimate aim, the advance of civilization and the conversion or defeat of
the monsters, remained the same. The Kizzmati group leader went out of his way
to congratulate Ranji on his inspired leadership.
"We were lucky," Ranji told him.
"Extremely lucky. I could just as easily have crippled myself."
"In the end we underestimated you," the
Kizzmati replied. "We were convinced we had devised a plan that could not
fail. I now believe that plans of that nature are inevitably doomed to
failure."
They sat together in a young persons' eating
establishment, sharing strategies and stories as though both groups had won,
which indeed they had.
"Wouldn't you have been confident? We had
overwhelming firepower, a map of the Maxe, and a solid defensive scheme."
"I sure would." Ranji was gracious in
victory.
The Kizzmati leader sipped from a cup. "The one
thing we didn't count on was an opponent capable of thinking more perverted
than ours." He grinned and they all laughed softly together.
Except for the ever somber Weenn. "I wonder
what fighting the monsters will be like?"
"It doesn't matter." The last Trial over,
Ranji was brimming with confidence and self-esteem. "We will defeat them
no matter what stratagems they may choose to employ.''
"They win a lot of battles." The Kizzmati
second-in-command gazed into his drink. "It's said that in one-on-one combat
they can't be beaten."
"They've never met anything like us,"
Tourmast shot back. "Our great Kouuad says that we're as good as them,
maybe better, and he should know. He fought them for years."
"I'm sure we'll get the chance to find
out," Ranji murmured.
"Myself, I can't wait." Tourmast made a
melodramatic show of raising his cup. Comrades together now, Kizzmati and
Ciilpaani toasted their future.
The future arrived sooner than they expected,
immediately following their official graduation the following year to warrior
rank, and in a manner that surprised them all.
Those who had achieved high scores expected to be
promoted to officer status and given command of fighting units. Instead, the
top hundred achievers were combined into a unique fast-attack group, to be
utilized in special situations. Disappointment was minimal, as it meant that
childhood friends would stay together instead of being spread across the
cosmos.
Despite all his training, despite years of
anticipation, Ranji was surprised to discover how upset he was at the prospect
of leaving Cossuut.
They were a year older. Faster, stronger, smarter,
he and his friends were confident of their ability to handle anything the
monsters could send against them. They were all impatient to test their skills
in real combat.
Their destination was a planet called Koba, a
lightly populated world where recently settled monsters had established a
foothold against the forces of civilization. In such conditions a small,
irresistible force could hopefully achieve results all out of proportion to its
size.
They had real weapons now, explosive and energy
both. No more training pistols. No more simulations and partitions and mazes.
No more toys. Ranji had been appointed second-in-command after the Kizzmati
veteran Soratii-eev, perhaps because of the difference in their ages. Ranji did
not feel in the least slighted. Soratii was a clever and accomplished
commander, and it would be an honor to serve under him.
If the new soldiers were intimidated by anything, it
was the confidence far more senior soldiers placed in their prospects.
As they prepared for emergence from Underspace and
the subsequent rapid drop to Koba's contested surface, Ranji found he was
surprisingly calm. Regardless of what they might face on the surface below he
had unlimited confidence in his colleagues, no matter whether they hailed from
Ciilpaan, Kizzmat, or elsewhere on Cossuut. Together they constituted a
cohesive fighting unit the likes of which civilization had never seen before.
Furthermore, they were motivated by something few
others possessed: a desire, a need, for revenge.
Ranji wasn't thinking of that as the Underspace
emergence warning sounded. He was thinking of his parents; of his younger
brother Saguio who was now undergoing the same testing Ranji had passed in such
accomplished fashion. Of his little sister Cynsa, and of his birth parents.
Others might fight to protect their friends, to defend the cause of
civilization, but he would fight so that he could return to those he loved.
Koba was a blessedly cool world distinguished by
rolling grassy plains and high, heavily treed plateaus. Though diverse in
content, the local ecosystem was unspectacular, dominated by the dense
evergreen forests of the plateaus. Animal life tended to frequent the green
canopy or burrow underground. Large predators were unknown, possibly due to the
absence of ground cover in the form of bushes and high grasses in which prey
animals could hide and thrive. There was no native intelligent species.
A hundred years before, the enemy had placed a
number of scientific installations on Koba. They'd held it ever since.
Large-scale colonization had commenced only recently. It was the kind of
expansion civilized beings had to contest. The enemy had resisted, thus far
successfully, expanding their local production of domestic food animals and
grains. They had also begun to exploit Koba's mineral deposits. The place was
in danger of becoming a significant contributor to the war effort. Not a
particularly rich world, but one whose resources were definitely worth denying
to the spreading forces of evil.
Major forces could not be spared to attack Koba, but
it was decided that one or two quick surgical strikes might render the enemy's
position there less than tenable. While substantial, planetary defenses were
widely dispersed. It would take time to bring them to bear on an assault.
This was confirmed by the fact that Ranji's group
was able to make the drop to the surface without incident and with all their
equipment intact. Nor were they forced to deal with immediate opposition.
Perhaps the locals were confused by the size of the invasion, on the face of it
far too small to present any real threat. They would be even more unsettled by
the movements of Ranji's group, which in a radical departure from traditional
strategy had been empowered to operate independent of the rest of the landing
force.
The new, high-performance air-repulsion skids the
attackers brought for surface travel were virtually noiseless. Their minimal
heat signature allowed the strike force to advance rapidly under cover of
night. While other groups engaged local defenses, Ranji's simply raced out over
the flat plains, bypassing enemy positions on several occasions.
They were heading for the high country, their target
the communications and information center for the most heavily populated
portion of the planet. Despite the speed of their advance there was some
question as to whether they would even get into position to attack. Within a
day of their touchdown, enemy opposition had stiffened to the point of wiping
out several assault groups, and Command was forced to consider calling a quick
retreat off-world. Fortunately, enough senior officers demurred. But if they
expected to remain on Koba, they would have to show some progress.
Ranji's group continued to avoid detection by the
enemy. In that respect they had already proved their worth.
The communications complex was located on the
outskirts of the major population center, which itself was strung out along the
edge of one of the numerous high plateaus which dominated Koban topography. The
plateau sloped down to the plains. It was from there that Ranji's group
intended to make their final push.
Instead of landing and attacking atop the plateau as
the enemy would expect, Soratii and his advisors had decided to cross the plain
below and work their way up a shallow canyon, following a cascading river
system. Only when they had begun to ascend was their presence finally detected
and the alarm passed to the city's defenders.
Ranji's group threw back one counterattack after
another as they continued to move upslope, traveling in twos and threes to
further confuse an already badly rattled enemy. They advanced on both sides of
the white-water cataract, whose noise and constant motion further served to
mask their approach. Light camouflage armor blocked individual heat signatures,
so that the defenders were forced to try and pinpoint each oncoming soldier
visually.
Fighting became fragmented as the terrain grew
steeper and more difficult, with squads unable to effectively support one
another. As geology was neutral in any conflict, the enemy was forced to deal
with the same problem. This led to a chaotic battlefield situation, especially
at night. Ranji's people throve in the resulting confusion.
Flashes of light from energy weapons and continual
explosions filled his senses as he ascended. They soon found themselves in
among the large trees and dense tracts of forest which clung to the upper
slopes, rendering fighting even more difficult. Thanks to the presence of
running water they were able to travel lighter than usual. Even in an era of
advanced instrumentation and sophisticated weaponry, the absence of clean water
could still be more debilitating to troops on the move than heavy explosives.
Ranji was thankful for the presence of the dense
vegetation, which screened them from aerial surveillance. With luck and
camouflage suits, they would be on top of the communications complex before the
enemy knew what hit them. If they could destroy that it would not only panic
the local population, it would put a considerable crimp in the enemy's efforts
to coordinate a planetary defense. An intense firefight broke out off to his
immediate left, on the far side of the river. They were close enough to the run
of the plateau now to see the first of many communications antennae protruding
into the night sky, though the structures from which they sprouted were still
concealed by slope and trees. Closed-beam communicators on both sides were
frenetic with shouted orders and reports.
Ignoring the difficulties of his compatriots on the
other side of the cascade, Ranji led his own group onward.
They had just crested the rim when they ran into the
enemy squad, advancing cautiously through deepening twilight. The defenders
were in the process of crossing the river, intent on joining what they
perceived to be the major engagement taking place just below.
Ranji waited until the enemy troops were halfway
across before giving the order for his people to open fire from the cover of
rocks and trees. That their presence was still unsuspected was confirmed by the
surprise among the defenders as they were attacked. Those caught out in
midstream had nowhere to run, though from Ranji's standpoint too many escaped.
Most went down, either on the rocks or in the water itself. Limp and lifeless,
one body after another was lifted by the current and carried downstream. The
survivors scattered back into the forest.
It offered Ranji his first opportunity to examine
the monsters at close range.
Only a few of the corpses were wearing armor or
camouflage, further proof that the assault had caught the defenders of the
communications complex unaware. Given its strategic importance, Ranji was
surprised. Overconfidence, or simply a lack of adequate preparation? Clearly
they hadn't expected any of the invaders to come this far this fast.
Tourmast knelt and rolled one of the bodies over.
Only the upper half was armored. A gaping hole showed darkly in the lower
portion of the abdomen. Though Ranji had studied innumerable images of the
monsters, it was still something of a shock to view one close up.
Just as in the tridimensional imagery he'd been
exposed to as a student, the similarities were impressive. There was little
enough to differentiate him from the body on the ground. Physically, that is,
he reminded himself. Mentally and morally the gulf between himself and the
creature that lay dead in the dirt was vast.
"We don't want to linger here," he
muttered uncomfortably. "Let's keep moving." Tourmast grunted and
rose as Ranji checked in with the rest of his group via communicator.
The squads on the other side of the river had been
hurt, but had quickly beaten back the counterattack and regrouped. They were
moving upslope again and were not far from Ranji's present advanced position.
The single enemy slider which had come a-hunting with heavy weapons had been
shot down. As they had hoped, the majority of the enemy's ordnance was occupied
farther south, engaging larger elements of the invasion. Their opposition was
lightly armed.
They expected to encounter heavier resistance as
they spread out and raced toward the target, and were pleasantly surprised to
find little in the way of opposition. Brushing that aside, they entered the
complex and methodically took it apart. The communications personnel had fled
just ahead of them. After every piece of instrumentation had been melted or
otherwise dismantled, the buildings themselves were reduced to ashes. Ranji
regarded his group's handiwork proudly. It would be a long, long time before
anyone dispatched so much as a friendly greeting from this location.
They departed just as enemy reinforcements began to
arrive from the nearby city, leaving them to contemplate the total destruction
of the communications complex as well as the absence of its perpetrators, who
were already retreating rapidly under cover of night.
Halfway down, the slope leveled off enough for them
to use their skids. Now it would be difficult if not impossible for the enemy
to catch them, Ranji thought with satisfaction. Rather than being tired, he
found that he was eager to embark on the next operation. His colleagues and
friends shared his feelings.
The following morning the enemy did its best to cut
them off. Maybe they expected the ravagers of the communications complex to be
exhausted from the previous night's activities. Ranji's group smashed through
them, not even deigning to take up a defensive posture and wait for assistance.
An enemy female slung her slider alongside, firing
as she did so. He evaded, whirled, and came back atop her. As he shot her at
close range it occurred to him that she was rather pretty, for a monster. There
was, however, nothing to love in the brief glimpse he had of her distorted,
unnaturally gaunt face. Trailing smoke and flame, her craft slammed into the
dry plain below.
A heavier attack came later that evening. This time
large aircraft were involved. We really upset them, Ranji mused as he glanced
backward and smiled. The enemy was furiously engaged in demolishing the decoy
vehicles his group had left behind for just such a purpose.
By the next morning the numerous skids and their
triumphant operators were streaking unopposed across rolling plains, well
beyond range of attack.
Their initial mission had been a complete success.
In addition, the group had sustained minimal casualties, remarkable considering
the riskiness of the operation and the fact that monsters had been prominent in
the defense of the complex.
Ranji took time to visit the wounded. All were in
good spirits, not in the least depressed by their injuries. Among the special
assault group's personnel, only two had been lost. All of the injured had been
successfully evacuated and were intact enough to be medically restored. It was
an unprecedented accomplishment.
The destruction of the facility had seriously
complicated the Kobans' defense. Non-Cossuutian Ashregan and Crigolit forces
which had been pushed back used the resultant confusion for a breathing spell,
and in two instances were actually able to resume their advance.
Though Ranji and his friends were anxious to return
to combat, they were informed by their superiors that they were too valuable to
risk so soon in another similar operation. Instead, to their considerable
disappointment, they were ordered off-world.
"You've earned your reward," a senior
officer informed him as they chatted on board the transport ship. It hovered
safely in Underspace, in orbit around Koba's single moon.
"But righting on Koba continues," Ranji
protested. "We can help. We can ..."
"You did what you were brought here to
do," the officer informed him brusquely. Then she added, more gently,
"I myself do not know why you were evacuated. I
personally think your mere presence below would be a considerable asset to our
efforts. Everyone knows of your group's accomplishments. But it is not for me
to question. My orders were to see your people taken safely off-planet. Command
is not always generous with explanations."
"What now?" Disappointed but resigned,
Ranji leaned back in the lounge and crossed his legs.
"I believe you are to be singularly
honored," the officer informed him.
"How can anyone be honored for one
operation?" Tourmast fingered the skintight attached to his forehead,
where he'd been grazed by an enemy energy bolt. Skin and bone were healing
nicely, Ranji noticed. "Especially when the battle has yet to be won.''
"It is not for me to say." As the officer
spoke she idly caressed the knuckles of her left hand.
"And when is this 'singular honor' to be
bestowed?" Tourmast muttered.
"Soon after your return home, I believe."
Noting their reaction, she added, "I see that you have not yet been
informed. Allow me the privilege. I am informed that the Teachers intend to
commend you personally.''
Weenn spoke up from nearby. "Ah. That will be
real joy for Kouuad."
"No." The officer looked at him. "Not
your teacher. The Teachers."
Ranji tried to prepare himself mentally as the
transport sped through Underspace toward Cossuut. His emotions were mixed.
While he was delighted at the prospect of seeing his family again, as a soldier
he regretted leaving Koba unsecured. He had not expected his initial combat
experience to be so ... episodic. Perhaps next time they would be allowed to
stay and fight until the world being contested had been won for civilization.
There were worse fates, though, than being plucked
from the field of battle to suffer exaltation and honor.
Not only was the Cossuutian media saturated with the
news of their accomplishments, their arrival was recorded for rebroadcast throughout
the civilized worlds. The military made a great show of it, presenting the
heroes of Koba to the public one by one in the capital city's largest outdoor
amphitheater. The ceremony seemed to go on forever, and the heroic fighters
soon found themselves dreadfully bored.
Officialdom saved the leaders of the attack, the
group officers, for last, developing the presentation as efficiently as if
they'd been orchestrating a piece of music. Soratii, Ranji, Tourmast, and the
others dutifully took their respective turns at the podium.
What most impressed Ranji when his turn came was not
the surging crowd, the plethora of recording devices, or even the knowledge
that his parents and siblings were in the front row of the audience. It was his
sudden proximity to two of the Teachers.
Warmth and affection poured from them to envelop not
only those on the brightly decorated stage but all who were fortunate enough to
be in their immediate vicinity. As had those who'd preceded him, Ranji
approached and extended a hand. The four manipulative digits at the end of one
tentacle opened like a flower, then closed with the silky softness of shy
petals around his closed fist. A warm rush of admiration and thanks filled his
mind.
How wonderful it was, he thought, to have achieved
his life's dream. To be honored for doing what he would gladly have done in
anonymity. To be alive, and healthy, and assisting the advance of civilization.
The Amplitur's digits withdrew. Mentally and emotionally elated, Ranji pivoted
smartly and returned to his place on the dais.
One-who-Surrounds was feeling much wellness. The
local weather was amenable, and the excitement and reverence their visit had
generated among the Ashregan was gratifying to behold. Though they did not know
it, the proceedings honoring the special fighters was another graduation
ceremony of sorts. It signified the official success of the Project, in which
the Amplitur had invested a substantial amount of time and effort. It was a
great day for the Purpose.
Though the weather was pleasant, One-who-Surrounds
was still less than optimally comfortable. The Ashregan preferred drier worlds
than the Amplitur, and it was something of a sacrifice for One-who-Surrounds
and its companion to remain exposed to the desiccating air for such a long
period. But could they have done any less to honor the fruits of the Project?
It had been a long time aborning, and had involved
the most intense efforts of the Amplitur and their Ashregan allies. To see
those hopes so powerfully fulfilled, and ahead of schedule, was more than
sufficient justification for the somewhat uncomfortable visit. When one served
the Purpose with one's whole being, one could not fuss at inconsequentials such
as temperature and humidity.
It was touching to observe the pleasure their mere
presence induced in their allies. One-who-Surrounds was curious to see how the
special fighters would react, but it was no different for them. There was the
same receptivity, the same calm acceptance and mutual admiration one would find
among any ordinary Ashregan.
Except that this group was not ordinary. They had
proven that already, on Koba, succeeding beyond the wildest hopes of the
Project's supervisors. The fighting abilities and unique characteristics which
they had been bred for would be passed on to succeeding generations, to the
betterment of the Purpose. Another carefully chosen field test or two and the
survivors would be retired with honors, encouraged to produce as many offspring
as possible. They would want to continue fighting, of course, since that was
what they had been trained to do, but in the end all would accept their
retirement gracefully. The Amplitur would suggest that they do so.
They did not mention any of this to the individuals
they honored. It would be impolitic to refer to members of an allied species as
breeding stock, just as it would have been counterproductive to inform them
that certain of the specialized characteristics they would pass on to their
offspring were not natural in origin but rather the results of unsurpassed
Amplitur efforts at nanobioengineering.
Even as One-who-Surrounds congratulated the heroes
of Koba, efforts continued to refine and expand the scope of the work which had
produced them. Success could always be improved upon. The scientists of the
obstructionist Weave did not rest in their efforts to thwart the Purpose. Those
who promulgated its tenets could do no less.
One-who-Surrounds looked forward to the results of
the next test, in which the special fighters would be asked to confront fully
operational Human forces. If they could de.-feat not merely Massood or
Chirinaldo but Human soldiers in direct combat, then the triumph of the Project
would be assured. The effect on Weave morale would be devastating.
Turning to face the audience, One-who-Surrounds
raised both tentacles, spreading all eight manipulative digits wide in a
gesture of greeting and unity. A wave of genuine warmth and appreciation flowed
out to wash over those in the front rows. The bulbous eyes, each on the end of
its short stalk, swiveled independently to survey the native crowd as it
cheered softly.
Following the ceremony's conclusion,
One-who-Surrounds was relieved to retire to a room in which the humidity had
been raised to meet Amplitur requirements. The itching which had begun to torment
its mottled orange skin began to fade. It was no longer necessary to use drops
to keep sensitive eyes moist.
Green-goes-Softly settled into a hammocklike lounge
nearby. The large, dark blotch on its dorsal side indicated that the other
Amplitur had recently budded, giving birth to a new individual.
"I thought it went well."
"Wellness aplenty," One-who-Surrounds
concurred. "They honor their heroes."
"As well they should after what they
accomplished on Koba." Green-goes-Softly rolled slightly, into a more
comfortable position, straddling the lounge for maximum support. "I sensed
in the favored ones no indication of deviation or genetic degeneration."
"Nor did I." Disdaining the other empty
lounge, One-who-Surrounds settled into a shallow pool of warm, scented water.
"All the reports have been accurate."
"I wish we could have gone to Koba to monitor
them in person."
"You know why we did not. Personal danger
aside, our presence would have been a burden on the regular Ash-regan troops,
much less the progeny of the Project. In active combat against Human beings our
presence is a hindrance." Its skin rippled, showing iridescent silver
highlights.
"They defeated Humans on their own
ground," Green-goes-Softly murmured. "It is a wonderful thing.
According to the reports I have seen, the Humans were much surprised."
"As well they should have been."
One-who-Surrounds waxed philosophical. "In such small ways does the mental
disintegration of an enemy begin. Not only were the fighters successful in
their military objectives, they were happy in their work. The Purpose could ask
for nothing more."
Green-goes-Softly gestured with a tentacle.
"For all their Ashregan upbringing they fight as well as any Humans. The
nanobioengineers have done their work exceedingly well. Their alterations have
taken perfectly. The overriding desire of the special fighters, like that of
their less well-endowed fellow Ashregan, is but to serve the Purpose."
"Yes. It means that the end of the Weave can be
envisioned."
Green-goes-Softly knew that the end
One-who-Surrounds spoke of might lie several hundred years in the future, but
the Amplitur took a longer view of things than most species. Their patience
extended well beyond individual lifetimes. It allowed them to wait for new
special fighters to enter the fray, and for the genetic alterations which had
been performed on those already serving the cause to be passed on to other
fighters as yet unconceived.
"It is still a risky business." Scented
water sloshed gently around the bulk of One-who-Surrounds.
' 'I know, but thus far there is only success to
show for it. With luck and skill, the Project will continue to prosper."
"There are still those among the brethren who
think it unwise, even dangerous."
Green-goes-Softly mentally envisioned a shrug.
"One must take risks in war. Our ancestors took many as with far simpler
resources they spread the Purpose across the cosmos. We, too, must be bold. Our
ancestors never had to confront a sociobiological aberration as extreme as
Humankind. New difficulties call for new ways of thinking, new countermeasures.
The continued success of the Project will assuage the doubters."
"I concur. I feel wellness about it."
One-who-Surrounds retracted its eyestalks, luxuriating in the warm water,
pleased to be again in dark, damp surroundings instead of the dry bright light
favored by so many of their allies.
A morose and dejected Fifth-of-Medicine squatted
beneath the towering tree. Warm rain trickled down his dirty green scales to
nurture the mud below as he sat contemplating his unnatural fate.
Truly he should not have been there, was not
supposed to be in a combat area. The Hivistahm were not fighters. With proper
training, some of them could be counted on to serve as support personnel. That
was more than could be said for the too-civilized Wais or Motar.
Actual fighting, a barbarity most races had
difficulty contemplating, was left to those species in whom the requisite
primitive genes had been retained: Massood and, increasingly, Humans. The
relentless, horrible, wonderful, utterly unpredictable Humans.
But there were only so many Massood, so many Humans.
Other races had to back them up by providing necessary logistical support. That
task fell to such as the Bir'rimor, the Lepar, the O'o'yan . . . and the Hivistahm.
A fine medical technician skilled in multiple
species repair, Fifth-of-Medicine had been assigned to what for a Hivistahm
constituted a forward battle position: emergency physiotech on a rear
battle-control sled. He did not expect to be exposed to combat, much less to
experience it. But that was precisely what had happened when the combined
Ashregan-Crigolit force had surprised the attack group.
Like everyone else he had heard the rumors that the
enemy had begun experimenting with new and untraditional strategies, and like
everyone else he had dismissed them out of hand. The events of the morning had
transformed him instantly from skeptic to true believer. Perhaps if there had
been more Humans in the sector the attack might have been beaten off. But they
were widely scattered across the surface of contested Eirrosad, and there had
been few on his command vessel or its escorting sliders.
After taking several direct hits, the badly crippled
transport sled had turned to flee, scraping the jungle canopy as it did so. As
it pivoted on its repulsion axis an internal explosion had sent it slamming
into a giant forest emergent. It skewed wildly before finally recovering to
shudder on its way, shimmying on its stabilizers.
But not before the impact had pitched half a dozen
crewmembers through a gaping hole in its side and into the foliage below.
Only two of the six had survived the fall, the
otherwise fatal plunge cushioned for them by fortuitously placed branches and
leaves. The others had not been so lucky.
By some miracle he had landed in the top of a
densely foliated tree, the reedlike upper branches slowing his descent before
bending to deposit him, one level at a time, onto similar growths below, until
he was finally dumped, bruised but otherwise undamaged, into a puddle of soft
mud.
The same mud which had saved his life made fighting
on Eirrosad's surface an untenable proposition. Combat was largely restricted
to encounters between Weave sliders and enemy floaters, which could dart and
hide among the trees and vines. Only the foolish or suicidal would think of
trying to conduct a battle on the mushy, planetwide morass which passed for
ground. So the surface was left to the specialized native fauna best equipped
to cope with it.
And to the unfortunate such as himself. Truly.
He was stuck in the middle of the hostile wilderness
the ever irreverent Humans had dubbed the Sludgel: part swamp, part jungle,
mostly muck. Without communicator, weapon, or armor. All he had to help him
survive was his green physiotech uniform with its attendant equipment, and his
wits. He placed little confidence in either. Even his footgear worked against
him: high-laced sandals instead of bog boots. He was grudgingly grateful for
the overhead vegetation which kept a little of the rain off his scaly scalp.
At least, he thought, the ambient temperature
amenable is, and the natives not a worry are. Poor and backward, they lived in
transitory jungle villages raised above the ooze on cleverly interwoven stilts,
marveling at the incomprehensible forces which contested for control of their
world. The Eirrosadians were the second truly tripedal intelligence ever
discovered, which made them rather more interesting from a scientific than
strategic point of view. By the same token, civilized morality demanded that
despite their backwardness they should not be abandoned to the manipulative
mercies of the Amplitur and their allies. None could say but that in a thousand
years or so they might contribute significantly to the war effort.
He adjusted his eyeshades, which had defied all the
laws of physics by clinging to his face despite his violent ejection from the
sled and subsequent fall. Their presence contributed significantly to what
little comfort remained to him. Reflecting his emotional state, his skin had
lost its bright green shininess and turned a dull olive hue. At least it would
make him hard for the enemy to spot if they decided to make a visual search of
the canopy for survivors.
Beneath the shades, double eyelids blinked at his
depressing surroundings. The absence of the bright sunshine so favored by the
Hivistahm contributed to his emotional funk. Silently he damned the clouds
which blocked out the sun, the rain they gave birth to, and the circumstances
which had deposited him in this place.
He considered his situation, quite aware as he did
so that it would not improve upon reflection. They were an unknown but surely
considerable distance from the nearest forward Weave outpost, which as near as
he could estimate lay to the south of their present position. He hadn't devoted
much attention to such matters on board the sled, since there was no need for
him to be aware of them. Now he was paying for his indifference.
It was going to be a long walk.
They would have to experiment with local foodstuffs,
but water obviously wouldn't be a problem. Taste was something else again.
That would likely not be a problem for his fellow
survivor, whom he regarded distastefully. Not satisfied with placing him in
this ridiculous position, the fates had decided to heap irony atop discomfort
by giving him for companionship on the arduous trek to come not another of his
own kind, not a Massood or Human to protect him, not even an attentive O'o'yan
or sardonic S'van.
No. He was going to have to travel with a Lepar.
With a representative of the Weave's slowest-thinking, dullest species. It did
not boost his spirits to know that the amphibious Lepar was far better equipped
than he to survive an extended sojourn in the Eirrosadian ecozone.
His name was Itepu, and he seemed agreeable enough
despite his innate handicaps. He'd been a low-level maintenance assistant
aboard the command sled. As was characteristic of his kind, his work had been
repetitious and often dirty.
Standing there in his simple uniform of shorts and vest,
his slick tail switching reflexively, webbed hind feet buried in mud, he did
not look half as uncomfortable as Fifth-of-Medicine felt. Though half his tools
were missing, the Lepar's service belt still held equipment that might prove
useful during the long march ahead.
His left arm dangled by his side. Badly sprained in
the fall, it was the first thing Fifth-of-Medicine had tended to when they'd
stumbled into each other while searching for fellow unfortunates.
The medic regarded the Lepar's coccygeal appendage.
Imagine an intelligent race that still retained a tail! Tiny black eyes and an
enormously wide mouth contributed to an overweening impression of bland
stupidity. Yet the Lepar were not stupid. Merely unclever. And as devoted to
the defeat of the Purpose as far more intelligent species, Fifth-of-Medicine
reminded himself.
Itepu slogged over to the medic's tree, ignoring the
rain which ran in rivulets down his green-brown, slightly slimy skin.
"Where we go, and when, friend Hivistahm?"
"How know should I?" A disconsolate
Fifth-of-Medicine adjusted his translator as he gestured in a vaguely southward
direction with a long, delicate, claw-tipped finger.
The Lepar stood silently for a while, listening to
the rain and fiddling with his own speaker and earplug while waiting for the
higher-ranking Hivistahm to move. "We should go soon," he said
finally. "Enemy in this area."
"I do not think so." Fifth-of-Medicine
slid off the root on which he'd been brooding, wincing as his legs sank
ankle-deep into the fetid, clinging muck. "The battle over is and we have
not any shooting for some time heard."
"Rain makes hearing hard."
The physiotech restrained himself. Simply because
the Lepar were slow did not mean they were always wrong.
"You are probably correct. We should this area
leave."
Better to die out here, he thought, than to be taken
alive. Captives were sometimes turned over to the Amplitur for mental
"adjustment." A portion of the mind wiped out here, another small
section replaced there, and a prisoner was transformed without its consent into
a useful agent for the Purpose. He shuddered as he slogged off southward.
A thin film of water covered the boggy surface,
magnifying the deceptively solid appearance of the soil beneath. The polite
Itepu matched his pace to that of his considerably slower companion.
By evening they had covered more ground than the
medic dared hope. As they sat beneath a sheltering leaf the size of a small
vehicle eating a peculiar purplish fruit the Lepar had picked,
Fifth-of-Medicine felt a little better about their situation. They were in good
health and thus far untroubled by the local fauna. He allowed himself to
imagine that they might actually have a chance of reaching the outpost.
As near as he could remember, that blessed destination
lay on the western shore of a wide, meandering river which ran roughly
north-south. If they could make it that far, they could build some kind of raft
to carry them the rest of the way downstream to safety. He swatted at something
tiny, orange, and persistent. If the local arthropodan life didn't suck all the
blood out of them first, he told himself.
He could envision himself among family again, both
close and extended. He even managed to meditate for a while, the Lepar
observing him silently as he sat cross-legged in the mud, eyes tightly shut,
his back to the imaginary contemplation circle. Warm, bright sunshine and hot,
dry sand filled his stabilizing thoughts, relaxing him, restoring mental
balance.
After a while Itepu turned away and began digging in
the mud for things to eat.
By morning the rain had gentled to an occasional
light drizzle, and Fifth-of-Medicine's scales began to dry out. His misery
quotient fell perceptibly. By midday he was feeling well enough to stride
through the undergrowth with some confidence.
They had survived, and would doubtless be feted as
heroes upon their return. Even Massood and Humans would have to acknowledge
their achievement. Among such hopeful musings Fifth-of-Medicine found time to
admire the profusion of chromatically hued jungle flowers.
"Do you like your work?"
"What?" The medic glanced sideways at his
lugubrious companion. They were making camp for the evening.
Shiny black eyes looked back at him. "Your
work. Do you like doing it?"
As the Lepar were not famed for initiating
conversation, Fifth-of-Medicine was somewhat startled by the question. It took
him a moment to formulate a reply.
"Truly. I am at what I do very good and hope
someday to be a third- or even a second-of-medicine called." To his own
surprise he found himself adding, "What about you?''
"I don't think about it much." Itepu
yawned, his wide mouth seeming to split his face in half. The dark gullet
gaped. "I just do what I was trained to do."
Fifth-of-Medicine was building a bower of leaves and
broken twigs. "Sometimes I think it is better that way. Hard it is to see
others suffering and not be always able to help. Like the others who out of the
sled were thrown but did not survive the explosion or fall. Nothing for them
could I do. Truly."
"You did what you could. Tell me: If any enemy
was hurt here, would you try to help it?"
It was surprising enough for a Lepar to initiate a
conversation. For one to venture a philosophical query bordered on the
shocking.
"Truly I do not know. That is something / have
not thought about. It would on the specific circumstances depend."
When Itepu digested this without replying,
Fifth-of-Medicine felt oddly cheated. It was still on his mind when he rose to
wash his eyes the next morning.
By then he was more than merely confident. He was
convinced they were going to make it back. Even the weather cooperated, as the
rains remained light. So relaxed had he become that he did not jump up from his
resting place in panic when a clammy hand unexpectedly clutched at his
shoulder.
Itepu was bending over him, making small circular
motions with his other hand. It took Fifth-of-Medicine a moment to recognize
the movement as the Lepar gesture for silence. Puzzled but for the moment
compliant, the phys-iotech rose and followed his crouching companion into the
trees.
The amphibian halted behind a wall-like buttressing
root and gestured. Following the pointing finger, the medic nearly let out an
involuntary hiss.
Not far enough away sat a single Human, perhaps one
of those who'd manned an escort slider. No doubt he'd been shot down by the
Crigolit and now found himself in straits similar to their own.
Fifth-of-Medicine's spirits rose. If the creature was armed, he and Itepu would
be able to travel the rest of the way back to the base in the company of
serious protection. In circumstances such as theirs it was better to have the
companionship of one Human than three or four Massood. Humans adapted much
better to the heat and humidity of Eirrosad.
As he started to rise and wave, the Lepar grabbed
him and dragged him down. "I know what you are thinking." Itepu's
face was uncomfortably close to his own. "Not Human."
All four of Fifth-of-Medicine's eyelids blinked
impatiently. "What are you saying? Of course it Human is."
"Not."
"Look at it. At the lanky form, at the
proportions. Human it perfectly is."
Itepu rose slowly to peer over the crest of the
root. "Wait and watch."
Confused and resentful of being handed an order by a
lowly Lepar, Fifth-of-Medicine complied, but with considerable reluctance.
After a while the creature rose to methodically
survey the surrounding jungle. The medic's eyes widened as he hastily ducked
back down behind the root.
"Truly correct you were," he whispered
tautly. "Ash-regan it is! With Human proportions, but Ashregan." There
was no mistaking, he thought uneasily, those bony ridges over the ears or the
wide eye sockets. It was surely Ashregan, despite its height and build.
"A giant among Ashregan," Itepu agreed.
The medic's long tongue commenced to vibrate
nervously inside his mouth. "By the Circle! It one of the mutant Ashregan
fighters may be that so much havoc on Koba wrought. They were spoken of as
tall, fast-moving, and much stronger than is of their kind typical. It is
supposed they by the Amplitur from normal Ashregan stock bioengineered have
been."
The longer they cautiously observed the creature,
the more certain Fifth-of-Medicine grew that this indeed was one of the
half-mythical altered Ashregan warriors. It was taller even than most Humans.
In retrospect it was not so surprising that he should have misidentified it.
After all, the Ashregan bore the same kind of superficial external resemblance
to Humans as Hivistahm did to the smaller but distinctly different O'o'yan.
He discussed his observations with Itepu, wishing as
he did so that the Lepar was one of his own kind or even a sardonic but
brilliant S'van. He could do with a little humor just now.
"How peculiar it is," he found himself
murmuring. "It looks Ashregan but moves like a Human."
"Amplitur bioengineering." Itepu was
absolutely convinced of the explanation. "They seek to breed Ashregan who
will be the equal of Human fighters, so they graft Human characteristics onto
them."
Like the isolated incident it was, sudden
realization burst in the Lepar's slow but persistent brain. A thick black
tongue emerged to clean his left eye as he spoke.
"Do you know what this means? Only two
specimens of such as this one were found on Koba, both severely damaged. Here
is an example that is not only intact, but alive. If we could capture it and
take it back with us . . ."
Fifth-of-Medicine was sure his companion could see
the bulging orbs behind the Hivistahm eyeshades.
"Are you truly truly mad? Do you not realize
what the creature could do? The Ashregan fighters are. Hivistahm and Lepar are
not."
"But this is important." The Lepar's
insistence was marked by childlike directness and simplicity. "It would be
useful to Weave specialists who are trying to understand what happened on
Koba."
Fifth-of-Medicine clicked the claws on his right
hand decisively together. "If we near it go, it kill us will. Truly. I
refuse absolutely to have anything to do with such a crazy idea."
Itepu stared back at him. Surely he will not try
anything on his own, the medic thought. Normally a Lepar would display about as
much initiative as a vegetable drying in the sun.
His companion took more time than usual to formulate
a reply. "If the Amplitur have been able to give the Ashregan Human
fighting abilities in so short a time, it is important that the military
council know all about it. It is our responsibility to . .
"Truly in this matter we no responsibility
have." Fifth-of-Medicine was decisive. "I a fifth-level medical
technician and physician am. You a maintenance worker are. Let the Massood and
Humans specimens capture. Our responsibility is to our way to the river make,
our return to the nearest outpost effect, so that those tasks we may
resume."
Ignoring his companion's protestations, Itepu
continued to sneak glances over the root. "I think it is wounded. The
chance to find one alone and in such circumstances may not happen again soon.''
While every instinct screamed at him to run, to get
away from that place, Fifth-of-Medicine was unable to completely submerge his
curiosity.
"Are you sure it hurt is?"
"Come see how it limps," Itepu whispered
down at him.
The physio tech rose alongside his companion.
"Even if the injury substantial is, if the creature has been given Human
combat abilities, it still more dangerous is than the two of us combined. An
ordinary Ashregan would be more dangerous than the two of us combined."
Like any healthy, normal Hivistahm he found himself quivering at the very idea
of taking part in actual fighting.
"There are no Humans and no Massood here to
help us," Itepu pointed out. "We must do this on our own or the
opportunity will be lost.''
"Then let it be lost."
"I will try to do something alone if I
must."
Better quickly to die, Fifth-of-Medicine thought,
than to be trapped in this place by himself.
"What do you suggest?" he heard a voice
asking. Astonishingly, it was his own. "Charging the creature? We have no
weapons."
"It does not seem to have any, either."
"Here, let me again look."
Fifth-of-Medicine was not about to take the Lepars word for it. Though they
could see equally well below and above water, the Lepar sometimes suffered from
shortsightedness. He flipped his protective eyeshades up onto his low forehead,
where they automatically tightened in place.
The Ashregan had resumed its seat and was consuming
some kind of local fruit. Stare as he might, Fifth-of-Medicine could not see so
much as a crude club. The creature's clothes were badly torn, revealing
blackened splotches on the exposed scaleless skin. So in addition to an injured
leg, it was suffering from burns and exhaustion. It wore no body armor at all.
Perhaps it was not even a warrior but some kind of frontline technician. Though
all Ashregan were trained hi fighting techniques, not all were soldiers.
It is not as if we contemplate capturing a Molitar,
he told himself. Nor even, he added wryly, a Human. He reconsidered his
companion's suggestion. If they could do this thing, the merit they would
acquire would be substantial. His musings in the meditation circle would be
honored.
The alternative was unpleasant. If they tried to
capture it and failed, the Ashregan might well kill them both. He fumbled at
his medic's belt and removed a small plasticine cylinder.
Itepu watched quietly. "What are you
doing?"
"Trying myself to prepare. Be quiet," the
Hivistahm hissed. Tilting back his head, he put the cylinder to his mouth and
swallowed two of the pills it ejected. "Field tranquilizers. My reactions
will not be affected." He clicked the claws of his left hand together.
"But I will physical conflict be able to contemplate with greater
equanimity. I may even actual violent contact be able to experience without
vomiting."
"The Lepar are no more warlike than the
Hivistahm," his companion reminded him.
"If that is meant to encourage me, a dismal
failure it is. What do you want to do? I know nothing about fighting."
Itepu's tiny black eyes half closed. "We could
wait until it sleeps and then sneak up and hit it in the head."
"Brilliant. If we hit it too hard it dies, and
if we do not hit it hard enough it leaps up and dismembers us."
The Lepar considered, straining. "There are two
of us. If the first blow is not enough, the second one could hit it
again."
Typically complex Lepar cogitation,
Fifth-of-Medicine mused. He tried to force himself to think like a warrior,
ignoring the slight trembling in his limbs and the rising queasiness in his
gut. The tranquilizers were helping.
"There are several deep, water-cut holes."
He turned and pointed back toward the tree among whose root structure they had
spent the previous night. ' 'If one of us injured pretended to be, he could the
creature intrigue and lure this way. We could the hole camouflage: put branches
and leaves over it. The one injured pretending to be could carefully avoid the
trap but the pursuing creature in would fall."
"That is a good idea." There was
admiration in the Lepar's voice. "I would not have thought of it."
Of course you wouldn't, Fifth-of-Medicine mused
sympathetically, but that not your fault is. "You will toward the trap the
Ashregan lure. I will nearby wait . . ." He started to say "with a
club" but knew he could never wield a blunt instrument with harmful intent
and so finished, ". . .to make sure everything properly goes."
His companion regarded him solemnly. "We are
not runners." He displayed a webbed hind foot. It was bare, the Lepar
having discarded his extraneous sandals long ago. "We are swift in the
water, but not on land. The Hivistahm," he added, with sufficient emphasis
to startle the medic, "are famed for their sprinting abilities."
How odd, Fifth-of-Medicine thought, that I had not
that considered before my mouth opening. Itepu was staring at him pointedly.
"I cannot that imagine doing. Truly. We will
have to something else think of." His teeth gnashed lightly, indicative of
his distress. "To deliberately induce an Ashregan to chase me; no. I could
not such a thing do."
"It would be a brief chase," Itepu argued
ingenuously. "Over a modest distance a healthy Hivistahm should be able to
keep ahead of an injured Ashregan. They have short legs."
"Not this mutant," the medic reminded him.
"It legs like a Human has."
"You only have to cover a little ground. I will
... I will hide in the bushes between here and the hole and if the creature is
getting too close to you I will hit it with a rock." Itepu's tumescent expression
brightened at the unexpected realization. "This is good! It combines my
idea and yours."
"Unless the creature catches me anyway and you
miss with the rock." Fifth-of-Medicine was much subdued. On the whole, he
would rather have been meditating.
"I do not see how we can do this without taking
some risk. Remember, the creature has an injured leg. Surely it cannot run very
fast."
"Truly, that is so." The medic felt a
little more optimistic. "It might not even try to chase me."
"You should not be in much danger." The
Lepar was stolidly remorseless.
"How will I its attention attract?"
Itepu considered. "Throw something at it. With
luck that will make it mad."
"With luck?" The Hivistahm were not as
skilled in the art as the S'van, but they could still muster sarcasm when the
occasion demanded it. "That an offensive action would be." His
stomach roiled at the very thought. "I do not know if I can ..."
"Then throw nearby. If you are not actually
trying to hit it, there is no offense in the action.''
"Truly," he had to admit. He flipped his
eyeshades back into place. "First we have a hole to choose and
camouflage."
The Lepar's wide mouth clapped together twice.
"I will take care of that. I am good at manual labor."
And I will watch, Fifth-of-Medicine thought. I am
good at that.
By late that afternoon Itepu had demonstrated
surprising skill in masking the trap they'd chosen. It was steep-sided and deep
enough to keep even a tall Ashregan from climbing out.
That the easy part was, he reminded himself.
He'd had most of the day to ponder what they planned
to try and had almost convinced himself they could bring it off. After all, it
wasn't as if he was going to have to fight. Just attract the creature's
attention, and run. Except for Humans and Massood, the Hivistahm were about the
best runners in the Weave, especially over a short distance.
They approached the creature's resting place
quietly. Itepu murmured something intended to be reassuring in his own
language, then sank out of sight back into the forest, leaving
Fifth-of-Medicine on his own. He hoped the Lepar located a particularly large
rock.
Am I actually this doing? he asked himself silently
as he advanced. I, Fifth-of-Medicine, sophisticated technician and member of
respected circles, stalking a soldier of the Purpose? He was awash in fear and
revulsion.
The Ashregan had an injured leg, he kept reminding
himself.
He'd adjusted his translator to handle the
creature's own language, having determined that throwing words could be as
provocative as throwing stones. It would not work perfectly, but it should
function well enough for him to make himself understood. Not that he intended
to engage the enemy in an extended conversation.
What he had not counted on was its imposing size as
he drew close. It was the biggest Ashregan he'd ever seen. Truly the Amplitur
had bred notable Human characteristics into it. His task suddenly seemed more
daunting, his companion Itepu much farther away.
They had invested too much effort and he had come
too far for him to back away now, he told himself nervously. Nor could he
envision himself confessing his inadequacies to a Lepar. Not that he feared
being accused of cowardice. Cowardice was a primitive concept invalid among
civilized peoples. Fortunately he found himself possessed by a kind of
paralysis of determination.
The tranquilizers helped.
It was almost as if someone else were picking the
small round stone out of the muck, as though another being was straightening
and throwing it in the Ashregan's direction, supporting its unimpressive
trajectory with inane insults in an alien tongue.
The creature reacted with shocking speed and
unnaturally fast reflexes, rising and whirling in one motion, Though its
proportions were mutant, the face that confronted Fifth-of-Medicine was
wide-eyed and wholly Ashregan.
Feeling numbly foolish, he continued to stand where
he'd risen, exposed and vulnerable, staring back at the enemy. To break the
paralysis he jumped up and down several times and twitched obscenely, though it
was unlikely the Ashregan was knowledgeable enough to interpret the gestures.
The stone, the words, the gestures or a combination
thereof had an effect, however. Like some great primeval forest spirit, the
mutant Ashregan crouched momentarily.
When it rose anew a horrified Fifth-of-Medicine saw
the long spear which the creature had until now kept concealed in the
underbrush.
The weapon was even taller than its maker, as thick
around as the medic's wrist, straight and lethal-looking. Its tip of sharpened
stone looked quite capable of slicing through iridescent green scales, flesh,
and organs.
With an inarticulate cry, Fifth-of-Medicine put all
carefully considered plans aside as he turned and ran.
He could hear the Ashregan crashing through the
brush behind him. It was making less noise than he'd hoped, slipping through
the brush and vines and across the spongy surface with entirely too much ease
for so large a creature. Nor were they the sounds he imagined would be produced
by something massive traveling on a damaged leg.
Expecting to see nothing so soon, he glanced back
over his shoulder and was aghast to note that the Ashregan was not only in
sight but already closing. It was not limping.
What had happened to its injury, he wondered
frantically?
It occurred to him suddenly that maybe there had
never been any wound. Perhaps it had been feigning injury all along, just in
case it should encounter Weave troops. So perfect had been its ruse that
it"had deceived even those it had not seen.
Long, powerful, heavy-boned legs carried it easily
from log to log as it methodically ate up the distance between them with
strides the shorter Hivistahm could not hope to match. The ominous spear hung
from its fist, parallel to the ground. Fifth-of-Medicine was sure it was
already within throwing distance.
He could feel the stone-tipped, heavy piece of
jungle timber slamming into his back, piercing vital organs, emerging from his
sternum with sufficient force still unspent to pin him like a specimen bug
against the nearest tree. He tried to accelerate, his three-toed sandaled feet
hardly touching the ground as he flew through the woods.
No matter how fast he ran or how radically he
swerved, the creature continued to close the distance between them.
He knew then with absolute certainty that they were
not going to trap the Ashregan in their carefully concealed pit because it was
going to overtake him long before they reached the place. He imagined he could
feel the creature's breath on the back of his neck. His eyes wildly scanned the
vegetation he ripped through. Where was Itepu with his poised rock? Still
somewhere ahead, too far ahead.
Another glance backward filled his eyes with that
horrible flat face, the parted mouth with its squarish cutting teeth, the
projecting bony ridges over the ears, the throw-back patch of fur atop the
slightly flattened skull. And the eyes, those round burning eyes, gazing
unblinkingly back into his own.
It's toying with me, he realized suddenly. It knows
it can bring me down at any time.
Emitting a hiss of absolute and complete hysteria,
knowing that he would never reach the pit in time, too terrified to lament the
accomplishments and merit that would never be his, he ran on.
There was a crash behind him. In focusing its
attention on its prey had the mutant slipped on the perpetually damp ground?
Had it tripped over an especially well-concealed liana? Fifth-of-Medicine
didn't turn to look, didn't stop until his heart threatened to bang its way out
through his heaving chest.
He blinked. There was nothing behind him.
Was it still playing with its quarry, sneaking
through the brush nearby, silently amused at his inchoate terror? To the best
of his knowledge that was not a characteristic of the Ashregan. It had all but
run him down. Why pause to prolong the game? Humans were occasionally reputed
to do such things, but not Ashregan.
It was against his better judgment, but then he'd
been acting against his better judgment all day, he reminded himself. He
started retracing his path, trying to keep to the denser vegetation, working
his way slowly and carefully back the way he'd come.
Eventually he came to something which caused him to
suck in his breath with a soft but perceptible hiss.
The Ashregan stood close by the trap. A portion of
the branch-and-leaf camouflage had been contemptuously kicked aside to reveal
the pit beneath. Blood streamed from the side of the mutant's skull.
Itepu lay on his back at the edge of the hole, the
tip of the Ashregan's spear dimpling his belly. The medic recalled the crash
he'd heard in the midst of his panicky flight.
The Lepar. Itepu must have leaped from concealment
to strike the pursuing Ashregan. Only, the poor amphibian hadn't struck hard
enough. The mutant must have been staggered, but instead of going down he'd
chased the clumsy Lepar to this point. Itepu had tried to lead the Ashregan
into the pit, to succeed where Fifth-of-Medicine had failed.
He ducked down as the enemy soldier suddenly looked
around, scanning the surrounding trees intently. Wondering what had happened to
its original quarry, no doubt. Trying to decide if any more Weave fools lurked
in the tepid jungle.
It turned away and began querying Itepu via its own
battered battlefield translator. The sounds of the Lepar language filtered back
to the cowering physiotech. Fifth-of-Medicine winced as the Ashregan emphasized
its inquiry by prodding the prone Lepar with its spear. Each time the
unfortunate maintenance worker refused to reply, the spear point probed a
little deeper.
Why doesn't he answer? the medic wondered. The
Lepar's defiance would only get him killed more slowly.
They'd tried, he told himself, and failed. It struck
him that the Ashregan's preoccupation with Itepu offered him a chance to slip
away quietly. Could he do that? It was the eminently sensible thing to do, of course.
Logical, if not civilized. Given time, he was sure he could rationalize his
actions.
He hesitated, hiding deep in the undergrowth, his
in-sides churning. The alternative to logic was a likely death. It was known
that certain Hivistahm had succeeded in executing offensive gestures under
extreme circumstances. Was he capable of such an action? Of overriding a
lifetime's conditioning? To, of all things, help a Lepar?
The tranquilizers were still active in his system,
helping to dampen dangerous thoughts. This is the result of the Lepar's
misguided cogitation, he reminded himself. He had wanted to do the sensible
thing, to avoid the mutant and continue on to the river and the nearest
outpost. He was responsible only for his own safety. And there were greater
responsibilities. To his meditation circle. To the war effort. A dead
physiotech was of no use to the Weave.
It was the Lepar who had insisted on this
ill-conceived effort. Therefore it was only right that the Lepar should pay for
its failure. He owed it nothing. A last look, he decided, and then he would be
gone.
Peering through the vegetation, he saw that the
creature was now wholly occupied with its interrogation of Itepu. It no longer
showed interest in its surroundings. That was good. He let the leaves he'd
parted fall silently back into place.
He didn't recall when he began to move. Nor did he
remember striking the towering Ashregan behind its knees-most likely because
both his eyelids were tightly shut at the moment of impact. The Hivistahm were light
of build, and his greatest fear was that he wouldn't have sufficient mass to
carry out his intent.
His concern was not misplaced. Intent as it was On
its questioning of Itepu, the mutant did not start to react until
Fifth-of-Medicine was upon him. As it began to turn, the medic struck as hard
as he could. The startled Ashregan dropped the spear and flailed its arms in an
attempt to maintain its balance. The startled look on its face showed that it
could not believe it had been surprised, much less by an inoffensive Hivistahm.
The soil at the edge of the pit was no less slippery
and unstable than the rest of Eirrosad's surface. For a horrible moment the
creature appeared to regain its equilibrium. Then it dropped out of sight in a
great crash of crunching leaves and twigs, emitting furious emanations as it
fell. It struck bottom with a spongy thud.
Fifih-of-Medicine slumped to his haunches, breathing
hard, tongue dangling to one side as he struggled to slow his heart rate. Angry
noises continued to bubble from the depths of the trap. When the trembling
stopped he rose and moved to help Itepu to his feet. Save for a minor cut where
the spear had prodded, the Lepar was unhurt.
"You saved my life."
"Crazy it was. I am of commitment worthy. You
must turn me in for observation upon our return. I insist on it!"
Ignoring him, Itepu cautiously approached the lip of
the pit and peered in.
The Ashregan was on its feet, uttering curses as it
inspected its surroundings. Fifth-of-Medicine did not approach the trap. He knew
what the Ashregan looked like.
Itepu backed away from the edge. "Well, we have
done it."
"Do not remind me. I prefer not to think on
it."
"Now that we have captured the creature, we
must think of a way to take it with us."
"I a better idea have." The medic was
still breathing hard. "Let's leave it here. We can some food and water
provide and mark the spot in our minds. Others come and recover it can.''
"No, we can't do that." Itepu was
inexorable. "Given time it may find a way to escape. We must take it with
us or everything we have done may go to waste." It glanced in the
direction of the trap. "We know for certain now that it is Ashregan. A
Human would not have bothered to ask questions, but would have killed an enemy
instantly."
Reluctantly Fifth-of-Medicine joined his companion
at the edge of the pit as they considered what to do with their prisoner.
Once, it backed into a far corner and unexpectedly
took a running leap at them, powerful hands reaching for the physiotech's legs.
Fifth-of-Medicine took a startled hop backward. He needn't have bothered.
Though it could jump impossibly high for so massive a creature, its fingers
still fell far short of the trap's rim.
Next it tried to climb out, expending in its frantic
efforts more sheer energy than the medic believed a single being could muster.
The damp, soft earth crumbled under its fingers and beneath its feet. Several
times it ascended nearly a body length, only to tumble back to the bottom as
the treacherous soil gave way beneath scrabbling hands and feet.
Though astonishing in their scope, its physical
resources were finite. It tried, failed, and fell exhausted one last time into
the shallow puddle of water which had collected at the bottom of the pit.
Quiescent at last it lay there, breathing hard and glaring murderously up at
them.
Fifth-of-Medicine's teeth clicked softly. "We
here have to leave it. How can we such a killer restrain? If we bring it out it
surely kill us will, and if we down after go it will kill us there. We cannot
incapacitate it without near it going."
"That may not be true," Itepu replied
slowly.
The Hivistahm's eyelids closed halfway.
"Explain yourself."
Itepu gestured at the physiotech's service belt.
"You have medicines designed to make the injured feel better. Do not some
of them also put you to sleep?"
"Truly. But the emergency vials I at all times
on my person carry are calibrated for treating Massood and Human fighters, and
to a lesser extent Hivistahm, Lepar, and whatever other species I am at the
time serving with. To an enemy treat requires the resources of a field
hospital."
"'I have heard that Human and Ashregan
physiology are very similar."
"Truly
they are, but whether they identical enough are for pharmaceuticals designed
for one to affect another is a far more complex matter. I am only a
fifth-of-medicine, a field medic. I am not in such matters competent."
"This creature has been given Human physical
and fighting characteristics," Itepu pointed out. "If anything, it
should be more receptive than others of its kind to serums designed for
treating Humans. Would it not be worth trying?"
"Still remains the main problem,"
Fifth-of-Medicine insisted. "How to get near enough to an adequate dosage
inject."
"Must it be injected? The creature is tough,
but it still needs to eat."
Fifth-of-Medicine considered. "Would it not
suspicious of food from us be?"
"Probably, but hunger should eventually
overcome suspicion. It must realize that if we wanted it dead we could throw
rocks down on it, or leave it here. Nor does it know that you are a medic with
access to sedatives."
He made the dose strong. Very strong. After all, the
worst that could happen was that it would kill the creature, thus sparing them
the difficulty of somehow hauling it back with them. He was able to concoct the
dose without qualms because it was not his intent to kill but to tranquilize.
The possibility of a fatal accident weighed only peripherally on his
conscience.
As expected, the Ashregan at first refused all
offers of fruit and meat. But two days of clawing futilely at the walls of its
prison left it ravenous, and it finally devoured the proffered food, exhibiting
an extraordinary appetite as well as atrocious table manners. It not only
finished what they had provided but asked for more, after which it sat down in
the slimy puddle and regarded them with a baleful expression on its flat, ugly
face.
An hour later its eyes closed as its head fell over
on one shoulder.
"We can use vines braced around a tree to drag
it out," Itepu suggested, "and to bind it. I think the two of us
working together can manage the load."
"One of us will have to go down to secure
it." The medic was studying the motionless alien form. "What if it
deceiving is?"
"I will find out."
It took the Lepar a few moments to locate a rock of
suitable size. As Fifth-of-Medicine looked on, Itepu carefully positioned
himself on the other side of the pit and let it drop. It was large enough to
start a trickle of blood from the Ashregan's scalp but not to crack bone. The
mutant's eyelids did not even twitch.
"Truly unconscious it is."
Fifth-of-Medicine was satisfied. "Let us make sure we bind it beyond
possibility of escape."
A variable-focus surgical cutter allowed them to
sever and gather very thick vines. After wrapping the heavy alien in a green
cocoon, arms secured behind its back, they strained to haul it out of the hole,
working quickly lest it awaken before they were finished. Since they did not
have the inclination, much less the strength, to carry their prisoner, they
left its lower limbs relatively free, binding each ankle to opposite ends of a
short, stout tree limb which severely restricted each leg's range of motion
while still allowing the creature enough leeway so that it could stumble
forward.
When it regained consciousness it was more than a
little surprised at the condition in which it found itself. After trying its
bonds and finding them unbreakable, it looked accusingly at Fifth-of-Medicine.
Its translator was in bad shape, but still functioning.
"You drugged me," it said accusingly.
"I didn't suspect. What are a Hivistahm and Lepar doing out in this jungle
with drugs?"
"I a medical technician am,"
Fifth-of-Medicine found himself replying. Even bound and helpless, the Ashregan
still cut an intimidating figure.
It emitted an untranslatable grunt. "That never occurred to me. I should
have noted your uniform type when I was chasing you. It serves me right. Well,
now that you have me, what do you intend to do with me?"
"Take you back with us." The physiotech
retreated several steps as the Ashregan struggled to its feet. The limb secured
to its ankles reduced its stride considerably, its mobility completely.
Enmeshed in its cocoon of vines, it towered over its captors.
Itepu clutched the prisoner's spear. The Ashregan
grinned contemptuously. "You don't expect me to believe you'd use
that."
The Lepar's reply was admirably firm. "I have
hit you twice with rocks. I might surprise you again."
"You might at that. You Lepar are difficult to
understand. Some day you'll be useful participants in the Purpose."
"Not while any of us lives," Itepu assured
him.
"Nor any Hivistahm." Fifth-of-Medicine was
not about to be exceeded in defiance by a Lepar. "You are back with us
coming. You a physical anomaly are. Ashregan you appear, yet with Human
characteristics."
"I am Ashregan," the captive replied
proudly. "You hold the Unifer Ranji-aar of Purposeful Cossuut." He
strained at his bonds. "And if I can free myself I will destroy you both,
as I destroy all enemies of the Purpose."
"Yes, we know." Fifth-of-Medicine's
confidence increased in proportion to the Ashregan's inability to loosen its
bindings. "It is clear that altered you have been. Doubtless responsible
the Amplitur are."
The soldier glared narrowly at his captor. "The
Amplitur do not do such things. Such tales are only Weave propaganda. The
Amplitur ..."
"Spare us the lecture on the wonderfulness of
the Amplitur. I have eyes, and I a trained medical specialist am. You both
Ashregan and Human traits possess. There is here something very peculiar going
on. We are taking you back so that better minds than mine can what the truth is
find out.''
"They'll find no more than you." The
mutant expectorated. "You've taken a captive; that's all." It turned
sharply to Itepu, who flinched slightly, black eyes blinking, but held his
ground. "You I should've killed when I had the chance."
The Lepar's expression did not change. "But you
did not."
"No. You were on the ground and helpless, and I
had questions to ask. I should have been faster, like a berserker Human.''
"I am glad you were not." Itepu stepped
boldly forward and poked the bound Ashregan with the spear. "Now move.
That way."
The prisoner gazed a moment longer at the amphibian,
then pivoted to start off in the indicated direction. His captors followed.
Amazement at their accomplishments thus far caused them to walk proud.
Despite Fifth-of-Medicine's fears, they were not
attacked. Nothing leaped out at them from the undergrowth, nothing materialized
to impede their progress. Having delivered himself of several proclamations,
the Ashregan had turned surprisingly docile. Fifth-of-Medicine and Itepu did
not relax, staying as alert as when they'd first trapped the soldier. For
surely this creature's companions would be searching for him.
They reached the river without incident. The
prisoner sat quietly while his captors, making good use of Fifth-of-Medicine's
surgical instruments and Itepu's remaining tools, fashioned a crude raft. If
they needed any further proof that the creature was Ashregan, its continued
docility as they worked with logs and vines confirmed it. A Human would have
jumped into the river despite the likelihood of drowning, or struck out with
its restrained legs, or at least inflicted on them a constant stream of
invective. That was the way of Humans. It was not the manner of Ashregans.
Instead, he continued to lecture them endlessly on
the true way of the Purpose, until the medic was ready to put aside the value
of their prisoner and strike him dead with the spear.
"We have everything you could say already
heard," he finally informed the mutant exasperatedly. "Despite what
you believe, there is civilization outside the Purpose. Truly."
"Civilized peoples do not slaughter the
helpless civilian populations of undefended worlds," the Ashregan shot
back.
Fifth-of-Medicine glanced up curiously from where he
was working on the raft. "What are you talking about?"
"My parents. My entire family and all its
friends and relations were wiped out by Humans and Massood."
"Truly now, I cannot imagine to what you
refer."
"The massacre of Houcilat, of course. I can't
believe you never heard of it, no matter how thorough is Weave control of your
information media. Houcilat was my world of origin."
Fifth-of-Medicine reflected as he worked.
"Houcilat, Houcilat. Truly, yes. That was a world colonized by both
Ashregan and, I believe, Bir'rimor. It contested was, and taken back by the
Weave some time ago. I am at recent history fairly competent. Do you anything
of what he speaks recall, Itepu?"
The Lepar looked up from where it was working
waist-deep in water. "We do not have good memories. But the name strikes
me."
"The fighting was lengthy but modest in scope,
and the world was back for the Weave won. But there no massacre of inhabitants
was. Truly." Fifth-of-Medicine fastened two logs together, eyeing his
handiwork with satisfaction. Misapplication of his extensive medical training
such construction might be, but there were none present to proffer objections.
"All inhabitants were allowed under Weave
supervision to remain, or to other Ashregan worlds repatriated were."
Ranji's brows drew together. "Weave propaganda.
Everyone on Houcilat was slaughtered. Including my natural parents."
The medic drew a thick liana tight. "Killed
they may have been. I am sure some civilian casualties there were. But a
massacre there was not."
"All my parents' friends, all my relatives and
their relatives, were killed. Do the Hivistahm describe such atrocities in
languid phrases?"
Fifth-of-Medicine glanced behind him. "Even
that may be truth, but I tell you that there was no slaughter. That is not the
way of the Weave. You have been lied to."
"The Amplitur ..." Ranji started to remind
his captors that the Amplitur never lied. Even they would have to admit to
that. But as he thought back it struck him that no Amplitur, either in person
or on recording, had ever spoken directly about Houcilat. The story of the
massacre of Houcilat had been told to him by his parents and teachers, who were
Ashregan. It might be interesting some day to put the question to an Amplitur
and observe the response.
No! Absurd, inconceivable, a thing he could not
countenance. Why should he for an instant question parents or instructors
because of what a Purposeless, enemy Hivistahm chose to say on the bank of an
unnamed river on a primitive, contested world?
"You're the ones who've been lied to," he
responded confidently. "There was a massacre."
"That possible is," admitted
Fifth-of-Medicine readily. "Truly I was not there. But tell me this,
Ashregan Unifer: What would be the purpose of such slaughter? What would it
gain the Weave?''
"It need have no purpose if Humans were
involved."
"Even Humans more restrained are. There are of
isolated barbaric incidents some rumors, but nothing on the scale to which you
refer. Nor are Humans alone to fight allowed. Massood or others are always
present, and would have such a terrible thing confirmed."
"Are you so sure? It would be to the Weave's
benefit to conceal such an incident. Because you do not have the Purpose, you
are always fighting and arguing among yourselves. Knowledge of such an outrage
could cause trouble among you."
"You very plausibly argue."
Fifth-of-Medicine secured a vine, snugging two cross-limbs tightly together.
"Though I do not believe you, I allow as how you might be correct. Will
you not grant me the same privilege? Anything is possible which cannot
disproved be."
Ranji went silent as his captors worked. Silence
offered time to think, which, as his teachers had sometimes pointed out, could
be dangerous. Why would they lie to him, especially about something as
important to him and his friends as the destruction of Houcilat? The Hivistahm
had seemed genuinely surprised by his disclosure, and equally convinced no such
massacre had occurred. Yes, the Weave government could have covered it up, but
was such a thing really possible in this time of rapid interworld and
interspecies communication?
"My friends will drive you off this
world," he declared for lack of anything more convincing to say. "And
massacre or not, the Weave remains responsible for the death of my
parents."
"I am for that most sorry," the physiotech
told him. "Even when great and exalted ideals at stake are, civilians
sometimes perish in their cause. But I and my companion nothing to do with that
had. We were at the time of Houcilat not adults."
Ranji calmed himself. He should be looking for a
chance to escape, not wasting his energy arguing with the enemy. "I didn't
mean to imply that I blamed you personally. Only the misguided and misled
organization that organizes your war effort. To do otherwise would not be in
keeping with the higher tenets of the Purpose."
"Of course it wouldn't."
Fifth-of-Medicine's claws clicked together sideways, a gesture his kind used to
express sarcasm. "Your form puzzles me greatly."
"I am wholly Ashregan. If you think otherwise
then you're wasting mind time."
"Truly you must pictures of Humans have seen. I
cannot believe you have never upon the physical similarities remarked."
"I'm aware of the superficial resemblance. Also
the differences," Ranji assured him.
"It would not be beyond the Amplitur to with an
allied species genetically interfere if they believed their goals they could
enhance.'' If this was a development the Weave was aware of but keeping secret
from the general populace, he thought, then a quick strike at the world where
the Amplitur were carrying out their activities might stop it cold.
It shocked him to realize that he had just
promulgated a possible rationale for precisely the kind of massacre their
prisoner insisted had taken place at Houcilat. But surely the S'van, the
Hivistahm would not permit such a thing.
Surely.
"That's nonsense." The prisoner shifted
against his bonds. "The Ashregan are a physically diverse species. Just
because some of us are taller and stronger than the rest doesn't mean we're the
products of some bizarre, not to mention unethical, genetic manipulation."
"It is not for me to determine. You will by
better minds than mine be analyzed and studied." Seeing the look on the
Ashregan's face he added, "I doubt you will to vivisection be subjected.
Do you think truly that we are the barbarians the Amplitur make us out to be?''
"They don't call you barbarians," Ranji
told him.
Sharp teeth clicked in the medic's narrow snout.
"Not directly, no. But they suggest it. Your Amplitur masters at
suggestion very good are."
"They're not our 'masters.' Within the Purpose
all species are equal."
"Have you not Amplitur suggestions been
subjected to?"
"I've had mind contact with a couple,
yes." He said it proudly. "I feel only elevated and honored for the
experience."
"Of course. They would 'suggest' that you feel
that way.''
"I did feel that way," Ranji shot back,
more loudly than he intended.
Fifth-of-Medicine was not in the mood to discuss the
inefficacies of circular logic. Together he and Itepu shoved the finished raft
all the way into the water. It drifted motionless next to the muddy shore,
reassuringly stable.
"Let's go," he told the prisoner. "Do
not anything foolish try. You could perhaps into the river dump us, but my
friend is as at home in the water as on land and you can be sure he would
expend his energies on rescuing me, not you. You could not escape."
Ranji shuffled forward, the restraining log heavy
against his ankles. "Just because I'm a warrior doesn't mean you have to
belabor the obvious."
As Fifth-of-Medicine had anticipated, their
unexpected appearance at the outermost defensive perimeter of the nearest Weave
outpost touched off quite a celebration among the station's astonished
personnel. Tired and dirty but otherwise intact, they were escorted from the
outpost to Weave military headquarters. Not only had they survived the
devastating attack on the Weave's northeastern front, they had made their way
back on foot through hostile terrain, without weapons. And they had brought a
prisoner out with them.
It was the type of exploit expected of Humans or
Massood, not Hivistahm and Lepar.
Though concerned about his mental state,
Fifth-of-Medicine 's colleagues accorded him a place of honor the first time he
joined a meditation circle, and his accumulation of merit was duly and
ceremoniously noted. As for Itepu, the accolades he received were offered
quietly: an occasional congratulatory word, a casual admiring touch. He did not
bathe in them: he was anxious to get back to work.
The initial eagerness of the base's medical staff to
examine the prisoner soon gave way to discouragement as they realized they were
ill equipped to carry out anything like a proper study of the creature. Still,
their necessarily cursory studies only confirmed what Fifth-of-Medicine had
already noted, that being a confusing melange of Human and Ashregan
characteristics in the same body. It was a biological
puzzle the Hivistahm and O'o'yan technicians on Eirrosad did not have a large
enough key to unlock.
It was decided to send the captive out on the next
supply shuttle. A Human would have reacted violently to the news that he was to
be shipped so far from his friends, but their prisoner was not Human. As an
Ashregan soldier trained in the Purpose he acquiesced calmly to the decision,
making only one small and rather quaint request. Though Command thought it
baffling, they graciously consented to its fulfillment.
So while Ranji found himself speeding through
Under-space toward an unknown destination far from Eirrosad and even farther
from his beloved Cossuut, he did not travel alone. More than a few were bemused
as to why the single demand he made was for the company of a particular Lepar.
Headquarters psychologist Third-of-Mind thought he
had an explanation. "Here is an Ashregan prisoner, of mind probing
probably afraid. He knows of the Lepar reputation for simplicity, and knows
personally this particular individual. He will try the Lepar to employ to check
the veracity of what is to him told by others."
The base commander was Massood. It was his task to
try and win a world for the Weave-a world of suffocating humidity and cloying
rain, two meteorological traits he was not particularly fond of. He was not
much interested in the physiological aberrations or mental workings of one
Ashregan prisoner, now blissfully removed from his jurisdiction.
He dismissed the psychologist without comment.
On the ship racing away from Eirrosad's sun,
however, there was more time for curiosity. Everyone was conscious of the
regard in which muttering specialists held the unique passenger, who
communicated his personal requests through the eccentric medium of a Lepar
maintenance worker. They marveled at its size during its occasional escorted
walks through unsensitive portions of the ship. It was far and away the largest
Ashregan any of them had ever seen.
The S Van captain was somewhat disappointed in their
destination. True, there were large and competent scientific facilities on
Omaphil, but it was a Tula world. He would much rather have taken their
prisoner to one inhabited by his own kind.
The option was not available to him. The military
counselors had been quite specific. The Yula settled planet of Omaphil was the
nearest fully developed Weave world to Eirrosad, and for reasons unknowable it
might at some time in the near future be desirable to return the captive to
that contested globe. He stroked his beard reflexively. It might be all right.
Yula was a cosmopolitan place. There would be S'van present to keep an eye on
developments, even if they were not directly involved in the examination
process itself.
There was no reason for him to concern himself with
the prisoner specifically except that the S'van made it a point to concern
themselves with everything. Not that they were overly curious. Merely paranoid.
Yulans in fact comprised a substantial part of the
crew, together with the usual complement of Hivistahm, O'o'yan, Lepar, and
S'van officers. There was also a squad of Massood, who had been suborned from
Eirrosad specifically to keep watch on the captive. As the Ashregan proved to
be a model prisoner, they were able to pass their duty time in comfort.
They were accompanied by a trio of Human soldiers
whose resemblance to the captive provoked a good deal of whispered comment
among the crew. The Ashregan displayed no inclination to seek their company,
however, instead preferring the companionship of the Lepar who had accompanied
him on board. That pleased the more imaginative among the crew, who found the Ashregan's
proximity to look-alike Human soldiers inexplicably unnerving.
Not that the prisoner's preference for the Lepar's
company was any less puzzling. To the average Lepar, a couple of sentences
constituted an extended conversation. What did the Ashregan find to talk about
with his amphibious attendant? The crew amused themselves inventing outrageous
explanations.
With his three legs and three arms, his unusual
tripodal posture, three yellow eyes centered on the flat front end of the
triangular skull, mottled yellow-and-brown fur which bulged from beneath the
skirt of his light-duty uniform, Teoth looked a lot like an overstaffed child's
doll. Though he was no taller than the average Hivistahm, all that fur made him
appear far more massive.
It was real fur, thick a dense as a S Van's beard
though far softer and infinitely better groomed. It covered Teoth's entire
body, including the head and limbs, and its complex pattern of spots defined
his identity.
While not one of the more populous or important races,
the Yula had been part of the Weave for hundreds of years, believed fully in
the cause, and contributed what they could to the resistance against the
Amplitur. They were fully civilized, which meant that they did not participate
in any actual fighting but instead gave aid and support to those who did, like
the Humans and Massood. Which explained their presence aboard the transport
vessel.
The Yula inhabited, not surprisingly, three worlds,
of which Omaphil was the most prominent. Its economy was dominated by
agriculture and light industry, of which only a portion was dedicated to the
war effort. Despite their sensitive galactic location, the Yula enjoyed the
deceptively peaceful existence common to most worlds of both the Weave and the
Purpose. Actual fighting was something that took place elsewhere, on lightly
populated planets, between the primitive species of the Weave and those
unfortunates who had been adjusted for the purpose by the Amplitur.
It was for this reason that Teoth was concerned that
conveyance of this special captive warrior to peaceful Omaphil did not seem to
greatly trouble his fellows. Despite repeated and earnest attempts to discuss
the matter with them, they chose to go about their tasks unconcerned.
He found more sympathy among the perpetually
brooding, always somber Hivistahm. Two in particular, Eighth-of-Records and
Sixth-of-Technics, provided a willing audience for his polemics. They shared
his fear of the prisoner and what it represented.
They usually met in the zero-g bubble, trying to
choose times when it was not too crowded. While others bounced off the soft,
padded walls or drifted through the ever-changing central maze or engaged in
various null-g games, the three conspirators kept out of the way and to
themselves.
Teoth's motives were simple: he did not want to see
some crazed Ashregan fighting machine imported into his world. While most would
insist that a single hostile alien could not pose much of a threat, Teoth would
have violently disagreed. In that respect his attitude was more Hivistahm than
Yula. Certainly that contributed to a unanimity of opinion among the three.
Because of his position, Eighth-of-Records knew as
much about their passenger as anyone aboard. Sixth-of-Technics and Teoth had
caught glimpses of it during its occasional escorted walks through the ship.
Those brief encounters were terrifying enough.
Eighth-of-Records was declaiming softly. "They
say that a new kind of mutant Ashregan fighter it is an example of,
bioengineered by the Amplitur the Humans to counteract. ''
"I wonder how successful it has been,"
murmured Sixth-of-Technics.
"Truly I do not know." His companion's
teeth clicked. "It a secret is. There are rumors, though. As tough as
Humans it is said they are."
' 'Why my world? That is what I want to know.''
Teoth fiddled with his translator, wanting to make certain everything he said
was clearly comprehensible to his Hivistahm companions. "Why not one of
the Massood planets? Or better yet, the Human world, where it could be well and
truly isolated. Were it to get loose there it could not wreak havoc on a
civilized society.''
"You know why," said Sixth-of-Technics.
"Because Omaphil the nearest fully developed Weave world to Eir-rosad
is."
"Council is anxious." The other
Hivistahm's inner, transparent set of eyelids were shut against the bubble's
glare. "They do not what to make of it know."
"Well I know what to make of it." Teoth
was emphatic. "I believe that all the worst rumors are accurate, that this
creature is the latest example of the Amplitur's immoral experiments in
bioengineering."
"There must be more," insisted
Sixth-of-Technics. "The Amplitur would not just a single such creature
release."
Teoth gestured significantly. "Surely you have
heard about what happened on Koba."
"Truly." Eighth-of-Records shuddered.
"Can you imagine what might happen if it were to aboard this ship get
loose?"
"I am less concerned with what happens aboard
this ship than I am about my cherished homeworld." Seeing that he was
starting to rotate, Teoth reached out with two of his three hands to steady
himself against the padded wall.
"If that were to happen, how many cubs would it
kill before it could finally be destroyed? How many homes would it ravage? The
'specialists' admit they know little about it, about its ultimate abilities or
potential. Why subject a peaceful place like Omaphil to their dangerous
experiments?" He focused all three eyes on his companions.
"The Yula have always been willing participants
in the workings of the Weave. So why should they be singled out for additional
risk?''
"They are not singled out being."
Sixth-of-Technics felt compelled to restate the obvious. "The Ashregan is
being there taken for reasons of time and urgency, and proximity to
Eirrosad."
"I am not mollified by the explanations."
Teoth's tone grew less peremptory. "My people are not as mature as yours,
or certain others. They would not deal as well with the knowledge that this
creature had been brought into their midst."
"Sure I am that the intention is to keep its
presence on Omaphil a secret." Sixth-of-Technics hissed softly.
"The Yula believe in openness." Teoth's
fur bristled. "I simply do not agree with any of this, any of it at all.
Is this but the first of many such impositions to be made upon my world? Does
the Weave military council intend to bring all such mutants to Omaphil for
study? What if they should begin to breed in captivity? If one is as rumored
capable of great horrors, what might many do?
"We are not fighters. The Yula are civilized.
We would be helpless in the face of such an onslaught. Massood would have to be
brought in to control the problem, or even worse"-and his distress was
palpable even to the Hivistahm-'' Humans.''
"Truly I would not on my homeworld wish this
being loose," agreed Eighth-of-Records.
' 'Let them take the scientists to Eirrosad if they
wish to study it." Teoth's legs drifted lazily.
Sixth-of-Technics clicked claws together. "What
do you think should be done?"
"I am not sure." Three eyes blinked.
"I am only a simple technician like yourself. But I do know that this
matter is too important to be left to the likes of self-serving
scientists."
A group of gamboling S'van came near, and the trio
went silent until they had passed. "Are you something uncivilized
preparing to propose?"
"I would not think of it that way," Teoth
argued. "I am only saying that those who are closer to the people should
take it upon themselves to carefully monitor the situation."
The two xenologists regarded the prisoner
thoughtfully. Its occasional volubility notwithstanding, it remained as much of
an enigma as when they had first encountered it.
Half the pair was S'van. He was typically short and
squat. A dense black beard practically obscured his face. More thick, wiry hair
was visible where his wrists and ankles emerged from his clothing. His eyebrows
threatened to obscure his vision.
His Massood associate towered over him, her uniform
of ship-duty vest and shorts snug against close-cropped silvery fur, gray cat
eyes alert to the captive's every move, black-tufted ears flicked alertly
forward. Her muzzle and whiskers were in constant motion. As she worked she
picked at her short, sharp teeth, a type of grooming as natural to the Massood
as breathing.
"I don't understand it." The S'van spoke
in a soft, reassuring tone much like the recordings Ranji was familiar with. It
was as tranquil a voice as a Vandir's. Certainly his interrogator was anything
but physically intimidating. Hardly a being to be afraid of, Ranji told
himself. The S'van's manner was at all times cordial and civilized.
The Massood female was much more physically
impressive. Taller man Ranji but not as strong, her attention was concentrated
on the compact device she carried. Probably recording everything he did or
said, he decided. Not that he minded. He had nothing to hide and could do
nothing to prevent it in any event.
He paid close attention as the finely tuned
translator they had given him interpreted their conversation.
"His responses are typically Ashregan,"
the S'van was saying. "Even to the trick questions I composed."
"That is my opinion also." The Massood
gazed at the silent prisoner. "Mentally and emotionally he is completely
Ashregan. Physically he is unique. You have seen the preliminary medical
report?"
The S'van bobbed his head. "Internally he's as
Human as your average soldier from Earth. The differences be tween Humans and Ashregan are
modest, but distinct. In this one they're absent except for the notable
exceptions of the skull and fingers. He displays the familiar Ashregan bony
ridges over recessed ears, the same expanded eye sockets, flattened nose, and
the longer fingers with the extra knuckle on each." He gazed at the pocket
readout screen that rested alight on his lap.
"Of course we're not supposed to concern
ourselves with physiology. That's for others to delve into. We're supposed to
be working on his mind, not his guts."
"What do you intend to do with my mind?"
Ranji inquired politely. "Do you think this will do any good?"
"There!" The S'van xenologist was pleased.
"That's the most Humanlike response he's given yet. No Ashregan would
volunteer such a sarcastic remark in the course of an interrogation."
"I was not being sarcastic." Ranji leaned
back in his chair. "You don't understand my people at all. We may look a
lot like your Humans but our thought processes are completely different . . .
thank the Purpose! Your obtuse-ness on this matter is wearying."
The S'van was not easily baited. "Oh, I don't
know. I think the psychological data base we've managed to construct from
interviews conducted with thousands of your kind down through the centuries has
resulted in a pretty accurate profile of Ashregan thought processes." He
chuckled and stroked his tangled steel-wool beard. Among Weave races the S'van
were reputed to have the most highly developed sense of humor, together with,
perversely, the otherwise utterly barbaric Humans.
"There should be a Human xenologist
present," said the Massood, hastening to add, "I intend no suggestion
of incompetence, D'oud."
"That's all right, though I'm not sure I agree
with you. I don't know that a Human xenologist would bring any more insight to
this process."
"What are you going to do with me?" Ranji
asked them. "Different interrogators give me different answers."
D'oud belched. His Massood companion looked pained.
"You are being taken to a Weave world for study. You confuse us. We are
convinced that you are some type of mutant, though whether natural or induced
it's premature to guess. That will be for the specialists to determine.
"We tend to think that many of your Humanlike
physical characteristics are the result of Amplitur interference, of an attempt
on their part to develop more effective warriors. Bioengineering on a large
scale is standard Amplitur modus. We know from Koba that you are not an
isolated example and that there are others of your physical type."
"I don't have any Human properties." Ranji
controlled his anger. "I'm entirely Ashregan."
"So you have repeatedly insisted." The
S'van's eyes glittered. "I'm sure you're telling the truth as you believe
it. The reality will eventually emerge only from unprejudiced analysis."
The Massood's upper lip curled by way of emphasis.
"Your type is taller, stronger, faster, and according to the reports more
aggressive than the average Ashregan. In short, Humanlike. How the Amplitur
have managed this we do not know, but they can pick apart DNA as easily as I
would dismember a small food animal."
"The Amplitur have done nothing to me. I am
Ashregan and only Ashregan. Analyze all you wish. You'll find nothing to support
your ridiculous suppositions."
The S'van sighed as he flipped off his readout and
rose. Clearly the interview was at an end. It was Ranji's turn to smile.
"I'll be happy to talk with you whenever you
like. There's always the chance of winning an enemy to the Purpose."
The two xenologists departed. "We need much
more in the way of in-depth study facilities," the S'van was saying as he
exited Ranji's cubicle. "These cursory interviews do not-" the door
slid silently shut behind them, cutting him off in mid-declaration.
Shortly thereafter it reopened to admit a familiar
bulbous, guileless face. A student of alien expression would have noted
immediately that the smile with which Ranji greeted this new arrival was quite
different from the one he had so recently bestowed on his interrogators.
"Purposeful greetings to you, Itepu."
"Warm water and light currents." The Lepar
had acquired the habit of bringing Ranji's meals to him personally. It gave
them more time to talk. Itepu enjoyed their conversations, so long as the
Ashregan kept them simple. There was much to learn from him, and Itepu liked to
learn.
Ranji swung his legs off his bed and bent to inspect
the meal. As usual, the foodstuffs were unfamiliar but edible. The ship's
automatic providers knew what to prepare. The Weave had been taking its share
of prisoners for hundreds of years. The workings of Ashregan physiology were
neither mysterious nor complicated. The meals might not delight him, but they
would keep him alive.
His captors were treating him well, even to
providing him with Ashregan eating utensils. He made use of them as the ever
inscrutable Itepu looked on silently.
Their deceptive friendliness did not fool him.
Everything they did was for the sole aim of securing the cooperation of a
valuable specimen, nothing more. If they harbored any illusions about turning
him to their way of thinking they were in for an extended period of
disappointment. He dug into the meal enthusiastically, knowing he would need
his energy for the arguments to come. A prisoner he might be, but that did not
mean he could no longer serve the Purpose.
"How did the session go?" Itepu leaned
back slightly, using his strong tail to balance himself.
Ranji poked something pink and fleshy into his
mouth. Useless to wonder about drugs. He had to eat and drink in order to
survive, and if they wanted to medicate him they could do so at any time
without having to resort to subterfuge.
"I think they went away frustrated." He
chewed as he spoke. "I also think they're a little afraid of me. That's
good. They should be afraid of me." He picked up a lump of baked grains
and glanced across at the Lepar. "You're afraid of me, too, aren't
you?"
"Of course I am. Like any civilized race we
find the very notion of combat unsettling and those species who engage in it
quite terrifying."
Ranji tore a chunk off the brown loaf and waved it
at his visitor. "But you're not as afraid of me as you would be of a
Human."
"The Humans are our allies. I am not afraid of
Humans."
Ranji swallowed. "In addition to fighting, I'm
trained to observe. My interrogators learn from me, I learn from them. I think
you're lying." Itepu said nothing.
"My visitors keep telling me how many Human
characteristics I have, how they've been 'bioengineered' into my friends and me
by the Teachers to enable us to fight more like Humans. I see how they react
when they speak of such things, and it doesn't matter whether they're S'van,
Hivistahm, O'o'yan, or Massood. It's been very enlightening.
"I know from my training and studies that Ashregan
and Humans look a lot alike. It would be foolish of me to try and deny that I
look more like Humans than most of my kind. But that doesn't make me Human, or
mean that my genes have been tampered with. It means only that I'm a taller,
stronger, more dangerous than usual Ashregan. I don't understand why your
scientists keep trying to make something very simple into something much more
complicated."
"I would not know," replied Itepu quietly.
"Such matters are beyond my comprehension."
"Yes. The Lepar are a simple, straightforward
people. That's why we don't understand why you cannot see the benefits of
joining with the Purpose. Despite what is said for public consumption, you are
looked down upon within the Weave. That would not be the case within the Purpose,
where all species are treated as equals. You would be one with the Crigolit and
the Ashregan and the Amplitur Teachers."
"It is true that we are simple." Itepu
spoke slowly and carefully. "But we are intelligent enough to be realists.
No matter what you say, all species are not created equal. Since we realize and
accept this, it does not trouble us. From that realization stems our contented
independence, which we will never trade for some obscure alien ideal."
Ranji sighed and pushed the remnants of his meal
aside. "More skewed thinking. If we are allowed more time together, I hope
to reveal the truth to you."
Itepu gestured with one thick-fingered hand. "I
am touched by your concern for my welfare.''
Stymied by his inability to convince, Ranji reached
for the container of fortified liquid. The contents were pleasantly tart.
"I like you, Itepu. I like you and your fellow
Lepar a great deal. I think that in some ways you represent the best of the
Weave, though you remain as misguided as any. There's an innocence about you,
an honesty, that's absent from your sophisticated allies."
"I like you, too, Ranji-aar. I am glad that I
was permitted to accompany you. It must be a terrible thing to know that one is
so far from one's companions, alone among aliens." A slight quiver ran
through the amphibian, culminating in a sharp twitch of his tail. "I know
that I could not long stand it."
"That's because you're not a fighter. Don't
condemn yourself for lack of abilities you were not born with. Each of us has a
different role to play in this temporary existence."
"In the current that meets itself." Tiny
black eyes regarded him from the middle of an unintentionally comical face.
"Are you so sure you know what your role is?"
"No question about it." Ranji settled back
on the bed. "To fight for the Purpose. To make my family and friends proud
of me."
"As I am sure they are." Itepu
straightened, holding his tail off the floor. He smelled of the scummy water in
which he and his companions spent their off-duty hours. "It must be a
wonderful thing to be so certain of everything, to know always what to do, what
is right and what is wrong. Sadly, the Lepar are a stupid folk. The universe
confuses us. We have difficulty choosing from among infinite possibilities. If
only the cosmos were a simpler place. Then we could be more confident, more
like the S'van, or the Ashregan, or the Aniplitur.''
"The Teachers?" Ranji blinked, surprised.
"Yes. The Lepar think there is much to admire
in the Amplitur. It is their attitude that troubles us. Their attitude, and
their intentions."
"It doesn't have to be like that," said
Ranji earnestly. "You could change."
Itepu touched a wall plate and the door slid aside.
"I think we would rather see the Amplitur change." He paused in the
gap.
"I hope no harm will come to you, Ranji-aar of
the Ashregan. I hope you will live out a long and contented life among your own
kind. There is much about you that intrigues me. Much that I, simple
representative of a simple people, can never hope to understand." The door
closed behind him.
The authorities went to considerable trouble to keep
his arrival a secret. He was the only passenger on the shuttle which
transferred him from the Underspace transport to the surface of Yula. There he
was promptly hustled into a small, self-powered air-repulsion vehicle. It was a
lot like an attack floater save for civilian appointments such as darkened
windows and comfortable seats.
He and his escort sped through a city of modest size
and alien architecture. Soon they were traveling through rolling green hills
dotted with small agricultural establishments. Fields were lush with crops:
green, yellow, brown, and purple. Clearly Yula was a comfortable, prosperous
world. Civilized. Peaceful. Its young people did not run mazes or simulate
warfare.
Ranji felt sorry for them.
The fluffy, fast-moving clouds scudding past
overhead were painful reminders of home. A few raindrops hit the vehicle's
shieldfield and evaporated. He wondered how his parents were doing, how long it
would be before they learned of his disappearance in battle. He tried not to
think of what their reaction would be. Saguio would handle it best of all, he
thought. Cynsa was too young to understand. All of them would take comfort in
the knowledge that he had sacrificed himself fully for the Purpose.
Except that he had not sacrificed himself fully. He
was still alive. As long as he could still think clearly he knew he would not
willingly go on living just to satisfy the misguided curiosity of Weave
scientists. He would find a way to resist, somehow. For the honor of his
parents. For Kouuad, and for doomed Houcilat he was fated never to see.
There might yet be opportunities to serve the
Purpose.
His captors were taking no chances. They had honored
him with an escort of not one but two Humans-both males. A lone Wais driver sat
in solitary splendor in the forward compartment, separated from the prisoner by
a transparent shield. The two males flanked Ranji, their sullen, narrow faces
focused straight ahead. If anything, they looked bored. Ranji was impressed,
but far from awed.
As evidence of the respect in which his captors held
him, he was compelled to travel with his wrists securely bound behind his back.
It was uncomfortable and he said so, but in this one regard, at least, his
captors seemed prepared to act in an uncivilized manner.
He used the travel time to study his escort. They
were the first Humans he'd seen in the flesh whom he was not engaged in trying
to kill. One was quite large, taller and more massive than himself. Its right
ear was plugged with a tiny metallic button from which very faint musical
sounds emerged. Whether that had anything to do with the way he moved in his
seat, occasionally flicking his fingers against each other in the manner of a
nervous Hivistahm, Ranji could not be sure. Certainly it was linked to the
universal translator he also wore.
The Human on his right looked no less competent for
being smaller and slimmer. His skin was extremely dark, especially in contrast
to that of his colleague. Ranji knew that color variance among the species
could be extreme, whereas the Ashregan were all the same golden sepia hue. The
man spent most of the time staring out the window at the rapidly changing
countryside.
They climbed into slightly more rugged terrain.
Fields gave way to orchards and groves of wild trees. A range of snow-capped
mountains materialized in the distance. So far he had seen more Yulans on the
ship than on this world.
No vehicles overtook them, nor did they pass any.
Only a few shot past, traveling in the other direction. Perhaps they were
traversing some kind of restricted route, Ranji mused.
Since everyone had been equipped with translators,
he found himself wondering at the presence of the Wais. Not that their
contribution to the Weave was restricted to translating. They could do other
things almost as well. But he would have expected a Yula or O'o'yan driver.
Possibly the ornate ornithorp was also a scientist, assigned to observe the
specimen as it was conveyed to its eventual destination. He amused himself with
the knowledge that the Wais probably found traveling in the company of two
armed Humans far more unsettling than he did.
The very image of isolated elegance, it never once
turned to look back at its fellow passengers. Ranji considered lurching forward
should it do so, bulging his eyes and baring his teeth. Very likely it would
keel over in a dead faint.
As for trying to imbue the Humans with knowledge of
the Purpose, he knew instinctively that would be a waste of time. Uncivilized
and barbaric as they were, it wouldn't be surprising for them to react with
violence to an attempt at simple conversation. So he sat quietly, held his
peace, and studied the world outside.
They began to slow, and he leaned forward slightly
for a better look. Some kind of attenuated freight transport was traveling
north-to-south perpendicular to their path, forcing their pilot to come to a
complete halt while they waited for the longer, slower machine to pass. The
dark-hued Human shifted irritably in his seat, a disgusted expression on his
face. His larger companion continued to twitch to the strains of unheard music.
Beneath them, the vehicle's repulsion unit idled softly.
Ranji erupted from his seat, spinning to his right,
the fingers of his left hand striking the door-release mechanism in the
combination he'd memorized when he'd first been shoved into the vehicle. As he
landed hard on the darker Human's lap he brought both legs up and over to grip
him tightly around the neck. Twisting, he used powerful calf and thigh muscles
to thrust his captor's upper body explosively forward. The man's skull slammed
into the transparent barrier that separated the front and rear compartments.
Blood splattered as Ranji released the dazed guard and tumbled out backward
through the open door.
' 'Get him!'' the injured man moaned as Ranji felt
the bigger Human's fingers fumbling at his ankles.
Instead of dashing for the nearest trees, Ranji spun
and kicked the startled smaller man directly beneath his chin. Weapon half-drawn,
he collapsed in the doorway, effectively blocking his larger companion from
pursuing. The big Human blurted a stentorian oath and turned to the door on his
side of the vehicle, ripping the music device from his ear and fumbling for his
gun. Clearly the prisoner was either going to sprint into the nearby orchard or
else stand and try to fight with his feet as he'd just demonstrated he was
quite capable of doing.
Instead, as soon as the big man emerged and started
to come around the rear of the vehicle toward him, Ranji jumped back in.
Kicking the dark Human out, Ranji deftly manipulated the door controls with the
toe of his boot, shutting and locking first one door and then the other. He was
now alone in the secured rear compartment with the deceived guard gesticulating
angrily through the window.
Furious, the Human rushed to the front of the
vehicle and yelled at the Wais to open one of the front doors. Unfortunately
for him, the sudden outburst of raw violence had shocked the omithorp into a
quasicataleptic state. It sat staring straight ahead, feathers quivering,
utterly unresponsive. The more the Human ranted and raved, the deeper its
paralysis became. Just as Ranji had hoped.
He could not count on the condition persisting,
however. Hands still bound behind him, he began hunting for a way of accessing
the driver's compartment. His obvious intent only added to the Wais's terror.
His search revealed a small compartment built into
the back of the front section. It contained small, finely machined instruments
of alien design and unknown purpose. There were also a number of thin
transparent cards on whose surface fine etching was visible.
The excluded Human continued to pound on the window
while bellowing untranslatable imprecations.
Ranji turned and carefully removed the cards from
the shallow compartment. His back to the barrier, he tried one after another in
the slot obviously designed to receive them, hoping one would lower the
transparency that separated him from the driver's section. A soft beep accompanied
each insertion, but the barrier did not fall.
The slick plastic band that tightly encircled his
wrists, however, metamorphosed into a handful of foam beads.
Relieved and surprised to have regained the use of
his hands, he ignored the rampaging Human as he tried the rest of the cards.
The last in the pile turned out to be the one he was searching for.
The barrier vanished into the floor. In no
particular hurry, Ranji pocketed the card as he climbed into the empty seat
next to the Wais. It continued to stare straight ahead, resolutely ignoring
him. The big Human was now frantic.
From the moment he'd been placed inside, Ranji had
taken careful note of how the Wais operated the vehicle. After re-raising the
barrier, he removed the control disk from the ornithorp's paralyzed fingers,
pulling it across on its flexible stalk until it was in front of his seat. The
disk was cleverly designed to accommodate a variety of manipulative digits.
The lengthy freight vehicle which had instigated
their delay had long since vanished southward. Experimentally resting his palm
atop the unit, Ranji moved one finger slightly, as he'd seen the Wais do. The
floater drifted forward, the agitated Human having to run to keep up as he
pounded on the glass. Once he aimed his weapon through the transparency, but
Ranji didn't flinch. He was relying on
his importance as a specimen to preserve him from hostile fire.
Sure enough, the Human backed off. But he didn't
give up. Instead he grabbed the dangling rear door and pulled himself in. Once
safely back inside the vehicle he straightened on the seat and carefully aimed
his weapon at the card slot Ranji had utilized to gain entrance to the driver's
compartment.
Ranji's fingers convulsed on the disk. As the rear
door slammed shut, a front one opened. After pounding the disk against the
front part of the compartment until several buttons and switches had been
dislodged, he calmly jumped from the rapidly accelerating vehicle, landing hard
on the ground outside and rolling to his feet.
The look on the Human's face as the vehicle sped
away with him locked securely in the back was worth the pain in Ranji's
shoulder.
The man was going to have to shoot his way into the
front seat (assuming his attempt shorted out the barrier's controls instead of
freezing them) and try to turn the vehicle around or, more likely, call for
assistance on its communications system. It was now traveling too fast for him
to consider duplicating Ranji's leap. Hopefully the control disk had been
damaged too badly to function. In that event the vehicle would not slow down
for quite a while. By then Ranji planned to be deep in the nearby woods.
He trotted back to where the Human he'd kicked lay
on his back, groaning softly. Ranji bent and struck the man just hard enough on
the side of his neck. The moaning stopped, but not his breathing. Killing him
would be against the tenets of the Purpose and would in any event do him no
good.
The man's pockets were full of personal effects
which Ranji ignored. There was a military chronometer, which he took, along
with another set of the ubiquitous etched cards. A small sealed square
contained solid pieces of dark, sweet food. There was also an incongruously
ordinary spool of fine plastic thread. Sadly, when he'd been kicked the man had
dropped his weapon on the floor of the floater's rear compartment.
Straightening, he surveyed his surroundings. He
couldn't count on pursuit delaying too long, especially if the surviving guard
managed to break into the driver's compartment and gain control without
crashing the vehicle. Ranji headed for the thick stand of trees off to his
right, using long strides to try and leave as little in the way of a track as
possible.
The orchard quickly gave way to dense, uncultivated
woods. The terrain grew rougher as flat land was replaced by steep hills cut by
gullies and rivulets. Some were dry, others cuddled running streams which
nourished thick entwined vegetation. There was plenty of good cover. He smiled
as he ran, pretending he was back in the Maze.
Wild fruit was a natural food source which he
planned to sample at the first opportunity. Like the majority of intelligent
species, the Yula were warm-blooded. Hopefully he would be able to eat some of
the same food which nourished them.
His intentions went no further than the next
morning. He could not flee this planet, could not escape to Cossuut or any
other friendly world. From now on his contribution to the war effort would
consist of denying himself to his captors. Beyond that, given time and thought,
he might also be able to do a little more, if only by disrupting the local
peace and tranquillity. He wondered how long the secret of his escape could be
kept from the local populace.
Teoth received the news from Eighth-of-Records, who
because of his job had access to information routinely denied the rest of the
crew. Together with Sixth-of-Technics they had a conference of their own,
during which all of his worst fears were confirmed.
"The creature escaped from the vehicle in which
it was being transported to the study site," the Hivistahm was saying.
"As of the latest information I was able to acquire, despite mounting
efforts to recapture it, it still running free was in the countryside."
"I am not surprised." Teoth scuffed at the
deck with his fore-center leg. "I almost expected something like this to
happen."
Sixth-of-Technics blinked at his friend. "Truly
you do not upset at the news seem."
Three eyes turned to the slightly smaller of the two
Hivistahm. "Why should one be disappointed when one's hopes are about to be
fulfilled?"
The nighttime temperature on this part of Omaphil
was moderate. Despite nerves and lack of facilities, Ranji was able to manage
several hours' sleep.
Upon awakening, he scoured the nearby trees for a
selection of fruit. Tentatively peeling and eating as efficiently as he could,
he filled his belly and then settled down to wait. The queasiness that resulted
was due as much to tension as to anything he'd eaten. Only when he was
confident that the food he had consumed was going to stay down did he allow
himself to drink from the nearby brook.
Morning had brought a number of animals to the
water's edge to quench their thirst. Most were clad in green and blue fur that
seemed too thick for so mild a climate. They ignored him, accepting him as one
of their own as he washed fruit pulp and seeds from his face and hands. Thus
refreshed, he took his bearings by the sun and set off deeper into the forest,
his eventual goal being the high western mountains he'd seen from the vehicle.
They would be frantically searching the length of
the road, he knew, but since he'd waited until the floater was out of sight
before starting off, they wouldn't know which way he'd gone. Nor were his
captors likely to have ready access to tracking specialists on a peaceful, civilized
world like Omaphil. It would take time to bring in trained individuals and
specialized equipment to hunt him down.
He couldn't count on any of that, though. He had to
assume they were already on his trail. The thought did not discourage him. On
the contrary, the more resources they had to divert to tracking him down, the
greater was his contribution to the advance of civilization.
As the day wore on he found himself gaining in
strength and determination as he moved along, keeping to the trees that protected
him from aerial discovery as well as helping to mask his heat signature. The
longer it took for them to locate him, the deeper into the mountains he could
go and the more difficult it would be for them to eventually dig him out. If he
could find a cave system, he might be able to stay hidden for years.
By the third day he had begun to gain some real
altitude. Continued progress now involved climbing as well as simple hiking.
Silently he thanked the Yula settlers who had kept to population centers and
left this portion of Omaphil, at least, in its wild, undeveloped state.
Descending a steep but shallow gorge brought him to
the base of a roaring cataract. Where the foaming waters were sharply bent
westward by an unyielding wall of granite he found a mass of storm-tossed
driftwood that provided him with a fine-grained, water-polished club.
A subsequent search through a pile of splintered
rock produced several sharp triangular chips. His patient efforts to secure one
to the end of the club with fibers drawn from a local plant eventually resulted
in a serviceable if primitive weapon. He swung it in short, experimental arcs,
exulting in the swoosh it made as it swept air aside. Now the means for
defending himself extended beyond mere bare hands.
Hoping to find material from which to fashion a
sling, he pocketed some of the hard round pebbles from the bottom of the stream
as he followed it for a while before striking off again into the brush.
On the fifth day he killed a grazing herbivore. It
was nearly his size, and skinning it with the crude tools at hand was a messy
and time-consuming process. He persevered, however, and when he was through he
had acquired an outer garment which not only would shed rain but disguise his
smell. If he dropped to all fours and imitated the animal's gait, it might be
enough to fool a casual observer into believing they were seeing anything but a
renegade Ashregan.
He had now acquired weapons and camouflage that,
although simple, were a great advance over nothing at all. With luck, his
pursuers would not imagine him capable of such inventiveness.
He was beginning to think he could roam the wild,
heavily vegetated mountains forever when he was nearly surprised by the
Tracker.
Though there had to be many of them on his trail,
this one was alone. No doubt they had spread out to cover as much of the
countryside as possible. The procedure struck him as eminently sensible. Anyone
finding evidence of his presence could immediately call for assistance.
Unless he spotted them first.
The bipedal figure was still some distance away, too
far for him to make out the species without a scope. Probably Massood, he
thought. Their height, sharp vision, and long stride made them notable
Trackers.
Not that it mattered. From now on he would move at
night, when his pursuers were likely to be sleeping, and hide himself during
the day. Either he would outpace them or they would pass him by. He began
searching for his first hiding place.
In this manner he successfully passed the first
week, then a second. No doubt those local authorities whom the Weave had seen
fit to entrust with a minimum of information about his escape were frantic by
now, wondering where in their civilized midst the dangerous escaped warrior
might choose to materialize. Better yet, they might think he'd fallen over a
cliff or perished of hunger and scale down the pursuit.
He was feeling very good about his situation as he
worked his way through a night-shrouded grove of tall, oddly bent trees and
stumbled over the dozing form of the Tracker.
Because of the camouflage blanket, the low mound had
looked like any other clump of earth. Only when he started across did it yield
spongily beneath his feet and emit a startled yelp. A blast of heat lit up the
night and singed his ear as a weapon went off wildly under him.
The blunt side of his club was less urbane, but more
effective.
There were no more shots. The struggling figure
beneath the blanket went limp. Ranji staggered backward a couple of steps and
sat down heavily, gulping air. Everything had happened so fast that he was only
now beginning to sequence the events in retrospect. Gingerly he touched the
left side of his head. He could still feel the heat of the bolt's passing. A
finger length more to the right and it would have gone through his eye. If not
for his extensive training and superb reflexes, he'd be sprawled out on the
ground right now instead of sitting up considering his assailant.
His instinct was to flee. Instead, he forced himself
to approach the motionless shape under the blanket. If it was dead, its
companions would soon learn of its fate by reason of its noncommunicativeness.
Regardless, it might be carrying much he could use.
After pocketing the surprisingly small gun, he
dragged the blanket off the unconscious form and began to fold it neatly. The
Tracker's pack lay near its feet. It was encouragingly full and would ride
easily on his back. That done, he knelt and felt along the furless legs-clearly
not Massood-until he came to the service belt. Undoing the secure-tight he slipped
it around his own waist and was gratified to find that though he had to place
it on the last possible setting, it fit.
Continuing to probe the body in hope of finding
something else useful, he was mildly interested to discover that the Tracker
was female and mammalian, very much like an Ashregan in consistency and shape.
His interest was wholly dispassionate. The notion that anyone would find
contact with a barbaric, half-mad, crazed Human in any way stimulating made him
shudder. Not to mention the fact that the individual in question had just tried
its best to melt his skull.
It moaned softly then, proof that his reflexive blow
with the club hadn't been fatal. When he reached the head his fingers
encountered the thick wetness flowing from the scalp. The figure moaned again,
louder this time.
He considered how to proceed. The thought of killing
another Human did not bother him-he'd done plenty of that on Koba-but the less
damage he inflicted during his period of freedom, the easier it would go on him
if he eventually was recaptured. Neither side had much sympathy for prisoners
who killed while escaping.
A check of the service belt turned up the expected
communications module. With the aid of the translator that had remained in
place in his ear and around his neck during his flight, he might be able to
monitor the other Trackers' positions as they spoke to one another. That would
be more than a little useful.
Ought to be on my way, he mused. Still, if he
lingered until the Tracker regained consciousness, he might be able to acquire
valuable information about the size, disposition, and strength of his pursuit
as well as the countryside in which he found himself. He was not Amplitur and
could not mind-probe, but there were other methods of interrogation-following
which he could always render her unconscious again.
Occupying himself with a cursory search of the
pack's contents in the feeble light of the single small moon, he settled down
to wait.
He dozed off more than once during the night,
awakening each time with a start at the cry or movement of some nocturnal
creature. His concerns were unfounded. The Tracker had not moved.
As soon as darkness began to give way to morning, he
rose and walked to the nearest stream. Using the Tracker's collapsible
purifying cup he scooped water from the surface and returned, putting it to her
lips until she began to cough. Pouring the rest over her face, he settled back
and watched, gun in hand.
She rolled over and blinked without straightening.
When she saw him, she woke up very quickly. Her gaze dropped to his waist,
where her service belt rode snugly, then to his feet, where he had placed her
pack.
He must have made quite a picture, he mused, clad as
he was in her equipment, his Ashregan duty suit, and the rapidly ripening animal
skin. Before speaking, he double-checked his translator settings.
"Sorry I had to hit you so hard, but keep in
mind that you were the one doing the hunting. I stumbled over you in the dark
and you shot at me, so I reacted as necessary. You might've killed me."
"Didn't want to." She had a pleasant
voice, he thought, but then there was little difference between the Human and
Ashregan larynx. "Supposed to bring you in intact. For study.'' Now she
sat up and felt gingerly of the lump on her head where his club had connected.
"You surprised me, too. Might've killed me."
He made an Ashregan gesture of negativity.
"Didn't want to. Keep you alive. For study."
She looked at him sideways, then smiled hesitantly.
As it wasn't a maximum Human smile, with the concomitant obscene baring of
teeth, he was able to observe it without flinching.
He saw the lean muscles start to tense beneath her
clothing and leisurely raised the muzzle of the little heat pistol.
"Please don't. Unnecessary killing distresses those of us who believe in
the Purpose." She relaxed.
"Better. My name is Ranji-aar, though you
probably know that already, along with much else about me. As I find imbalance
in the universe personally displeasing, you will be good enough to supply me
with your name."
She hesitated, then shrugged. If he wanted to, she
knew he could make life uncomfortable for her.
"Trondheim. Heida
Trondheim. You
move fast. You've been giving us a hell of a time."
"Independence is a great motivator."
She turned to face him, straightening her legs as
she rose, leaning against a tree for support. "Enjoy it while you can.
We're closing in on you. This country is swarming with Trackers. Any time now
they're going to start missing me." She studied him with interest.
"You must be pretty special. I'm told that when news of your escape
reached local Command, the authorities went a little nuts."
"Delighted to hear it. As for your friends
closing in on me, they've been closing in on me for days. They just can't seem
to catch me."
Her gaze narrowed. "You don't talk or act like
your average Ashregan. Don't look much like one, either."
He bristled. There it was again, this elementary
emphasis on his appearance. "I'm not average," he growled.
Again her fingers felt of her forehead. "You
sure don't hit average." She tensed again and for the first time he saw
fear in her eyes. "Are you going to kill me?"
"Not unless you make it necessary for me to do
so. I would rather ask you some questions."
"Don't expect me to answer freely."
"You don't have to answer freely." He
gestured with the gun. "Feel free to answer under duress." From her
service belt he removed a small device the size of his middle finger. It was
fashioned of dull gray metal and sported a miniature grid at one end, a single
button at the other. "What does this do?"
Her lips drew into a tight line as she crossed her
arms.
"Very well. I suppose the only way to find out
is to try it." Pointing the grid end at her, he placed his thumb over the
button.
Alarmed, she ducked and raised both hands
defensively. Only after he'd reattached the device to the belt did she
resignedly explain.
"It contains a powerful binary narcoleptic gas
that activates on contact. Designed for close-quarter capture. It's not
harmful."
"I can infer that from your reaction," he
replied dryly.
Again that hesitancy. "I swear you keep joking
with me. The Ashregan don't joke."
"Some of us do."
She sat up again, dusting her shoulder off. "I
studied the pictures they gave us, but they don't begin to suggest how close to
Human your appearance is."
"All Humans and Ashregan look alike," he
replied with the tired air of one who was heartily sick of the subject.
She shook her head. "Not this much. For one
thing you're much too tall, taller than most Human males."
"I have many friends who are considerably
shorter, and others who are taller still. There is considerable physical
variation in both our species."
"It's more than that."
Her intense gaze was making him uncomfortable. If
one disregarded the flattened skull, protruding ears, and tiny eye sockets, she
was almost attractive. Her legs made those of the average Ashregan female look
stunted, though her fingers were far shorter. He was glad of the intensifying
daylight, which tended to emphasize the differences between them.
"We were told that you were one of a group of
specialized Ashregan who've been genetically altered by the Amplitur. Seeing
you in the flesh, I can believe it.''
"I am the Ashregan Unifer Ranji-aar," he
reminded her stiffly. "Your philosophical and physical enemy. Nothing more
than that. Do not think to compose an appeal to any imaginary 'Human'
characteristics you think I possess. You will only be disappointed."
"Well, you talk like an Ashregan, and you act
like an Ashregan, but . . ." She was still dubious. "No wonder
Research and Development wants to look at you so badly."
"I am not flattered."
"This is going to ruin me," she muttered.
"I'll be laughed out of my unit."
"Your personal social difficulties are of no
concern to me." He rose and she shrank back against the tree. "I
don't think you can track me without this." He held up the seeker visor
he'd found in her pack and slowly slipped it over his face, the headband
tightening automatically. Adjustment of its internal controls would provide him
with greatly enhanced vision and a plethora of information on his surroundings.
"With this on, I think your colleagues will
have a harder time 'closing in' on me." He turned away from her to pick up
the backpack.
"Then you're really not going to kill me."
She was still hesitant.
"I've already told you: those who believe in
the Purpose-"
"Yeah, yeah. Some of your allies take a less
exalted attitude on the battlefield."
He took a step toward her. "I'm afraid I'm
going to have to render you unconscious again. Just to preserve my lead. Nothing
personal."
She sighed. "If you must. I hope you trip over
a rock and break both legs. Nothing personal."
He smiled. "I must tell you that your
appearance borders on the attractive."
Her gaze narrowed. "Don't go getting any funny
ideas. We're different species."
"Ah," he said, gratified. "Then you
don't think we're that much alike after all." Holstering the heat gun, he
hefted his club.
Under normal circumstances he wouldn't have been
trapped so easily, but his unnatural attraction to the Human female had made
him careless. The result was that he fell victim to a relatively clumsy ambush.
By the time he realized what was happening it was
too late. Fur bristling, triple eyes staring, the Yula stepped out from behind
the boulder in front of him while the Hivistahm-Hivistahm!-rose from behind the
fallen log off to his right. Each held a stinger focused on different parts of
his body. He didn't recognize the weapons type . . . not that it mattered.
He was furious with himself. A moment ago he'd been
preparing to set off into the real mountains, better equipped to remain at
large than he'd been since his initial escape. Now all was lost. Not to Human
or Massood Trackers, but because of a native and a Hivistahm, noncombatants
both.
The Hivistahm he thought he could outmaneuver, but
he knew nothing of Yula reaction time. The triped spoke through a translator.
"Put your right hand atop your head and drop
the club you hold to the ground, then put your left hand atop your right. Do it
quickly, please!"
As soon as Ranji had complied the Hivistahm bounded
forward and, trembling slightly, removed the heat pistol from the service belt
and retreated.
"Good." The tiny black eyes never wavered.
"Please keep your hands where they are so that I may note the position of
your manipulative digits at all times."
Out of the corner of an eye Ranji saw that the
Hivistahm was still trembling, and he wondered how the highly civilized,
inoffensive creature had been talked into participating in the ambush.
The Human rose and brushed at the back of her suit.
"It's about time relief got here, though I was expecting one of my own
kind. Not that I'm complaining, mind." She started toward him.
"Stop there, please."
Halting, she gaped at the Yula. It had remained
motionless while confronting the prisoner, but under that Human stare it
quivered ever so slightly. Ranji noted the reaction.
"What is this?" she murmured. "I'm
one of the designated Trackers. You two have done well and will be suitably
commended. I'll see to that myself. But you're not trained soldiers. I am. I'm
not trying to steal your thunder. I'll hold the gun while you take my stuff off
him. Then we'll call for a sled to lift us all out of here." She took
another step.
The Yula retreated an equal distance and flicked the
muzzle of its weapon in her direction. "Stay where you are, Human. Do not
make me tell you again. Your presence here complicates matters and I am trying
to decide how to proceed."
Hands atop his head, Ranji watched and waited
silently for an opening.
"You want to take it back alive, to keep it
here on Omaphil for observation and study," the Yula was saying.
"Of course." The woman continued to stare
at the triped.
"I cannot let you do that." Its fluffed-up
fur made the native look twice as big as it actually was. "The thing has
to die."
"What are you talking about?" Trondheim's
gaze was focused on the stinger. "Don't you realize what an impressive
accomplishment this is for one of your species, how you'll be feted when the
word gets out that you and a Hivistahm captured an escaped Ashregan
warrior?"
"We do not want to do anything 'impressive,'
" the Yula told her.
"Truly feted we do not wish to be," added
the Hivistahm.
With the rocking, jerky motion of its kind, the Yula
took a double step toward Ranji. "The thing needs to die. It is a
dangerous mutation, an aberration that could wreak havoc on Omaphil were it to
escape from captivity. As it already has. So much for vaunted government
safeguards." He gestured with the pistol.
"Look at it! Twisted and distorted by the
addition of Human fighting characteristics. Can one imagine anything so
grotesque? It will be better off dead."
"How did you know that I had escaped?"
Ranji asked curiously.
The Yula did something with its tiny mouth which
might have been the equivalent of a smile. "I have well-informed
friends."
"Then your friends should've told you that its
fate is not for you to decide." Trondheim glanced in Ranji's direction.
"There's a sled on its way here now. How are you going to explain their
dead specimen to them when they arrive?"
"We did not think of that.'' The Hivistahm
scanned the sky uneasily. "Truly we did not think of that."
"Be quiet!" Teoth snapped. "The
female attempts to preserve the monster's life with the aid of a
fabrication." He aimed the pistol. "This will only take an instant
and then we will be away from this place."
"As a Human soldier of the Weave I am ordering
you to turn your weapons and this prisoner over to me!" Trondheim took a
step toward the triped, eyes glittering. "Or are you going to shoot me,
too?"
"You may kill me after, but that does not
matter." Teoth was calm, anesthetized by the prospect of incipient
martyrdom. "My life is not important. I gladly die to preserve my world
from this creature. If word of its presence was made known there would be
panic. The Weave had no right to bring it here. Omaphil is peaceful and
civilized. I shall insure that it so remains." It looked back at Ranji.
"Do not attempt to convince me otherwise. I was
on the ship with it. I watched, and I know.''
"Word won't get out," Trondheim told him.
Teoth made a gargling sound deep in his throat.
"It has already escaped custody once."
"It won't happen again." She spoke slowly
and deliberately.
For the first time, the Yula seemed to hesitate.
"Can you guarantee that? Can you assure it beyond doubt? I think not. Its
presence here says not. Better it should die."
Trondheim advanced another step and extended a hand.
She was quite close to the native now, Ranji noted. "I'm afraid I can't
allow that. If you're going to shoot it, then you're going to have to kill me,
too. Now give me that pistol.''
The use of the Human command tone shook Ranji
slightly. Unsurprisingly, it rattled the Yula even more. As soon as the
weapon's muzzle had drifted sufficiently toward the woman, Ranji moved.
The sandy gravel he kicked up struck the Yula in the
face. It uttered a high-pitched squeak, dropped the gun, and clawed at its eyes
with the instinctive reaction of a nonfighter. Ranji pivoted and leaped to
within arm's length of the Hivistahm. Bug-eyed, it fired wildly as Trondheim
dove for cover. Neatly severed by the stinger, a large branch tumbled from a
nearby tree.
As he landed Ranji brought his closed fist around in
a sweeping arc to strike the Hivistahm in the left eye. Fragile occipital bones
crunched and blood squirted. The much smaller, reptilian creature gave a slight
shudder and collapsed onto its haunches, then onto its side.
Brushing grit from sensitive eyes, the Yula bent its
fore-center leg and reached to recover its weapon. As it did soRanji spied a
fist-sized stone, snatched it up, aimed and threw all in one motion. A Human or
Massood might have been able to dodge, but the Yula was not nearly so quick.
The rock struck it above the middle eye, denting fur and bone both. It exhaled
reverberantly and fell backward.
Panting hard, he stood wondering at the psychosis
which would drive a Yula and Hivistahm to such a confrontation. Before he could
come up with any answers, something heavy hit him in the ribs. Much more massive
than a Yula or Hivistahm, it sent him sprawling.
Trondheim rolled off him and scrambled for the
pistol still clutched in the motionless Hivistahm's fingers. Ignoring the pain
in his side, Ranji flung himself in pursuit, landing on the back of her thighs.
She twisted and pain shot through his whole body as her elbow connected with
his nose.
Wrenching the pistol from the unconscious alien, she
whirled and fired, aiming to wound, not kill. Ranji froze, waiting for the bolt
from the stinger to take effect. Nothing happened. Frowning, she sighted
carefully along the barrel and fired again.
An unsmiling Ranji climbed to his feet and charged.
It all made perfect sense. The Yula had been very
much in command, just as it had been quite mad. Not being possessed by a
similarly extreme form of insanity, the Hivistahm had agreed to provide backup
. . . but could not bring itself to handle a loaded weapon capable of killing
another intelligent being. The stinger it had carried was not charged. It
didn't really need to be, since their quarry wouldn't know otherwise.
He did now.
Trondheim threw the useless weapon at him and made a
dive for the Yula's gun. She would have beaten a normal Ashregan to it, but not
Ranji. It was his turn to hit her hard in the ribs. She wheezed painfully and
tried to use the elbow again, but this time he was ready for it and the blow
caught him harmlessly on the shoulder. As it did so he brought the edge of his
palm down against the side of her neck and she went limp.
Panting hard, he rose slowly and picked up the
Yula's stinger, not taking his eyes off her as he did so. Next he walked back
to the Hivistahm and recovered her heat pistol. Only then did he allow himself
to relax a little. He took his time rearranging the backpack and service belt, sorting
through the pack's contents as he waited for her partial paralysis to wear off.
Finally she sat up, rubbing her neck and staring at
him. "You're very good." The admission came grudgingly. "More
than just quick. A lot more. Better than any Ashregan I ever heard about."
"Thank you." He straightened his
translator, which had been knocked askew but not broken during the fight.
"Not only don't you fight like any Ashregan,
you don't even feel like an Ashregan."
"And how many Ashregan have you felt? Not that
I understand what you're saying."
"Your bones, your muscles. They're too dense.
It's one of the traits that makes Humans so tough. Our bones aren't hollow like
those of most other intelligent species and we have more muscle fibers, so
we're stronger and heavier. Strength and mass aren't Ashregan characteristics.
You felt like a Human, not an Ashregan."
"I reiterate: How many Ashregan have you
felt?"
She didn't look away. "I'm only repeating what
I learned in training."
"Weave intelligence is far from perfect."
Try as he might he couldn't just brush her observations aside, not least
because the Hivistahm and Lepar who had captured him on Eirrosad had made much
of similar observations.
"So you're what the Amplitur have been up to.
It makes sense. Genetically you're their nearest allies to us, so you'd be the
easiest to imbue with Human characteristics. Be a helluva lot harder with an
Acaria or Korath. Doesn't it make you think?''
"About what? I think only of the Purpose."
"Well, think about this for a change. If the
squids keep screwing with your racial DNA, how long before you become more
bastardized Human than honest Ashregan?"
"That is not possible," he insisted. But
the notion upset him.
"Isn't it? The squids play with DNA the way a
kid does with building blocks. How do you know what they are and aren't capable
of? We've never underestimated them. Why should you? Look at yourself: Human
size, muscles, bone density, reflexes. How do you know what the hell you are?
How much of you is still Ashregan?''
Ranji was silent for a long moment. "My mind is
all Ashregan," he said finally. "So are my intentions. I have been
privileged to experience mind-to-mind contact with the Teachers themselves, to
receive accolades and advice from them directly. No Human could do that. Your
nervous system would react violently and defensively."
Trondheim considered. "All that proves is that
your nervous system is still Ashregan. Externally, except for your skull and
hands, the rest of you is as Human as me or any of my cohorts."
"Appearances mean nothing." The assurance
Ranji voiced so readily did not extend to his thoughts. What was he, really?
A servant of the Purpose, he reminded himself
firmly. Biological coincidences notwithstanding. He indicated the badly injured
Yula and Hivistahm.
"The more contact I have with representatives
of the Weave, the more convinced I am of the righteousness of the cause. Your
governments fight, your organizations argue, and as individuals you spend much
of your time engaged in petty internecine squabbling. I want no part of
that."
"You haven't been given a choice."
He eyed her derisively. "Did you notice that
your so-called friends and allies feared the threat of attack from you more
than from me? What kind of higher civilization is that?"
She glanced down at the unconscious Yula.
"These two were extremists. Probably mentally unbalanced as well."
"But what if they were not? What if their
greater fear of you was the sensible, intelligent attitude to take?"
"We're not exactly universally popular
throughout the Weave. But we're respected. I have a number of non-Human
friends."
"Are you so certain? Or do they just force
themselves to be pleasant when in your company so as not to offend you?"
"Hey. you're the one we're discussing here. For
better or worse, I know what I am." She sounded sad. "The Amplitur
and their damn 'Purpose.' Look what they've done to your people. Not to mention
the Molitar, and the Segunians, and the poor Wadir. Turned them into soldiers,
fighters for the Amplitur cause, when all they want is to be left alone."
"No race wants to be 'left alone,' " Ranji
told her.
"My kind does."
He hoped his response would translate. "I rest
my case."
She sighed and sat down on a nearby log, careful to
keep both hands where he could see them. "Doesn't it bother you that your
supposed 'Teachers' might have messed with your genetic makeup without your
knowledge or consent, might've been busily splicing your genes like toy cutouts
while you were still in the womb?"
"Nothing like that took place. Nothing like that
would be allowed to take place."
"How do you know? Because they told you so? You
must know how forceful their 'suggestions' can be."
"I am Ashregan," he all but shouted.
"Not the product of genetic engineering!"
"No," she murmured almost pityingly.
"Just the byproduct."
"I don't need to think about it. I know."
She eyed him intently. "Maybe you do. Maybe you
do. But I think you're either a greatly gifted liar or else you've been
completely mindwashed by the squids." She rose and he tensed slightly, but
she made no move toward him.
"Well, it's obvious I'm not going to convince
you otherwise. Maybe this one was right." She prodded the prone Yula with
a foot. "Maybe it'd be better if he had shot you." She looked back at
him. "If you're going to knock me out, get on with it. I'm fed up with
trying to talk to someone who's unable to speak for himself. I don't blame you;
it's not your fault. But it's boring, and I'm tired."
Ranji rose and drew the little cylinder full of
sleep gas from the service belt. Despite her outward show of bravado he saw her
flinch expectantly. He hesitated.
"Perhaps I will allow you to remain conscious
for a while yet. Every time you open your mouth you tell me something
useful."
"Then you're easily sated."
"Yes," he told her, pleased with his
decision, "I think that for now I'll have you accompany me. If you become
too much of a burden there are always the alternatives." He looked back
the way he'd come. "And if your peers are closing in on us, it would be
useful to have a hostage."
"So now I'm a hostage?" Her eyebrows
arched. "What makes you think I won't break your neck the first time you
doze off, or shove you over the nearest cliff the next time you relax?"
"Nothing," he told her blandly. "The
implied threat of your company will help to keep me alert." He smiled
thinly. "Keep in mind that if you do try something like that I may not
have time to gauge my response. Keep in mind also that if your theory is
correct and certain of my abilities and characteristics have been bioengineered
into me by the Amplitur, I may also possess abilities you know nothing about
and cannot imagine."
There! he thought with satisfaction. That's got her
thinking. "Did I not just defeat you?"
"Yeah, you did," she admitted, downcast.
"But you surprised me in my sleep. I wasn't ready for you. And I was
expecting to have to fight an Ashregan. A bigger, tougher version of an
Ashregan, but an Ashregan nonetheless. You," and she gave him another of
her uninterpretable looks, "you're something different."
"Remember that as we walk." He put the
sleep canister back on the belt, hefted the backpack, and slid the seeker visor
down over his eyes. Then he gestured with the Yula's stinger. "I think
it's time we moved away from here."
She started off in the indicated direction, glancing
back over a shoulder as she spoke. "You won't find anything up there. I've
seen the topos. It gets rugged and steep and there's no serious climbing
equipment in that pack."
"I'm not concerned. I have you to test any
dangerous places for me. Since you'll be walking in front, I think I can rely
on you to choose the safest path."
She stared back at him as if trying to see past the
Ashregan mask, past the narrow-minded dedication, to the real individual
within. Then she shrugged and turned away from him.
Later that night she said, "You're awfully
young to be a Unifer. That's a command rank among your kind."
Pistol close at hand, he kept an eye on her as he
ate ravenously from one of the self-heating food packs he'd found among her
supplies. "Humans also advance rapidly."
"Yeah, but we're born to be warriors. We don't
have to be 'suggested' into it."
Finishing the food, he carefully slipped the empty
packet into a hole dug for the purpose and covered it over. "You Humans.
You're as unfamiliar with the other races as you are with the Purpose. All you
know is fighting and killing."
She smiled. "It's something we're good
at." Of apology in her confession there was none. "We know other
things, too. But when you get a reputation for something ..." She paused a
moment, then slid closer to him. "You're so damn Human-looking. Except for
that face, and your fingers. A keyboardist's fingers."
He picked up the pistol. "That's close
enough."
"Take it easy. I just want to see something.
You've got the gun. If I make any sudden moves you can shoot me."
Slowly she reached out and gently traced the ridge
of bone that ran from the back of his right cheek along the side of his face
and up over his recessed ear. Her fingers withdrew, touched the flattened nose,
and retreated. His skin tingled from the brief contact.
"Well, it's real, all right," she said,
sitting back.
"Of course it's real. What did you expect?
Plastic?"
"I don't know." She sounded somehow
disappointed. "It's just that the rest of you is so Human. I half expected
everything else to be fake."
"Nothing about me is fake," he told her.
When she didn't comment he opened another of the
food packets and waited patiently for it to heat. Steam began to issue from the
perforated lid as the container expanded, drawing moisture from the air as it
cooked. The result was chewy and full of meat bits.
When he'd finished half he offered her the rest.
Without hesitation she accepted and ate, scouring the packet clean.
A quick search of the area turned up a hollow filled
with small branches, leaves, and other forest detritus. After hanging the
backpack and service belt high in a nearby tree, he bunched the debris into a
soft bed. She was clearly surprised when he offered it to her.
"This is for my comfort, not yours," he
explained. "There's no way you can roll off that or even stand up without
crunching dried stuff and making noise. I'm a light sleeper and I have very
good hearing."
She eyed the mound of dry fluff. "Sometimes I
toss in my sleep."
He gestured with the stinger. "Better train
yourself fast to lie quietly.''
When he awoke just before dawn the mound was empty.
But she had not fled. Instead he was startled to find her curled up against
him. He reached for the pistol, only to have her hand cover his. The resultant
struggle was brief, and indifferent.
She was extremely close and she felt very Ashregan.
"It's all right," she whispered. "You
probably can break my neck if you want to. But there were things I wanted to,
had to know. I got curious, that's all. I'm only Human." She pulled away
slightly.
"That doesn't explain why you're still
here."
She rolled onto her back, staring at the sky.
"I'm not sure I've got a better explanation. All I know is that you
could've shot me, back there. You didn't."
"I've already explained that. You're useful
both as a source of information and as a hostage." He was watching her
closely. "There has to be more to it than that."
She seemed to reach some critical inner decision.
"It doesn't matter. My colleagues are going to run you to ground eventually.
Damn my curiosity. I didn't really want to be a Tracker. I should've gone into
Research." She moved against him anew.
He sensed it was not to attack.
When he awoke the following morning she was sitting
off to one side, deep in contemplation. The thin stick protruding from her lips
gave off wisps of aromatic smoke at periodic intervals, Reflexively, his
fingers felt for the pistol.
It wasn't there.
Nor were they alone any longer. Three other Humans
sat off to his right. The two males were enjoying their morning meal while
their female companion paid close attention to Ranji, the grid of the narco
cylinder held firmly in her left hand aimed unwaveringly at his face.
Seeing that he was awake, the nearest male turned in
his direction and spoke politely through a translator.
"We decided to let you sleep. After the race
you've ran us we figured you must be exhausted, and we want to deliver you in
good condition. Don't think we'd have caught up with you yet if we'd done much
sleeping ourselves."
His gaze shifted from the new arrivals to the Human
Heida Trondheim. She sat parallel to him on a smooth rock, her slim form
outlined against the rising sun, knees drawn halfway up to her chest.
"Sorry," she said. "I told you my
friends would catch up with us."
"I thought-" he started to reply. What had
he thought? What could he conceivably have been thinking?
It was simple enough. He hadn't been thinking. If
he'd been thinking he would have shot her.
He'd been very tired, and she had been warm, and
comforting, and understanding, and had raised intriguing issues of mutual
interest, and the two of them had been very alone.
The look on his face must have been close enough to
its Human equivalent for her to recognize. "You know, I thought about
helping you stay free for a while. I really did." She shifted her legs
around. "It must be terrible to be all alone so far from friends and
family and familiar surroundings. But it would only have postponed the
inevitable, and you had two loaded weapons. You might've shot at someone, and
they might've shot back. I didn't want to see you killed."
"Why should you care?" He stared
searchingly. "What difference does it make to you what happens to one
enemy soldier?"
"Because I'm not sure you are an enemy."
She sucked on the slim, silvery stick. Fragrant haze momentarily obscured her
expression.
One of her male counterparts glanced at her. '
'What's that supposed to mean, Heida?"
"Have you looked at him? I mean, taken a really
good, close look at him?"
The woman holding the gun on Ranji responded.
"We all saw the images. They were pretty detailed. He's supposed to be
some kind of a cross, isn't he? A mutated Ashregan?''
"Maybe," Trondheim murmured. "Or
maybe something else."
"Not our business to propose answers.'' The man
pulled a tab on his empty meal pack and watched as it turned to biodegradable
powder. "We track; Research and Development pontificates.''
Ranji marveled at his calmness. He could have been
angry at her but he wasn't. After all, it wasn't as if she'd betrayed an intimacy.
Their brief interaction had been nothing more than a scientific experiment.
She'd as much as said so. They were representatives, albeit compatible
representatives, of two different species. She could not "betray" him
if she wanted to.
If he was angry at anyone it was at himself. For
succumbing, for letting down his guard. He drew what consolation he could from
the knowledge that nothing in his training had prepared him for what had
transpired the previous night.
They were very careful with him this time. Everyone
had heard the story of his escape, and they were determined not to repeat the
error of his earlier escort. The sled that arrived to pluck the Trackers and
their prisoner off the mountain carne equipped with limb restraints and a
lockable compartment hastily installed for the benefit of a single important
guest. It afforded him privacy while easing the minds of his hosts.
He saw Heida Trondheim several times during the
flight back down the mountain as the sled retraced in minutes terrain it had
taken him days to cross on foot, but they did not speak. He did not feel so
inclined and she appeared uncertain and hesitant.
The sled sped through orchards and across fields of
rippling grains. Eventually it approached another range of mountains, lower and
less impressive than those which had given Ranji temporary shelter. The sled
hovered while a barrier in one yellow-brown hillside parted. It closed behind
the vehicle as it ducked inside.
He'd expected an underground base. The Weave would
not be likely to place it on the surface where the import of its presence might
disturb the civilized inhabitants.
The apartment they gave him was spacious, even
luxurious, his quarters commensurate with the importance they attached to him.
That did not make it any less a cell. There were scenic viewscreens on which he
could call up custom landscapes, but no windows. A cursory inspection of his
new home suggested strongly that he would not be escaping it any time soon.
Well, he had managed to unsettle them for a couple
of weeks, he still had the tenets of the Purpose to console him, and he was
alive and intact. Opportunities to create mischief might again present
themselves.
He was provided with captured or synthesized
Ashregan entertainment and food. It was rather more hospitality than he would
have expected from Humans, but then he'd seen no Humans since his arrival.
Apparently the base was staffed principally by Hivistahm, O'o'yan, S'van, and
of course, Yula. One day a chelatinous, alien Turlog stopped by to gaze inscrutably,
its eyes weaving lazily at the tips of extensible stalks, but no Humans came to
visit him.
There were periodic interview sessions conducted by
methodical Hivistahm and, once, a pair of Massood. He spoke freely about
himself, refusing only those queries which he thought might have some slight
military value. They did not press him on those questions he declined to
answer. Not yet. This was because they were far more interested in him than in
any information he carried.
The medical tests and examinations were far more
intimidating, though he was never hurt or subjected to any painful stimulation.
It was the unfamiliarity of the equipment and procedures, the fact that he had
no idea what to expect, that he found daunting.
Once they slid him on a pallet into a machine that
enclosed him like a cylindrical coffin and bathed his body in light of
alternating colors and intensity. As with similar tests, he emerged physically
unscathed but mentally apprehensive, and as always no unpleasant aftereffects
resulted.
They took samples of his blood, of his waste and his
skin, hair, and bone. He was probed and prodded, scanned and scoped, calibrated
and appraised. It went on endlessly. In all that time he, saw not a single
Human, and why should he? They were soldiers, warriors, not scientists and
research specialists. They did not study; they destroyed.
He was not especially displeased, only piqued by
their absence. It would have been disconcerting, for example, for Heida
Trondheim to have been among the personnel examining him. Far easier to remain
dispassionate and aloof in the presence of querulous Hivistahm and S'van.
The idea of suicide did not occur to him. That was
an alien concept familiar to him only from studies. Killing oneself constituted
an offense against the Purpose by depriving it of an otherwise undamaged and
potentially contributory intelligent mind. It was a gesture that could be
conceived of only by truly alien beings. Like Humans.
He was not let in on his examiners' discussions and
so had no idea if their extensive studies of him were resulting in anything
useful. When not under observation he tried to relax as best he could,
maintaining mental alertness and physical conditioning so that in the event his
captors grew lazy or overconfident he would be ready to seize any opportunity
to escape or cause trouble that might present itself. While one lived, one
could still serve the Purpose.
Twice a day they took him topside, as he came to
think of it, for a stroll in a secluded, fenced, parklike area, where he could
exercise, bask in the sun, and smell cultivated Omaphilian flora. Though only a
single guard accompanied him on his sojourns, he did not delude himself into
thinking he could get more than a few steps away from the complex by climbing
the vine-covered wall. They would be alert for anything so obvious; therefore,
he made no moves in that direction. His captors were not stupid. The presence
of only a single escort was proof in itself no others were needed.
So he spent his time learning the names of various
trees and flowers, and toying with the odd-shaped pink-hued fish and
multishelled domesticated cephalopods that swam in the garden's central pool.
Once while he was topside it rained, and the evident delight he took in the
unfettered natural phenomenon almost moved his Massood guard to sympathy.
Almost.
Then came a day when the routine was broken. He knew
it was going to be different when Humans instead of Massood arrived to escort
him. As they exited the familiar elevator they turned him left instead of
right.
' 'What's up? Where are we going?''
The big, burly dark-skinned Human on his immediate
right didn't reply. He earned what appeared to be an unnecessarily large
weapon. Ranji eyed it longingly, but knew that even if he could appropriate it,
it would do him no good to do so. Each weapon here was attuned to its
individual owner's unique electrical signature and no one else, not another
guard and certainly not a prisoner, could make it fire.
"Is something the matter?" The farther
they walked, the larger unpleasant thoughts loomed in his imagination.
"I'm not scheduled for anything at this time of day."
"Look, buddy, I don't know nothing." The
translator managed to convey the other Human's gruffness along with his words.
"I'm just taking you where I'm supposed to. I don't know what happens
after you get there any better than you do, understand?"
"I understand," Ranji replied, though he
didn't.
They took him to a room he hadn't visited before. In
addition to a small table and chairs it contained the ubiquitous wall-mounted
communications screen, some medical equipment of modest complexity, couches,
and potted plants. Except for the instruments it looked more like a lounge than
an examination room. He thought it deceptively welcoming in appearance.
Not unlike Heida Trondheim, he thought. She sat on
one of the couches and turned in his direction as soon as he entered. Instead
of her camouflaged Tracker gear she wore a light rust-and-white-colored
uniform. Detailed patches lined her right sleeve. He was surprised to see her
but uncertain whether to be pleased.
Two other Humans looked up from the medical
equipment. One was exceptionally short, almost as short as a S'van. Ranji knew
it was not a member of that highly intelligent race because of the absence of the
characteristic S'van hirsuteness. Both wore identical high-necked
beige-and-black suits. Neither looked much like a warrior.
The room's population included a Massood of advanced
maturity. She was slightly stooped, and most of her cranial and facial fur had
aged to a rich silver hue. Ranji had no idea if it was due to her many years or
to other circumstances, but for one of her kind she was unusually
self-possessed. Her whiskers and nose hardly twitched at all as she examined
the new arrival. She was surrounded by several Hivistahm and O'o'yan but,
rather surprisingly, no S'van or Wais.
The two guards remained outside, flanking the open
door. A farrago of round and vertical pupils stared back at him.
' 'Please sit down.'' The taller of the two Humans
spoke perfect Ashregan. Startled, Ranji complied. Obstinacy would gain him
nothing, and besides, rejection for its own sake burned proteins.
There followed a pause as awkward as it was brief
before a mature, extremely self-possessed Hivistahm approached him.
"I am First-of-Surgery." The scaly green
alien studied him with a fearlessness remarkable for one of his kind. Or
perhaps, Ranji decided, it was merely scientific detachment. Whichever, he was
duly impressed. "I the honor have in charge of the examination to be
placed.''
"Examination?" Ranji determinedly avoided
looking in Heida Trondheim's direction. "What are you charged with
'examining'?"
"You. Truly it has enlightening been to observe
you these past weeks."
"Sorry I can't say the same." He indicated
the assemblage with a sweep of his hand and was gratified to see several of
those present flinch. "Why the party? Are you going to let me go?" He
smiled thinly.
"Actually, we are not quite sure what to do
with you." Ranji turned toward the speaker. The shorter Human's Ashregan
was not as fluent as that of his companion, but despite an atrocious accent his
words were comprehensible. "You are an anomaly."
"So I've been told. I'm glad you're
confused."
"Perhaps you can that help us to resolve,"
the Hivis-tahm hissed softly. "We would like you some pictures to look
at."
In response to his gesture an O'o'yan handed him an
oversized plastic envelope. Delicate fingers explored the interior, brought
forth a rectangular tridimensional image.
"This the interior of your brain is."
Warily Ranji turned his attention to the flat sheet,
conscious of the fact that everyone in the room was watching him intently.
Heida Trondheim, too? He chose to aifect indifference.
After careful consideration he handed it back to the
surgeon. ' 'Is there something here that's supposed to surprise me? I see an
Ashregan brain. Nothing more."
"For the moment I would simply like you at all
of these to look. Elucidation will follow." The Hivistahm patiently passed
Ranji two more sheets. He glanced at each before returning them. They were side
and front views of the first.
The fourth was different.
"This a close-up image of one small part of
your brain is. Truly much reduced." The surgeon extracted still another
sheet. "And this another." A slim-boned finger tapped the plastic,
the finely manicured claw seeming to sink into the image. "I ask that you
in particular note the minuscule white spot which has been in deep red
color-enhanced. ''
Ranji's gaze narrowed momentarily before he once
more passed the sheet back. "Glad to oblige. Anything else?" So
suffused in droll solemnity was the gathering that he nearly burst out
laughing. "I'm afraid that as revelations go this misses the mark. I've
seen pictures of my insides before."
"I am certain that you have." First-of-Surgery
hung close. "If you do not object I should like for you your attention to
devote to them one more time."
Ranji sighed. If this was some kind of test, at
least it was less discomfiting than others he had undergone.
"This picture here, for example." The
Hivistahm removed a compact indicator from a vest pocket and used it to
highlight portions of the image. "Do you see these points . . . here,
here, and here?" The indicator shifted precisely as he spoke.
Ranji squinted, unimpressed. "What about them?
Am I supposed to volunteer identification? They could be bits of bone, or blood
vessels. You're the surgeon, not I. If you're offering me lessons on my own
physiology, I don't need any.''
"Truly that to be seen remains." The
indicator moved anew. "These are grafting points." Wide slitted eyes
gazed up at him, both eyelids drawn back. "You no comment have?''
Ranji blinked at the image, trying to make sense of
what the Hivistahm was saying. What was the object of all this, anyway? Why
were there so many of them in the room, and why were they all watching him so
closely? What did it matter if such things were inside his head, or anywhere
else in his body?
"No, I don't have any comment." He tapped
the plastic. "This means nothing to me. Should it?"
"It should indeed." The surgeon removed
another of the sheets. "That the right side of your skull was. This the
left is. On this one you will see three additional points. Note that as to
location they are to the previous three identical. It is thought that this work
very early was carried out."
"Still means nothing to me." Ranji was
cautiously indifferent. "Does it mean something to you?"
"Truly. It tells me that the prominent bony
ridges which just beneath each of your eyes begin and over your ears and into
the back of your skull run are not natural, but rather the result of prenatal
osteoplasty.''
Ranji started to reply, hesitated, instead said
slowly, "I don't know what you're talking about."
"Permit me." First-of-Surgery strained on
the toes of his sandals to reach the right side of Ranji's face. With a clawed
finger he delicately traced the prominent bony line which dominated each side
of the prisoner's skull.
"These are to you not natural. They are of
surgery and implants the result. Your skin was similarly modified to allow for
the additional unnatural projections. The same sort of modification has to your
occipital orbits, ears, and fingers been done. Everything carried out was
before you were born, before your bones time to set had.
"To insure that such work 'takes' without
interfering with the natural process of bone maturation and fusion requires
skills we do not possess. Only one species at bioengineering so clever
is." He replaced the current sheet with a new one.
"See here, your hands. Again the grafting
points." Ranji stared without comprehending.
"But ... if any of what you say is true,
why?"
The Hivistahm's teeth clicked softly. "To give
you the appearance of an Ashregan. If one backward works to delete these points
and their projected effects, the result is a quite different skeleton." He
hesitated and took a step away from the prisoner. "Truly truly what one
has is not a mutant Ashregan, but a normal Human."
Ranji snorted derisively. "That's crazy."
First-of-Surgery slipped the pictures back into their
protective envelope. "The rest of your body-your muscular structure,
density, organ placement and function, sensitivity of sense,
everything-comfortably within Human-normal parameters sits. You grade out
high-end Homo sapiens, not off-the-scale Ashregan. You are as Human as the
three others in this room.''
The prisoner's gaze darted reflexively to the
Ashregan-fluent woman and her squat male associate. They stared evenly back at
him.
"This is more than aberrant; it's insane. No,
it's more subtle than that. You're all trying to trick me. You've got some
ulterior purpose in mind and in order to carry it through you need to confuse
and trick me. You might as well forget it. I'm not so easily fooled."
"Perhaps not," said the short Human,
"but you're not stupid, either. You scored as high in intelligence as you
did in everything else. Environmental factors aside, scanner tridis aside,
can't you tell just by looking at yourself that you're more Human than
Ashregan?" His companion took up the refrain.
"No Ashregan ever grew bones as dense as yours,
or had such median muscular strength. No Ashregan ever had your reflexes or
striking ability." The emphasis on the elements of the ruse he expected
and was prepared for, but not the imploring tone in her voice.
Still he remained perfectly composed. "I
concede that I may have been slightly altered to give me certain specific Human
fighting characteristics and abilities. That conclusion's inevitable and I no
longer try to deny it." Comments in different tongues filled the room.
"Nor does it trouble me. Obviously such information needs to be withheld
from children and young adults since they are not sufficiently mature to cope
with it. Whereas as an adult I can understand what was done and why. So what if
maybe I've been physically enhanced in order to better serve the Purpose? I see
nothing sinister in that."
"Truly it no wonder is how confused you
are," First-of-Surgery said. "You still do not see."
"See what?" Ranji snapped impatiently.
He'd had about enough of this nonsense.
"That you are not an Ashregan to whom Human
characteristics given have been, but a Human into whom Ashregan features have
been engineered. We have your genome pattern scanned and found the alterations
which will enable you to pass on these features to your offspring. They into
your genes have been induced. The Amplitur the long view take.
"To the Amplitur you are a warrior only second,
Ranji-aar, and breeding material first."
He waited until he was sure he was still in complete
control of himself before responding. "If everything you claim is true,
then how do you explain my parents? My memories, my homeworld? The Houcilat
outrage?"
"We've been doing some research, using as a
starting point some of the things you've told us." The woman's manner was
far more soothing than anything Ranji would ever have associated with a Human.
"You and the friends you have spoken of are indeed the survivors of a
massacre of civilians."
"Ah," Ranji said.
The woman continued. "There was a colony. Not
Houcilat. A world whose name is now synonymous with mindless destruction. It
was utterly obliterated a number of years ago by an unsupervised, unanticipated
Crigolit attack. Just the right number of years ago, in fact, to place you and
your age-group companions there as fetuses,
"Whole regions were incinerated. It was the
only time within modern memory that weapons of mass destruction have been
utilized on a planetary surface. The Crigolit commanders who directed the
attack were severely disciplined by their own superiors and by the Arnplitur.
Based on what we have learned from you we have come to believe that this did
not prevent the Amplitur, ever pragmatic, from seeing the possibilities
inherent in the situation.
"At the time it was thought that no one could
have survived. The majority of bodies were incinerated, carbonized. An accurate
count of the dead could not be made. Therefore it was not possible for those
who came after to say whether or not any children, men, women, or-" Her
voice broke for the barest instant. "-pregnant women had been taken
prisoner. Considering the unprecedented scope of destruction it was presumed
not. Your presence vitiates a reappraisal." She tried to go on, couldn't,
and left it to her colleague to continue.
"You were taken by the Amplitur, not
rescued," the man said curtly. "Of course you have no memory of it.
The abductions were carried out prior to your birth."
"Many images of the devastation are available
for scholarly study." The elderly Massood spoke for the first time.
"The world in question is there for all to see, a barren testimonial to
war without rules."
"My parents." Ranji was mumbling. More
than his self-assurance was under assault now. The walls of himself were under
attack, and he was frightened, terrified because he could feel them crumbling.
Too much. Too much to listen to at once, to try and
absorb and dissect and analyze. Too much to think about. Pictures and words,
stories and facts. Invention, invention! They were trying to drive him mad.
The woman was remorselessly gentle. "As soon as
you were born you must have been taken from your natural mother and placed with
foster Ashregan parents. The same would be true for your brother.'' She paused.
' 'We suspect that the much younger sister of whom you have spoken is the result
of in vitro fertilization and subsequent implantation. With sufficient medical
support an Ashregan womb will support a Human fetus. Such action would
contribute to familial verisimilitude. The Amplitur are careful about
details."
None of it could be true, he told himself numbly.
Not a word of it. Because if it were so then it meant that his real parents
were dead, extinguished by the Amplitur as soon as their usefulness had come to
an end. It meant that the two individuals on Cossuut he had all his life called
mother and father were ao more than Amplitur agents who had dedicated their
lives to perpetuating a monstrous fraud on innocent children. It meant that all
his hard work, everything he had devoted his life to preserving and fighting
for, was no more than sham and shadow in the service of monstrous eugenics.
"Deception." He was muttering under his
breath now. "Tricks and lies. You're trying to convince me I'm something
I'm not."
Abruptly the eviscerating uncertainty vanished. Once
again he was composed and relaxed. The fear that possibly they were right, that
everything he was and had stood for all his life was a lie, simply evaporated
under the cool glare of knowledge.
"If I am not Ashregan but Human," he
inquired triumphantly of them all but the two Humans in particular, ' 'how is
it that I can have mind contact with the Amplitur without the Human
neurocerebral defensive mechanism engaging? I've experienced this without any
harm coining to either myself or the Teachers involved. No Human could do the
same, even if they so desired."
First-of-Surgery consulted with a cluster of O'o'yan
and other Hivistahm. Removing a sheet from the envelope of lies, the elderly
surgeon approached the prisoner for the second time.
"Remember this picture?"
Ranji glanced haughtily at the plastic.
"Maybe."
"I again call your attention to the small area
in red highlighted. This a much deeper scan is than any of the others. It shows
a tiny portion of the interior of the right side of your cerebral cortex."
"If you say so," he replied indifferently.
"What's this one supposed to be? Another graft? Another trick?''
The Hivistahm's teeth ground against one another as
he slowly explained. "The red-enhanced portion the location signifies of a
minute ganglionic complex. A nodule, a collection of nerve endings and
connections. It took quite a while to find and was not at first noticed. Once
it was identified a great deal of our time it occupied." The sheet rustled
slightly in his fingers.
"The Human brain no such formation
contains."
Ranji smiled. "You see? That only proves what
I've been saying all along."
The short Human scratched at an ear. "There is
also no such nodule present in the Ashregan brain."
Ranji involuntarily found himself eyeing the picture
again. There it was: a fuzzy blot of indeterminate size and indistinct outline.
Reason enough to concede one's sanity?
First-of-Surgery handed him another picture.
"Here still another view is. The magnification is greater."
The blot resolved itself into a tight cluster of
cells from which tiny filaments extended in many directions. It looked like any
creature one might observe through a microscope.
"And still greater magnification."
The third picture revealed the filaments and cells
in detail. No biologist, he was incapable of identifying any of it. Except . .
.
He pointed. "What's that?"
First-of-Surgery forced himself to lean close.
"A nanoneural weld. A place where nerve endings artificially joined have
been." The slit-eyed, scaly reptilian face stared up at him.
"Your body no code contains for such a complex.
It was built and then in your mind installed. As one would accessorize any rare
precision instrument. It in a portion of your brain reposes which Human
scientists have designated as unused. I should prefer to say hitherto dormant.
"Research leads us to believe that this is the
region of the Human mind which holds the key to Homo sapiens's ability to
resist Amplitur mind-probes and suggestions. It therefore follows logically
that this unique addition to your cerebral structure was by Amplitur
nanobioengineers there ernplaced in order susceptible to their mental
manipulation to render you. It a bridge appears to be. A neural bypass, if you
will. As artificial and unnatural as the bony ridges above your ears."
"Not only are they breeding Ashregan-looking
Humans to fight for them," said the woman softly, "if they can get
you and your friends to mate with Human captives or others, they can breed out
of the species the neurocerebral mechanism that enables humankind to resist their
mind-probes. That has to be their eventual aim."
"First-of-Surgery told you they take the long
view,'' her companion huffed.
Ranji stared blankly at them. A psychosomatic
throbbing started near the back of his skull, where the minuscule nodule
supposedly reposed.
"I don't believe you," he finally managed
to mutter hoarsely. "If this thing is for real, then it's something all my
people possess. All Ashregan people. You're trying to make me paranoid by
showing me some obscure, harmless growth or faked imagery. Well, it won't work.
You're crazy if you think I'm going to be taken in by something so
obvious."
"The nodule is to you unique."
First-of-Surgery was quietly insistent. "It is real, it is not found in
Humans, it is not found in Ashregan. Only you."
"This is a wicked thing," the elderly
Massood whispered. "Barbarous. Uncivilized."
"Like war itself." The short Human scanned
the roomful of allies. "Mankind is just the only species that readily
accepts the fact, is all. That's why this discovery only surprises but does not
shock us."
"Indubitably." The Massood's comment was a
peculiar melange of distaste and admiration.
"Lies, clever lies." Ranji glared
defiantly at the two Humans. "They won't help you. Did you really think
you'd be able to convince me of such a sweeping hypothesis on the basis of such
paltry evidence? This," and he shook the plastic sheet violently, "is
nothing!" He whirled and flung it as far as he could. It sailed through
the air.
In the split second that every eye in the room
turned to follow the picture's progress Ranji was out of his seat and moving.
First-of-Surgery went flying as a powerful forearm brushed him aside.
With no one else standing in his way Ranji was at
the door before the two guards could react. The larger of the two caught a
brace of stiffened fingers square in his throat. He gagged and went down as
heavily as if he'd taken a slug to the chest. His companion was trying to
backpedal and aim his gun when the prisoner's spinning heel caught him across
the side of the face, sending blood and teeth flying.
Ranji roared up the corridor, legs and lungs
functioning smoothly in tandem. If he could just reach the surface . . . He was
counting on his specimen value to preserve him from destruction, betting that
the order was out to shoot only to stun.
Turning a comer brought him face-to-face with a
single Wais. The ornithorp was seated behind a high metal desk in the center of
a floor inlaid with speckled stone. Walls of glass revealed the underground
parking area he remembered from his arrival many months earlier. Few vehicles
were in evidence. More importantly, the external door was open. Beyond lay blue
sky, clouds, and fringing vegetation.
Turning, the Wais started to speak, recognized him
for who he was, and froze. Ranji was racing past the desk and halfway to the
exit when his right leg went numb from the knee down.
He kept moving, dragging the paralyzed limb,
lurching desperately forward. A glance over his shoulder showed a pair of
Humans firing as they came up the corridor. He ignored them and concentrated on
the egress. If he could just make it outside he might be able to appropriate a
vehicle and get clear before they shut the tunnel on him. The paralysis would
wear off soon enough. He tried to will himself to limp faster, to run on one good
leg; to levitate.
Something shocked his left thigh and he fell forward
onto the smooth stone floor. The Wais at the desk had yet to move. A pair of
Hivistahm technicians hesitated in the doorway, staring blankly at his prone
form, clicking their teeth at one another with soft reptilian eloquence.
Ranji began pulling himself hand over hand,
struggling to get a purchase with his fingers on the slick tiles. Out of the
corner of an eye a pair of legs appeared, effortlessly paralleling him. Turning
to look up, he recognized the guard he'd jabbed in the throat. The man's
expression as he drew back his leg was more than simply hostile.
Despite the throbbing in his legs Ranji smiled up at
him. "You see, I would never contemplate doing what you're about to do, but
that's because I'm not anything like you. I may be a soldier, but I'm also
civilized Ashregan. Whereas you are only Human."
The guard hesitated, then slowly let his foot drop
to the floor. He stood close, keeping the rifle he carried pointed at the back
of the prisoner's skull. Muttering nervously to themselves, the pair of
confronted Hivistahm entered in haste, scurrying across the floor to disappear
down another corridor.
A resigned sigh escaped Ranji as he gazed longingly
at the vacant portal. "Almost made it. I should have hit you harder."
The guard rubbed his neck. "Wouldn't have
mattered. They would've caught you before you'd gone far." He glanced back
the way he'd come. Other guards were moving to seal the exit and block off the
far corridor. Shaky but now mobile, the Wais was frantically filling her
headset unit with declamations in several languages.
Some of the scientists and research specialists from
the conference room had arrived. Bunched up behind the guards, they were
murmuring and pointing in Ranji's direction, worried lest their precious
specimen suffer further damage.
"You know," the burly Human standing over
Ranji informed him conversationally, "I want to kick you really bad. A
good, hard, uncivilized shot right to the kidneys. Assuming you've got kidneys.
If the brainoids are right, yours are just like mine. Waited too long, though.
Too many witnesses now.''
Ranji pushed himself into a seated position, leaning
back on his palms. He regarded the Human as one would a particularly nasty carnivore
recently collected from a hostile, uninhabited world.
"Nothing about me is anything like you."
The man looked indifferent. "Doesn't matter. If
a Human had hit me like that I'd want to smack him just as badly."
"Contemplation of violence against your own
kind. What an astonishing racial conceit."
"Yeah, ain't it? That's why our Weave brothers
love us so much." As one of the other guards approached, the man passed
him his rifle and stepped behind Ranji. Slipping both arms underneath the
prisoner's, the guard heaved him to his feet. A sensation as of stabbing
needles tormented outraged muscles as the Human forcibly walked Ranji in
circles to rush feeling back into his legs.
"I hope they decide you are Human."
"Why?" Ranji's grunts of discomfort
elicited no sympathy from the man.
"Because then maybe we'll have the chance to
meet up with each other another day, when you won't have whining rats and
lizards to protect you."
Able to stand on his own now, Ranji shook himself
free of the other's grasp. "I look forward to it," he replied
placidly.
As the guard recovered his weapon he responded to
the challenge with an utterly heinous, completely lurid Human response: he
grinned.
Heida Trondheim was among those who now crowded the
hallway. Ranji gazed thoughtfully in her direction as the guard nudged his
spine with a rifle butt. "I'd love to spend some time alone with you,
friend, but your keepers are getting anxious. Let's move it. And if you try
anything again, if you so much as look funny in rny direction, I'll stun you
right where it hurts. Assuming our equipment is similar in that respect as
well."
Surrounded by wary, armed Humans and Massood, Ranji
was marched back to the room from which he'd taken brief but exhilarating
flight. This time they were careful to shut the door behind him.
Once back inside Trondheim came close. "It's
all right. I don't blame you. You've been severely traumatized." She tried
to put her hand on his shoulder but he shook her off. Hurt, she resumed her
seat.
Once again he found himself surrounded by a roomful
of curious gazes. "Go ahead. Show me all the pictures you want. Though if
your intent is to amuse me there are simpler ways. But don't think you can ever
convince me that I'm something I'm not."
The tall woman was shaking her head slowly.
"You're Human. Like it or not, the evidence is overwhelming. If anything,
that little outburst of yours just now confirms it. No Ashregan, no matter how
altered or enhanced, could've gotten that far."
"Truly he is right." Attention shifted to
First-of-Surgery. The elderly Hivistahm appeared to have handled the unpleasant
episode well. "I do not think we will with words and pictures convince
you," he told Ranji. "Your conditioning too ingrained is, too much a
part of you. We will have to something more do."
"Go ahead," Ranji taunted him. "It
won't make any difference."
Double eyelids blinked over snakelike pupils.
"Truly I beg to differ.''
He never knew how or when they slipped him the
anesthetic. It might have arrived in his drink, or his food, or the air of his
apartment. When he sensed the impending clutch of lugubrious drowsiness he
tried to fight back, screaming imprecations and pounding the walls in a futile
attempt to stay awake.
As awareness faded he found himself wondering why
they suddenly felt the need to render him unconscious. Perhaps they planned to
move him to another installation and, mindful of his recent outburst, were
taking no chances. Considering his state of mind and demonstrated capabilities,
he wouldn't have taken any chances when moving him either.
He appreciated the fact that oblivion came
painlessly, but then Omaphil was a civilized place. He wondered how he would've
been treated on the Human homework! That disagreeable thought was the last he
recalled before sliding into a sleep of abyssal dimensions.
A great many individuals were gathered around
view-screens scattered throughout the installation and elsewhere on Omaphil.
The Surgery itself was uncrowded. First-of-Surgery was among those present, not
to perform but to advise and observe. He had been teaching for so long that he
no longer felt in possession of the necessary skills required to supervise the
delicate operation. But he had been associated with the study from the
beginning and realized that his presence would be a comfort to the others.
Another First-of-Surgery would handle the actual
mechanics in conjunction with a highly experienced O'o'yan. Together they
represented the zenith of Weave medical accomplishment.
Save for a single exception, interested Humans were
excluded from the Surgery itself. While it was to be performed on a Human
brain, no Human physician could have hoped to duplicate the sureness of
movement and delicacy of touch possessed by Hivistahm or O'o'yan. They could
only watch and envy.
Though everyone involved exuded confidence and
expectation, an undercurrent of unease still permeated the proceedings. While
the procedure had been thoroughly discussed and mapped out in advance, everyone
realized they were entering unknown territory. Weave study of Homo sapiens had
resulted in more than one surprise, not least to its own kind, and while
expectations could be formulated, where the Human nervous system was involved
nothing was absolute, nothing was certain.
In addition to the Hivistahm-O'o'yan staff there
were two Humans in the Surgery: the man on the operating pallet, and a huge
coppery-skinned male whose fine long-fingered hands seemed to have been lifted
from a different body. Despite possessing skills which rendered him supreme
among his people, he was present only to observe and advise. Hands which had
worked on hundreds of his own kind would not go near this particular patient,
would not in the event of emergency manipulate the microsur-gical
instrumentation. That would be left to aliens possessed of a touch finer than
that of the greatest Human surgeons who had ever lived.
A thin sheet of softly opaque, nonreflective
material covered Ranji-arr from the neck down. His forehead gleamed beneath the
superb overhead lighting. Due to the nature of the tools which were to be used
it had not been necessary to shave his skull. Invisible air clamps locked his
head in place, allowing access by hands and equipment but no involuntary
movement.
The attending physicians had already performed the
operation many times on a virtual-reality simulator. Still, actual reality was
different. If you made a mistake, there was no Reset button to push. In actual
reality, patients died. So the surgical team was confident, but not certain.
The single Human towered over the roomful of
Hivistahm and O'o'yan technicians, looking clumsy and out of place. His
presence was something of a concession, and he knew it. Privately he had
assured the two surgeons in charge that he would do his best to stay out of
their way.
"As we begin," the Human said through his
translator, "I have to remind everyone both present and looking on that we
don't know what the result of our efforts will be. We may as readily kill as
cure the subject. As those of you who have been following developments already
know, scanning has detected at least one cluster of contained explosively
carcinogenic cells implanted within the nodule. Any attempt to remove it would
likely release these cells within the brain in a region where any hasty attempt
at counteraction or emergency prophylaxis would be at least as damaging to the
patient as the cells themselves. A carcinogenic time bomb, if you will.
"If this mechanism were located elsewhere in
the body, we might be able to deal with it, but because it is buried deep within
the cerebral cortex we cannot take the chance. Therefore it has been decided to
leave the nodule in place and untouched while severing the neural connections
between it and the rest of the patient's nervous system with nonintrusive
instrumentation. The aim is to render the growth harmless without removing or
traumatizing it."
"Truly this a delicate procedure is," said
First-of-Surgery senior, continuing the explanation for the benefit of
onlookers. "As is any manipulation of the interior of the brain." He
turned to the table. "My colleague will now begin."
The other First-of-Surgery fingered sensitive
controls. The operational details had been programmed into the relevant
instrumentation earlier, movements and reactions having been gathered from
numerous operations carried out in virtual reality. The surgical computer would
automatically compensate for any minute differences it detected between its
programming and actual reality. Having installed the requisite programming and
instructions, the surgeons' presence was required only in case something went
wrong. Should it encounter anything unexpected in the course of the surgery,
the master computer would pause the operation and ask for new instructions.
A small metal dish lowered on a gleaming automatic arm
until it stopped a few centimeters above Ranji's skull. Medical scanners were
active on both sides. Several small needlelike instruments projected downward
from the dish.
"If we missed any neurological booby traps
similar to the one we found earlier, we're likely to lose him," the tall
Human muttered to no one in particular.
First-of-Surgery senior looked on intently as the
sonic scalpel hummed softly for a split second. One needle shifted its position
infinitesimally on the surface of the dish. Each time the needle moved and
hummed a single neuron within Ranji's brain was severed.
"All that can be done has been done. Scanning
was rescanned, computer-enhanced, and scanned afresh. No other 'traps' were
found."
"Amplitur nanobioengineering is infernally subtle."
"Truly. But science it only is, not
magic." A click of sharp teeth emphasized the point.
Monitors scattered throughout the Surgery displayed
rock-steady images of the operation as it progressed. They could clearly see
the ganglionic complex, the flow of blood through a nearby cerebral capillary,
the neurons which connected the nodule to the rest of the patient's brain. One
by one they were neatly severed with impossibly brief, precisely applied bursts
of high-frequency sound, progressively isolating the nodule with the intent of
rendering it as harmless as a benign tumor.
"I've heard," the tall Human murmured as
his attention shifted from monitor to subject and back again, "that there
are some on the staff who wouldn't be particularly distressed if during the
course of the operation this patient happened to die. This Ranji-aars no
monster. He's a normal Human who had his birthright stolen from him before he
was born."
"I have his genome map seen. You do not me need
to convince," replied First-of-Surgery.
"Sorry." To his surprise the man found he
had bitten his lower lip. He'd never done that before, but then this was no
ordinary surgery. There was more than one life at stake here. All of the
subject's friends were also potential candidates for cutting. Though if they
failed to restore this first one . . .
He knew that if he lived to be two hundred he could
never hope to match the supernal precision of the medical computer or the
programming skill of the Hivistahm, but something within him still made his fingers
twitch slightly, as if he and not binary impulses were manipulating the
instruments.
First-of-Surgery interrupted his thoughts. "I
know of those of whom you speak. They believe that this individual and all like
it should on sight be killed. They the interbreeding and contamination fear
which could to Amplitur subjugation of the Human species lead.
"They do not individual salvations consider. As
physicians we differently think."
Not to mention how much you can learn from him so
long as he lives, the Human surgeon mused. Though he could not condemn the
Hivistahm. Not when he felt the same way.
Except for the barely audible, methodical sparking
of the scalpel and the click of other instruments the Surgery was as quiet as a
tomb. Above the patient nothing moved save the scalpel's angustipunctal needle.
Only when the gleaming dish rose and withdrew, its
programming completed, was the air filled with general conversation in several
tongues and the febrile hum of busy translators. The scanners showed the nodule
clearly, isolated and no longer connected to the rest of the patient's brain.
Even so, it was far too soon for shouts and hisses of triumph. Apparent success
required medical confirmation.
The attending physicians crowded around the various
technical stations, anxiously scanning readouts and eyeing monitors. The
patient's cerebrum did not explode. No armies of ravening cells were released
from the nodule to destroy his brain. Circulation, respiration, wave functions,
and all relevant vital signs read normal. There was no internal bleeding.
First-of-Surgery allowed himself to gnash his teeth hopefully.
To the Human physician hardly any time seemed to
have elapsed since actual surgery had commenced. He left the monitor he'd been
studying to rejoin First-of-Surgery.
"That should do it. When he wakes up he won't
be any different from before, except that for the rest of his life he'll carry
a minuscule knot of useless cells around in his brain, and any Amplitur that
tries to give him 'suggestions' will be in for a big surprise. Assuming that
the operation has restored his nervous system's natural defensive mechanism, of
course."
"It enough is that he can no longer be subject
to their mental whims," said First-of-Surgery decisively. "That the
principal intent of the operation was. If the Human defense also restored is,
that is a bonus to him." First-of-Surgery looked thoughtful. "I also
believe the knowledge can and should from the general Weave population be
withheld."
Conversing in low tones, the two physicians left the
Surgery, together with the rest of the staff which had supervised the sensitive
operation. Their patient remained behind. A second surgical team had entered
and was busying itself with checkouts of fresh programming and different
instrumentation.
The sonic scalpel had withdrawn into the ceiling.
Its position above the recumbent form was now taken by different instruments
riding on slightly larger supportive arms. While the nature of the initial
procedure had been far more sensitive, the second was to prove messier, for the
newly arrived team planned to remove the excess bone from the patient's cheeks,
rebuild his ears, shorten his fingers, and restore additional bone around his
unnaturally wide occipital orbits.
It was their intention to render the patient as
Human externally as the first team had made him within.
It did not matter that there were no Humans among
them. Hivistahm and O'o'yan physicians knew the physiology of Homo sapiens
inside and out, having spent much of their careers repairing injured Human
soldiers. Artists as much as surgeons, they were completely confident that when
the protective wraps were finally removed the patient would resemble anything
but a member of a hostile species.
The Human surgeon who'd been present would have preferred
to have remained to see that day, but knew how unlikely it was. His presence
was required in combat. Few Humans chose anymore to enter professions at which
other species excelled. This made the value of those who did so that much
greater. The surgeon understood the situation completely. It was both simpler
and more gratifying to specialize in what a Human did best.
Killing.
Funny thing about mirrors. Like individual thoughts,
they can't be avoided forever. After some time had passed, Heida Trondheim came
to see him. She talked, and he listened. There was an exchange of
inconsequentialities punctuated by long silences. Then she left.
Ranji's next visitor was a lanky Human male,
slightly shorter, slightly older than himself, a little lighter in color. Not a
mirror image, but close.
That's when Ranji allowed himself to cry, not much
caring whether they happened to be Human or Ashregan tears. It was a strain on
his surgically altered eyes, but he ignored the discomfort. The young man,
puzzled, returned the room to Trondheim.
Ranji still had to use a translator to talk to her.
He might look Human, might be Human, but his speech remained that of another
species. She was very patient with him.
"Appearances," he mumbled. "Just
appearances. Why?"
"Because you should look like what you
are," she replied straightforwardly.
He tilted his head back to stare at the
recovery-room ceiling. "I admit that visually the change is striking, but
that doesn't mean I accept it intellectually."
"You've been more thoroughly analyzed and
appraised than any single Human being in recent history. While Humans and
Ashregan look a lot alike, subtle chemical and physical differences remain. The
Amplitur missed some of those.
They didn't alter everything. You're definitely Human. As Human as I am."
He looked back at her. "Why doesn't that
possibility mime with glee?"
Their conversation was interrupted by the opening of
the single door. First-of-Surgery entered, resplendent in dress vest and
shorts. Even for one so cosmopolitan it took an effort of will to enter a room
occupied solely by Humans, but he concealed his unease gracefully.
Ranji was shown reams of charts and figures (which
could have been faked) and dozens of three-dimensional pictures (likewise
fakable). The senior Hivistahm was very persuasive, but not completely
convincing. Numbers and words were feeble levers with which to try and topple a
person's entire life. The brief visit of the young Human who had so closely
resembled him had carried more weight than all their statistics.
Though unprepared to acquiesce, he confessed a
willingness to contemplate possibilities. First-of-Surgery considered it a
victory.
"My head hurts," Ranji muttered.
Three claws on the Hivistahm's right hand snicked
together. "As well it might, considering the quantity of excess bone that
has from both sides of your skull been removed. A portion was used your
occipital orbits to restore to normal Human diameter. For the same reason your
appropriately shortened fingers will ache for a while. The discomfort will
pass."
The disconsolate patient fingered the thin bedsheet.
"Why bother? Why go to the trouble?"
"So that you'll be comfortable among your own
kind," Trondheim told him. He looked over at her.
"My kind? Which 'kind' is that? You?"
She didn't look away. "Yes. Me. It helps to
explain ... certain things."
"There more is." First-of-Surgery found a
suitable seat. "The ganglionic complex the Amplitur emplaced in your
cerebrum remains, but all neural connections between it and the rest of your brain severed have been. It can
affect you no longer."
"I see," he said quietly. "This means
that the Teachers can no longer communicate directly with me?''
"That is so. We hopeful are also that the
operation has restored your Human mind's ability to against uninvited mental
probes defend itself. You from now on against that enemy should secure
be."
Against the enemy? Who was the enemy and who ally?
he thought tiredly. It was too much for a simple soldier's mind to grasp.
Soldier ... for whom, and whom against?
Vast resources had been brought to bear to convince
him of his Humanity. Did he continue to resist them from reason ... or
stubbornness and fear? Had something vital been taken from him ... or restored?
How would he know? How could he find out?
Confrontation with a Teacher would answer all his
questions, but somehow he doubted any were to be found on Omaphil. Therefore he
would have to arrive at conclusions by other means. Of one thing he was
certain.
If everything they 'd shown and told him was true, if
he was Human and not Ashregan, then his whole life up to this point had been
nothing more than an elaborate lie.
How much did they know, his parents? Mother and
father whom he'd respected and honored from the day he'd learned how to speak.
Were they no more than innocent recipients of irresistible Amplitur
"suggestions"? Or was the nature of their participation more
elaborate, more sinister?
He blinked, conscious of warm pressure on his
forearm where Trondheim gripped him gently. "Are you all right, Ranji?"
Even his own name sounded unnatural, he thought. She did not have the right
accent.
First-of-Surgery had risen anxiously to stand behind
his chair. "You are not again violent going to become, are you?" -
"No. I'm too tired to be violent, even were I
so inclined." Keeping a wary eye on his patient, the surgeon resumed his
seat. Ranji directed his words to Trondheim. "While I've been listening to
everything you've been telling me I've also been remembering my childhood.''
"Your Ashregan parents,'' she murmured
sympathetically. He gestured, then hesitantly added the Human equivalent; a
terse nod of affirmation. The movement felt not unnatural.
"Tools of the Ashregan, willingly or
otherwise." First-of-Surgery was unrelenting.
Despite his promise Ranji experienced a sudden urge
to smash the surgeon's toothy snout down his throat. A perfectly natural
reaction, he told himself. For a Human. The harder his mind tried to convince
him that they'd been telling him nothing but lies, the more his body and
emotions argued otherwise.
Trondheim was talking. "It'll be okay.
Everything'll be all right."
"Will it really?" He wondered if the
translator was conveying something of his fear and uncertainty along with his
words. "I've been Ashregan all my life. Now you ask me on the basis of
images and figures to suddenly be Human. No matter what happens I'll always be
Ashregan."
Surprisingly, she smiled. "You act more Human
than you know, Ranji-aar."
"I say that this thing you cannot do!
Unscientific it is. Against accepted procedure it is. Truly forthrightly
dangerous it is!"
"Dangerous to whom?" The gray-furred
Massood towered over the Hivistahm. Though he wore the uniform of a full field
commander, his recent duties had been largely administrative in nature.
The uncommon insignia of the S'van who waited
patiently nearby identified him as a scientific advisor to the military with
attendant special privileges and qualifications. The Hivistahm found the
combination inherently contradictory. First-of-Surgery knew he could not, for example,
have sanely combined soldiering and medicine.
The three sentients stood on a long wide porch that
clung like an attenuated bird's nest to the sheer cliff of black basalt. The
dawn did its best to mitigate against unpleasant discussion. It was near the
end of the second of Omaphil's two springtimes, an uncommon seasonal
arrangement that was the result of orbital peculiarities. High forest grew
right to the base of the cliff, succumbing only in the distance to cultivated
fields. On the horizon sunlight diverted by the towers of Oumansa sought
oblivion in yellow gleamings.
A storm was massing behind the distant city,
silhouetting it in black weather. Hard to believe, the S'van thought, that on a
day like this the civilized inhabitants of Oumansa were a people at war. As
were his companions of this bright morning, and all their relations. Out beyond
the crisp, unpolluted atmosphere of Omaphil, ships and sentients wheeled and
maneuvered for strategic advantage, seeking opportunities to capture and destroy.
The S'van tried to work it all into a joke, but just then there was little
humor in him.
A handsbreadth from a sheer dropoff an empty table
awaited them. An automated server brought refreshments.
"Your opinion will be noted but it will not
change anything." The field commander sipped from his peculiar drinking
utensil. The Massood were noted for their dedication to the cause and for their
fighting abilities. Masters of tact they were not. The S'van hastened to
intervene, disdaining the use of his translator in favor of fluent Hivistahm.
He could speak Massood as well.
"I'm sorry, First-of, but the commander is
right. The decision has already been made, at Military Council level. Even if
we wanted to, there's nothing we can do about it."
"This is not a decision for the Military
Council to make." The surgeon was livid, which in a Hivistahm generated
interesting color changes in the scales which covered the head. Teeth clicking
in agitation, he settled into one
of the self-adjusting chairs. Among his people brooding had been raised to the
level of fine art.
Deep within the wiry mass of black beard the S Van's
lips worked soothingly. ' 'I realize that your staff here still has preliminary
studies they would like to complete."
"Complete? Preliminary?" The Hivistahm
ignored his drink. "We barely begun have. Conceive of it! A Human child
raised as an Ashregan. To like an Ashregan think, talk, believe, but to like a
Human fight. We have his Hu-manness restored."
"But not his Humanity," the Massood
interjected.
"That will in time come to him. All the more
reason here to keep him, so that help we can provide as well as study."
"Personally, I agree with you." The S'van
sampled his drink.
"Then why is it not so ordered?" The
Hivistahm eyed the splendiferous sunrise morosely. "Why this precipitous
decision?''
The Massood put down his drinking utensil.
"Admittedly it is something of a gamble. But it is one that the Council
feels it must take."
"He is not properly to his new condition
acclimated," the surgeon grumbled. "As you say, he has not yet had
his Humanity restored. We cannot his mind rebuild as we have his body. Yet you
wish us via prostheses to temporarily back his Ashregan appearance give
him." Claws clicked against claws.
"If this thing the Council proposes in its finite
wisdom fails, we lose not only this individual but the unique opportunity he
presents."
The field commander sipped delicately. Working and
living alongside Wais and Mo tar, he had learned manners. "I remind you
that the subject's wishes must also be taken into consideration, and that he
energetically supports the proposal."
"I am to the subject as sympathetic as any,''
huffed the Hivistahm, "but we must think first of the good of the Weave.''
"As do my superiors. The fact that the
Council's desires happen to coincide with those of the individual weaken your
position considerably." The Massood leaned forward.
"As you know, this Ranji-aar is apparently but
one of many like him who were in prebirth corrupted and co-opted by the
Amplitur. That he wishes to return to his people and reveal the heinous
deception to his friends and fellow fighters in order to foment rebellion among
them is considered by the Council an enterprise of sufficient worth to make the
risk worth taking."
ulf that is truly what he has in mind," said
the surgeon.
"Truth is always the first casualty of
war." The Massood waxed uncommonly philosophical, and his companions eyed
him in surprise. "I have seen the xenopsychs' analysis. At this point in
time our Ranji-aar trusts no one, including himself. Therefore he must be
allowed to find truth, along with himself. Otherwise he will be useless to us
as well as himself. As you say, physician, his problems cannot be cured by
surgery. He must convince himself of what he is.
"If he can also do that for his friends, then
the Amplitur will lose not only the fruits of their experiment but the most
effective single fighting force they have yet developed. The Weave will benefit
in the short as well as the long term.''
First-of-Surgery closed both sets of eyelids against
the intensifying light. ' 'Unless the return to familiar surroundings his
Ashregan conditioning reinforces. If that happens then he is to us lost
forever. Truly."
The S'van clicked his short flat teeth in imitation
of the Hivistahm. As was often the case with the subtle S'van, the surgeon was
unable to tell if the burlesque was performed out of respect or amusement.
"That's the risk. Of course, unless the reports
I've been seeing are wrong, there seems to be risk of another kind in keeping him
here."
"No, no." First-of-Surgery sounded tired.
"Accurate they have been. Suicide he has threatened unless he is to his
people permitted to return. If sufficiently determined he was, we could not
prevent it. Most frustrating truly. As an Ashregan he would not do such a
thing, which would mean we could for observation retain him. But that failure
would signify. It seems that for him Human to be means success for our efforts,
but that we lose him. Ironic it is."
It was the S'van's turn to philosophize. "Life
consists of choosing between successive contradictions, surgeon."
"So I suppose we must let him go. But I fear
to. Upon my Circle I do."
"You've done great things here, First-of. But
in times of conflict pure research must give way to practical concerns."
This time there was no suggestion of humor in the S'van's tone.
"Truly that I realize." The Hivistahm
sucked at his drink. "But that does not mean I have to like it."
"The Human psychologists who have been
consulted in the matter agree that to hold him against his will is
dangerous," said the field commander.
"Human psychologists?" The surgeon
sniffed. "That a contradiction in terms is. With Weave guidance they have
barely begun to learn how their own bizarre behavior to quantify. Seek not
enlightenment from them." As no Humans were present the surgeon felt he
could speak freely.
An upper lip drew back and the field commander
picked politely at his teeth. Nose and whiskers twitched reflexively.
"Well, if it is a ploy on his part we will know soon enough. If not, then
we may achieve a great deal. Even if he is eventually discovered and killed, he
will hopefully have had enough time to sow some confusion among his fellow
fighters."
"I still a bad idea think it, and will so my
opinion officially register," muttered the surgeon.
"That's your privilege." The S'van smiled,
aware as he did so that neither of his companions could discern it through the
forest of a beard.
They were still arguing when evening commenced to
darken the cliff face.
The battered uniform he'd been wearing when the lone
Hivistahm and Lepar had surprised him on Eirrosad had been carefully preserved
in its original state. Muddy and torn, it was returned to him in an airtight
transparent container.
The prostheses which restored his Ashregan appearance
clung uncomfortably to his skull and fingers. To once more look in a mirror and
see himself as he'd always been was unsettling, though the attending medical
personnel assured him he was coping well. Head, eyes, ears, nose, and fingers
looked natural enough. Unless a scarce variety of organic solvent was applied
at specific locations, the prostheses could not be removed without damage to
the underlying bone. On that score, they assured him, he need not worry. Though
they did not possess the skills of the Amplitur, the Hivistahm and O'o'yan
surgeons were in their own right extremely competent. Ranji felt that the
deception would pass.
He was instructed to say nothing to the Weave
military personnel who transported him back to Eirrosad nor to the bemused
strike team which had been charged with conveying him as close as possible to
the spot where he'd originally been captured.
Occasionally a Human or Massood would look up from
its position on board the sled to favor the enigma in their midst with a bemused
stare. The single passenger would in turn ignore them, sunk deep in
contemplation as he gazed intently at the treetops slipping past below.
His noncommunicativeness made the Human soldiers
nervous and the Massood twitchier than usual. If their passenger was, as
rumored, one of the dangerously modified Ashregan warriors of whom they had
heard, why were they returning him alive to a contested zone? Visions of
accidental homicide visited many thoughts, but weapons stayed in their
holsters. The carefully chosen mixed-species strike team was nothing if not
highly disciplined.
So he intercepted no misguided shots as they lowered
him to the soggy ground, reeled in their cable and confusion, and pivoted to
retreat westward before the sled could be detected and targeted by an enemy
missile.
As he had seemingly so long ago, Ranji once again
found himself alone among towering unfamiliar growths. Somewhere high in the
canopy an arboreal creature peeped querulously, wondering if it was once more
safe to emerge from its hiding place. Water dripping from broad spatulate
leaves dampened him with elfin reminders of the morning's shower.
They had dropped him in a pleasant, peaceful,
relatively dry spot. A good place to relax and think, except that he'd already
done too much thinking recently. Better to concentrate on the arduous trek
ahead instead of wasting energy on difficult questions he had no answers to. If
he lingered, he might encounter an uninformed Weave patrol. It would be
embarrassing to be captured all over again. Orienting himself, he started off
in an easterly direction.
The Eirrosadian fauna caused him more concern than
unseen trigger-happy Massood/Human scouts. Once, something sinuous that crawled
on eight short legs struck at him, aiming curving fangs at his knees. They
ripped his pants but did not penetrate the flesh beneath. He flayed the
repulsive creature with the beam of his pistol, and it curled and died.
Over fallen trees, through rotting clumps of wood,
around impenetrable clusters of vine-strangled bushes he climbed and waded,
until an explosive shell made smoke, ash, and decomposing rubble of the top of
a broken snag off to his right.
Throwing himself prone, he landed in spongy muck
near a smaller stump, straining to see where the fire had come from. Another
shell whined through the space previously occupied by his head, shattering the
trunk of a waist-thick bole behind him and sending it crashing to earth in a
sonorous confusion of lianas and branches.
Scrambling to his knees, he dashed to his left, pistol
at the ready. That's when the voice ordered him to halt, drop his weapon, put
his hands atop his head, and turn. He hesitated momentarily, then complied.
Whoever his attackers were, they had him outgunned.
Hopefully they weren't the panicky type. He could
hear them chatting tensely among themselves as they approached, could sense the
muzzles of their weapons aimed at his spine. Only when they were quite close
did he turn slowly to reveal his face.
When they recognized him as one of their own, their
astonishment was something to behold. Startled realization quickly gave way to
relief, then amazement as he identified himself.
"Your death has been an accepted fact for some
time, honored Unifer." The soldier hastened to recover Ranji's gun and
return it to him. Another offered a food packet. It contained traditionally
bland, thoroughly pureed Ashregan food, not the coarse, tough stuff Humans
consumed. He dug into it gratefully, not even waiting for it to heat.
Another member of the trio scanned the woods alertly.
"This whole sector is crawling with enemy slider patrols. They are
constantly probing our forward lines. Occasionally some try to sneak through on
the ground; such ground as there is on this miserable planet.''
"I saw sliders, and our own floaters," Ranji
lied. "It's difficult for anyone riding above to see down into the
canopy."
The third soldier agreed readily. "It's no
wonder you weren't spotted, Unifer. I'm only glad that we found you before the
enemy. I am sorry we shot at you, but you must understand we didn't expect to
encounter anything in this area but Massood and Humans. You have been some time
unaccounted for." Ranji tensed slightly until he realized that the
soldier's tone was devoid of suspicion.
The one watching the forest spoke up. "Your
special unit has been pulled back and reassigned to operations elsewhere,
Unifer." Convinced of their safety, he turned to gaze at the young
officer. "How is it you've spent all this time wandering about in this
patch of jungle?''
"Lost my direction finder." Ranji grunted.
"Lost about everything. Got hurt and had to hide from enemy patrols. Took
time to find food, build temporary shelters . . .I've been too busy just
staying alive to try working my way back." He gestured appreciatively. "I
knew that if I could just keep calm and stay clear of the enemy, my own people
would rescue me eventually. I am sure there will be commendations in this for
all of you."
That observation distracted the questioner
sufficiently to interrupt what threatened to become an ominous line of thought.
"Spent a lot of time in the hollow of a
tree," he continued inventively, seeing how enthralled they were with his
tale of survival. "Kept me hidden and dry, but impossible to spot from the
air by friend or enemy. I needed time for my leg to heal. Hurt my face and
hands, too," he added in a sudden flash of inspiration.
They all touched the backs of their right hand to
Ms. "It is good to find you alive, Unifer."
He could feel his indoctrination, his recently
acquired Humanity, beginning to crumble in the presence of Ash-regan
compassion. Weren't these his people? Hadn't he spent his whole life among
them? What was the difference between Ashregan and Homo sapiens anyway? A few
genes, some slight differences in stature and appearance. It was good to again
be speaking in a familiar tongue, to be eating the food of his childhood, to
slip easily into the casual byplay of words and gestures he'd known all his
life. He'd prepared himself to cope with familiarity, but not with warmth and
affection. It weakened and unsettled him.
Not unnaturally, his alarmed rescuers assumed his
reactions were the result of his extended sojourn in the jungle. They hastened
to help him back to friendly lines.
His nervousness faded rapidly. Everyone was
overjoyed to see him. No one voiced suspicion or incertitude. His tale of
injury and survival was accepted verbatim, in part because there was no reason
to doubt him, in part because they wanted to believe it. When there is a need
for heroes and they are so inconsiderate as not to invent themselves, others
take up the task for them.
No one questioned his appearance or physical
condition. Insofar as they were concerned it was a miracle he'd been found
alive in any condition. When pressed for details of his experience, he relaxed
and allowed his fecund imagination to take over.
When finally he was reunited with his own unit, the
response was overwhelming and utterly accepting. If he had told them he'd spent
the previous weeks on Eirrosad's major satellite collecting mineral samples
they would have believed him implicitly. He received so many backhanded slaps
he feared for the integrity of his prostheses.
"Such a long time!" The naked adoration in
strong Birachii's eyes forced Ranji to turn away in embarrassment. "Notice
of your death was posted officially over two months ago."
"It was premature," was all he could
murmur.
They were walking the grounds of a forward firebase,
concealed in the eternal jungle some distance from where Ranji had been found.
It seemed that everyone recognized him and waved or shouted in passing, regular
Ashregan and insectoid Crigolit troops as well as familiar members of his own
unit. He forced himself to acknowledge each undeserved accolade, acutely
conscious of how his miraculous return had lifted their morale.
It was hard to keep from staring at his friends,
knowing what he knew now about their birthright. Appearances, which hitherto he
had paid little attention to, now aroused in him an almost morbid fascination.
Cranial ridges that did not belong, eyes that now seemed unnaturally wide,
fingers lengthened by the presence of extraneous bone, unusually flattened
nostrils, and the absence of external ears all struck him as both alien and
familiar. There was within him taking place a crisis of perception.
His reactions were noticed, and sympathetically
attributed to the understandable aftereffects of his exhausting experience.
The more time he spent among old friends and
familiar surroundings, the darker grew the shadow of doubt that had once more
begun to shade his thoughts. Was what he had seen and learned beyond doubt? Had
every question been adequately answered? That he was being manipulated he knew
for a certainty. But by whom? By which side? By the Amplitur, by the Weave ...
by both?
What was he, who was he, and where did his loyalty
rationally lie? With appearances, with genes, or with friends? He had been
exposed to and had been asked to accept in a very short period of time multiple
revelations of mind-shattering import. This he had done. Or so he had believed.
At the time.
It was easier to live the days in languid
succession, to simply exist, to be, and not constantly torment oneself
pondering the greater mysteries of existence. One thing he could not escape,
however. One thing there was always before his eyes. No matter how he tried to
avoid it, he could never again escape the realization that his friends looked
far more like Humans onto whom a few Ashregan features had been grafted than
the other way around.
When they inquired, as he knew they would, as to how
he had survived for so long without supplies, he told stories of gathering
edible fruits and nuts, of killing and eating small animals, of gathering
rainwater in cupped leaves. He'd done everything they'd been told to do in
survival training, and this had preserved him. They listened raptly, their
appetite for his memories insatiable.
Had he in the course of his odyssey encountered any
of the enemy? Several, he admitted. No, not Massood or Humans. Hivistahm and
Lepar. Yes, their presence in a combat zone had surprised him. More than they
could know. He had dealt with them as circumstances required.
It was during one such gathering that swift, pretty
Cossinza-iiv came forward apologetically. "I have something important to
tell you, Ranji." The others tried to shush her. "I'm sorry, but I
can't keep it a secret any longer."
"Keep what a secret?" Ranji asked
guardedly.
"Did you know that the big advance base to our
immediate rear is tomorrow to receive the newest batch of special fighters from
Cossuut?"
Ranji was openly surprised. "This is the first
I've heard of it."
New recruits from home. New graduates. Had that much
time passed since his only concern in life had been to do well in the Maze?
"When they're cleared to join us it will more
than double our strength. The next time Command gives us a special assignment
we'll be able to hit the enemy a lot harder than we have here or on Koba."
"That's great." Ranji mustered a minimum
of enthusiasm. "That's the secret?"
"No." Cossinza was smiling. So were some
of those behind her. "Your brother's with them. They jumped him a
level."
Distantly Ranji heard himself expressing his
pleasure at the news. So Saguio was here, on Eirrosad. Wonderful. Thus far he'd
managed to beguile other Ashregan, Crigolit, even close childhood friends. But
could he fool his own brother?
That Saguio was Ms brother was something Ranji did
not doubt. They shared similar height and strength, the same desire and skills.
Ranji was a little smarter, his younger sibling slightly taller. The
resemblances outweighed any differences. He and Saguio had been fashioned from
identical genetic stock. Whatever that was. It didn't matter to Ranji whether
they shared the same natural parents or not. Saguio was and always would be his
brother.
His apprehensions were overcome the next morning as
soon as he caught sight of his brother stepping off the transport sled. As for
Saguio, if Ranji had sported two heads it would not have lessened his pleasure
at finding himself again with his elder brother.
They spent hours catching up, reminiscing, and
swapping stories. If Saguio detected a certain reticence on the part of his
revered sibling to discuss their parents, he chose to ignore it.
"I heard about what happened to you out there.
I can't imagine what it must've been like."
Brother benign, truer words never fell from your
lips. What would be his reaction, Ranji mused, when he finally learned the
truth? Like everyone else, Saguio was convinced his brother was a hero. But
that didn't matter, because he was only a hero among the Ashregan, and he was
not of them. Nor was Saguio, nor Cossinza, nor clever Soratii-eev. Or were
they?
He needed to arrive at truth: without interference
from Humans, or Ashregan, or Amplitur, or anyone else. Let them skirmish over
the future of worlds or the disposition of half a galaxy. The fight for his
identity concerned him nonetheless.
When he judged the moment propitious to finally
reveal what he'd learned to his friends, he realized they might very well kill
him. Even Saguio might partake of the festivities. There were no armed Humans,
no self-assured Hivistahm around to help him now. The balance of his life lay
in his hands and no others. Whatever else he might think of his former captors,
he had to admire the risk they'd taken in allowing him to return to his people.
That suggested confidence ... or great daring. Both were reputed to be Human
characteristics.
Before he spoke, before he put his life on the line,
he had to be certain beyond any doubt. Despite what he'd told his captors prior
to his departure from Omaphil, that was a destination he had yet to set eyes
upon.
Meanwhile he relaxed in the company of his brother,
and reminiscences of simpler times. Of days when certainty had ruled his life,
and the Purpose was always there for comfort. Now that hitherto exalted
philosophy struck him as something less than grand.
How was he to proceed when the time came to try and
convince Saguio and the others that they were not Ashre-gan, but mere dupes of
the Amplitur? He had with him no damning pictures, no reams of statistics, no
means for conducting tests on querulous companions. Only his reputation and
strength of character, and he knew full well those might not be enough.
He didn't have to do it, he knew. He was safe among
those who admired and respected him. On the basis of his perceived ordeal he
could claim combat fatigue and put in for a noncombat position. They would love
to have him as an instructor on Cossuut. He could try to forget what he'd seen,
what he'd learned, and return home to live out the remainder of his life among
familiar surroundings and friends. His participation one way or the other
wasn't going to alter the course of a thousand-year-old conflict anyhow. Even
if he was Human, he owed nothing to that dire and unfamiliar species.
There remained, however, one responsibility he could
not rationalize away, could not shrug off. That was to the unborn. Unless they
were treated, his friends' offspring would unknowingly inherit the traits and
physical distortions intended for them by the Amplitur. There would be no
convincing a child born of such circumstances of its Humanness. Whatever his
eventual fate, he did not see how he could let it happen to those for whom no
choice would be allowed.
He would make a beginning with Saguio. That
decision, at least, was easy to make. His brother would listen to what others
would reflexively dismiss as madness. With luck he would be able to continue at
least a few before they carted him away for medical treatment.
Ranji's friends and colleagues were not the only
ones who listened with interest to his tale of solitary survival in the jungles
of Eirrosad. The Amplitur devoted much attention to the exploits of their new
fighters. Among them his story provoked a certain amount of contented
jubilation . . . and curiosity.
Certainly his experience confirmed the viability of
the genetic line they hoped to propagate. It would not do for such a feat to
pass ignored. Congratulations were in order ... as well as careful debriefing.
"The Teachers are coming!"
Ranji, Saguio, and several friends were relaxing in
the field barracks when Tourmast burst in with his announcement. Until
Operations decided on their next assignment there was little for them to do but
exercise, try to stay active in the debilitating humidity, and wait.
Silently Ranji absorbed the declaration's import.
The forthcoming confrontation induced in him neither panic nor visible unease.
He was surprised only because he had not expected it to come so soon. A great
calm settled over him. He would not have to go seeking the answers to some of
his questions: they were about to come to him.
His future, like his self, would be defined by the
reactions of the Teachers. For the first time he would be bringing something
other than simple awe to the encounter. No matter what the outcome he could no
longer think of them as purely altruistic custodians of universal truths. The
Humans and Hivistahm and Massood had taken away his innocence and traded it for
a dubious Humanity.
The Amplitur insisted they could not read minds,
only venture suggestions. What if he did not respond properly? What sort of
suggestions ought he to expect? He was almost too tired to care.
Ashregan and Crigolit officers hunted frantically
for the dress uniforms which were important only to them. While the Amplitur
were not big on ceremony, many of those 'races which fought alongside them felt
otherwise. A formal multispecies welcoming committee was hastily assembled
north of the central landing disk.
The heavily armed transport skid was setting down
silently even as stragglers continued to arrive, uniforms hastily straightened,
to swell the ranks of the impromptu honor guard. An air of anxious uncertainty
hung about the ranked officers like stale pheromones.
None of which appeared to trouble the Teachers.
There were two of them: impressive when one realized that only four were
present on all of Eirrosad. None among the assembled Ashregan and Crigolit
could imagine what would motivate a surprise visit on their part to the
potentially dangerous vicinity of a forward support base.
Together they approached the regional commander on
their four short, squat legs, advancing with ponderous grace. Tentacle tips
danced snake ballet in the turgid air, describing arcs and circles pregnant
with import only to another Amplitur.
As a Unifer, Ranji was among those in front. He
looked on silently as the esteemed pair conferred with the regional commander
and his team. Among the Teachers' escort were a pair of tall, angular Copavi.
Never having seen a Copavi in person before, he focused his attention on them.
They looked too fragile to manage the long, narrow-barreled weapons they
carried.
Then he saw that the Teachers were making their way
toward the line in which he stood. Any attempt to further divert his thoughts
was reduced to an instant exercise in futility.
Alongside him friends and fellow fighters murmured
expectantly. Saguio expanded with pride. His brother might be in for more
excitement than he expected, Ranji mused quietly.
Abruptly there was no more time for speculation.
Stumpy eyestalks tipped with black globes tilted toward him, and pupils like
streaks of molten gold focused on his own. As he returned the gaze he did his
best to make his mind a complete blank, intimidated despite supposedly firm
resolve to the contrary. After all, these were the Teachers.
He felt warmth and good fellowship flowing outward
from them, to envelop him in a soothing, reassuring mental blanket. How could
such as these be responsible for the abominations postulated by the
representatives of the Weave? They were the very essence of empathy and
understanding. There was within them only goodness and light. He decided not to
think; only to react.
The base commander, a portly Ashregan of
incongruously sorrowful demeanor, was speaking.
"... And this is the famous Ranji-aar of
Cossuut, who as you have heard only recently returned to us, having spent many
-months alone in the jungle behind enemy lines."
''A most remarkable episode." Instead of
projecting its thoughts into the minds of its audience the second Amplitur
utilized its horny mouthparts to replicate the supple sounds of the Ashregan
language. The utilization of natural speech was in itself something of an honor
for the one so addressed.
"You bring Wellness to us all." Eyestalks
bobbed at arm's length from Ranji"s face.
Simultaneously he felt the familiar tickling inside
his head, indication that one or both of the Amplitur was projecting directly
to him. In spite of himself he tensed, but the Teacher did not jerk away. There
was none of the thrashing of tentacles and twitching of limbs that would have
signified contact with the mental defense mechanism of a mature Human nervous
system.
So he was not as Human as the scientists of the
Weave insisted. Matter for contemplation. How much more of what they had told
him on Omaphil was nonsense and propaganda? If he was fully Human, then his
mental contact with a Teacher should have sent it reeling backward in shock and
pain. Instead those slitted black eyes continued to weave imperceptibly on the
ends of their stalks, regarding him with beatific solemnity.
The gentling contact was full of admiration for his
accomplishment and joy at his safe return, as well as concern for his current
health. There was in it nothing hostile, nothing threatening. Nothing to fear.
What followed then was no more than an afterthought,
a casual inconsequentiality. An indifferent suggestion that Ranji's line step
forward so that they might all be singled - out for special praise. Ranji
blinked against the sun, and in the duration of that blink he hesitated. His
brother did not, nor did any of the others. Only Ranji lingered; deliberately,
minutely, making of his hesitation a slight stumble before joining the others
in their crisp advance.
The tight smile stayed frozen on his face. Because
he knew that among his companions he alone could have held his position, he
alone could have resisted the suggestion. For the briefest of instants he had
sensed command instead of suggestion, pull instead of request. For such a small
revelation it filled him with great confusion.
And fear. Had his pause been noted and understood
for what it was? The smoky bulbous orbs hovering before him were impenetrable,
the cephalopodian face behind them unreadable.
The Amplitur gave no sign that anything was amiss or
that it suspected anything abnormal had just taken place. Sensitive tentacle
tips reached out and around to embrace him. He stood in that warm, alien grasp,
numb and smiling, until he was released. Wordlessly the Teacher retracted its
tentacles and together with its companion began moving down the line of
fighters, leaving Ranji to try and analyze the confrontation as best he could.
For the first time he had felt that contact with the
Teachers involved more than mere suggestion. There had been a definite tug, a
compulsion. Having recognized it, he'd been able to resist it, though he had
eventually complied with the actual command for fear of being found out. His
friends, he realized, had not been allowed that choice.
How many such "suggestions" had he and his
companions unwittingly been compelled to comply with in their lifetimes? This
time he had been able to recognize and resist. But neither had he reacted as a
Human would have. What was he? What had the Hivistahm surgeons made of him?
He had little time to wonder, because the Amplitur
retraced their steps until they were again confronting Mm.
This time the insinuating, insistent probe was
directed at him alone. There was no opportunity to conceal resistance among
mass movement. He waited, fighting to conceal his unease.
It was "suggested" that he tell his story
once again, so that the Teachers as well as his fellow fighters might benefit
from his experiences. Under other circumstances Ranji would have demurred, but
he knew he was not being asked: he was being told.
Though he knew he could have refused, he complied
promptly and with apparent enthusiasm, turning to face the ranks of silent
soldiers. He could feel black and gold eyes on his back, studying him intently,
and did his best to ignore the sensation as he once more regaled his companions
with his carefully composed sequence of elaborate lies.
Occasionally one Teacher or the other would silently
suggest that he elaborate on this or that particular point. Ranji complied
readily with the mental coaching that passed unnoticed by his audience.
When he'd concluded the tale he was offered the
greatest honor of all. Had not the Amplitur for thousands of years carried the
burden of the Purpose figuratively upon their backs? The Teacher nearest him
knelt, beckoning to him with both mind and tentacle. Given no choice in the
matter, a reluctant Ranji stepped forward and settled himself atop the
Amplitur, straddling the smooth, fleshy back. The Teacher thoughtfully steadied
its passenger with a tentacle, then stood.
One of the tall Copavi approached and activated an
instrument to record the image for distribution purposes. See! the picture
would say. The accomplishments of this brave Ashregan have raised him even above
the Amplitur themselves. Figuratively, of course. A sardonic Ranji had no doubt
that the image would be widely displayed.
As he quietly held the unaccustomed position Ranji
noticed that he could easily have slipped a knife into the base of the fleshy skull,
penetrating the brain and forever shutting off the flow of gentle but
irresistible suggestions. The violence of the notion unnerved him. The very
concept would have been anathema to an Ashregan . . . but not to a Human.
When the Copavi finished its work, a shaken Ranji
was allowed to slip off the slick, spineless back and resume his place in line.
The Teachers formally addressed the entire gathering, praising them for their
dedication and bravery, exhorting their dedication to the Purpose. Ranji listened
as intently as the others, but drew no comfort from the compliments. It was as
if something unwelcome and vaguely diseased were squirming unimpeded through
his thoughts, rearranging them to suit its own specific notions of right,
wrong, and reality.
A parasite, he thought, only becomes a parasite when
one is made aware of its presence. There were on many worlds bloodsucking
creatures which released anticoagulants that allowed blood to flow painlessly
and unbeknownst to the host animal. The Amplitur, he now saw, did something
similar with thoughts, causing commands to be perceived as suggestions, orders
to be seen as polite requests. The realization made him feel unclean.
As the nearest member of the pair stared at him he
again felt the mental contact, the suggestion that by way of concluding the
ceremony he offer a few inspiring words to his fellow fighters. Anger
momentarily overcame common sense.
"I'm sorry, but I'd rather not." Even as
the words left his mouth he found himself regretting them.
The Amplitur's weaving tentacle froze. Protuberant
black eyes tilted further in his direction. The suggestion was repeated, this
time with compelling force.
Damn all ignorance! Ranji thought furiously. He
deliberately ignored the unmistakable command. Though the Teacher was three
times his mass, in a close-quarter fight it would be no match for his Humanized
bones and muscles.
Unable to restrain their curiosity, a few fellow
soldiers leaned forward just enough to stare in his direction. The continued
silence was making them uncomfortable.
The second Amplitur approached and reiterated the
suggestion. In the grip of projected compulsion Ranji should have
enthusiastically stepped forward to harangue his friends. Instead he remained
stolidly immobile, his expression blank.
The Teachers conferred. Though Ranji could not read
their thoughts they broadcast their confusion through the active movement of
eyestalks and tentacles. Clearly they were puzzled rather than apprehensive.
After several minutes they turned again to face him.
He readied himself to attack or run as the situation dictated.
"You are tired," came the empathetic
thought. "It explains your hesitation. You have been through a most
difficult and trying time from which you have not yet fully recovered. We
understand."
Ranji's muscles untensed. Having discussed his
defiance, in the absence of any other immediate explanation they had chosen to
interpret his noncompliance with their request as the result of lingering
trauma! His immunity remained a secret.
Relief continued to flow through him as they turned
to exchange final formalities with the base commander and his staff. He was
angry with himself. His resistance had been foolish and unnecessary. Had they
suspected anything unnatural he would have soon found himself in yet another
operating theater full of Amplitur surgeons eager to explore the parameters of
his enigmatic mind. Luck and circumstance had saved him, not a dubious
intelligence.
He joined his companions in voice if not enthusiasm
in shouting fond farewells as the Teachers reboarded their transport. The
encounter had left him more confused and uncertain than ever. What sort of
creatures were they, these Amplitur, who could urge others to violence against
their will while simultaneously anguishing over their welfare? He had
personally experienced that concern along with their exercises in mental
dominance. It was a contradiction he found himself unable to resolve.
About one thing they had been quite accurate. He was
extremely tired.
As the skid rose to treetop level and pivoted, the
assembly began to break up, officers and troops returning to duty stations or
barracks. Conversation was split evenly between the unprecedented visit and the
forthcoming evening meal.
A number of Ashregan and Crigolit came over to
congratulate him on the honor he'd received, intercepting him before he could
make it back to his room. One Crigolit subjoiner was particularly effusive in
her praise, offering by way of the ultimate compliment the opportunity to
copulate. Metaphorically, of course.
Saguio was waiting for him, the naked adulation on
his face painful to behold. Ranji found himself looking past his younger
brother's admiring eyes., deep into the brain, in search of a peculiar
neuroganglion that was not of natural origin. Suddenly he wanted to thrust his
hand in, through one of the unnaturally large eye sockets, to pluck out the
offending, traitorous organ.
How many other races sported similar
Amplitur-induced modifications within their minds, he wondered? The Crigolit?
The Mazvec? Perhaps even the intelligent Korath. The Amplitur dominated a vast
number of worlds, he knew, and the more he learned the more it was made clear
to him that all of them were in need of exploratory surgery.
''Wait until the family hears about this!" Saguio
was rambling. "To be so congratulated by a Teacher . . . no, two Teachers.
That they should take the risk to come this close to a fire zone just to praise
you in person . . . it's a singular honor, Ranji."
''I know.'' He glanced up. ''Did you sense them in
your mind?"
"Sure. Several times. It felt good, like it
always does." He blinked uncertainly. "Why would you ask such a
thing? Didn't you feel them?"
"Of course." He looked away. "They
asked me to do something. They asked more than once. I refused each time."
Saguio considered. "Well, I guess they felt you
weren't up to it. What did they want, anyway?"
"For me to-make a concluding speech. 'Fight to
the last for the Purpose!' That sort of thing."
"You couldn't manage that? For the
Teachers?" Saguio eyed his brother askance. "You don't look that
tired to me."
"I'm afraid that I am." Ranji found
himself staring outside, at the surrounding, all-encompassing jungle. "I'm
very tired. I'm more tired than you know."
A note of alarm crept into his sibling's voice.
"Maybe you'd better check back in to the infirmary. You might've picked up
something latent out there."
No, I didn't pick anything up, he thought. I left
something. "I'll be all right. I just need to rest. The strain of having
the Teachers here . . . you understand.''
"I guess so." Saguio sounded doubtful but
willing.
"It's almost meal time. You start on over. I'll
be along in a minute." Ranji barely quashed an incipient Human smile.
"If you're sure ..." His brother managed a
grin. "I'll find some good seats, though after what you've been through
you can probably sit anywhere you want."
Ranji watched until Saguio disappeared around the
next barracks. Surprisingly, he felt the first pangs of evening hunger. Food,
at least, was devoid of biological and philosophical complications. Human or
Ashregan, he could still take pleasure in eating.
He had to tell Saguio soon, regardless of possible
consequences. Better to have it all out at once than wait for it to slip out in
confusing, contradictory bits and pieces.
Or he could end it. Just lift the service pistol
from his belt, place it gently against the side of his skull, and in an instant
banish all pain, all confusion, all uncertainty. No need then to agonize over
who was telling the truth, over the true nature of himself.
It was the thought that perished, not the mind that
conceived and discarded it. He did not fear death, but he refused to die
without answers.
That much, at least, he knew about himself.
The three Humans
sprawled languidly around the crescent-shaped table,
shuttling down drinks as they watched the projections which
cavorted amid the storm of colored lights that filled the
relaxation center. Music caressed respective tympana as
near-naked men and women flitted erotically through fragments of light sharp and
distinct as metal shavings. They and their
immediate surroundings danced submerged
in the mists of a perfumed artificial twilight.
The Center was
extensive and they were not alone. Representatives of
other Weave species sought similar solace in the febrile
evening. Massood and Wais, S'van and Hivistahm and more
eagerly availed themselves of the soothing surroundings.
For each, different images dwelt in the deliberately coy shapes which darted
through the high-tech fog.
Not surprisingly,
the perceptions of the Massood differed little from
those of the Humans, though the figures that twisted and
pirouetted for them in the suggestive light were taller,
slimmer, and completely covered in fine gray fur. The
Wais saw elegant movement devoid of heavy sexual
overtones, while the contemplative Hivistahm willingly allowed
themselves to be blinded by deceptive iridescence.
Whatever the S'van observed amused them greatly, but then there was very little which did not. Being bright and intelligent but woefully deficient in
imagination, the O'o'yan saw not much of anything. Within the confines of the
Center, not merely beauty but virtually everything was in the eye of the beholder. Most of the time the
three visiting Humans preferred to eye the projections instead of each other.
Though Sergeant Selinsing was moderately attractive, her fellow noncoms Carson and Moreno
wouldn't have dreamed of undressing her with their active imaginations the way
they did the figures in the projections. She was, after all, very much one of the group.
Besides which she outranked them.
Carson manipulated a switch on the table.
Instantly the projection he'd selected was sitting there beside him, inviting him with her
eyes and more. He knew he could reach out and touch it, experiencing a
tactile fabrication guaranteed to please. Like all such liaisons, however, it
would
prove as transitory as the contents of his credit line, and about as
satisfying. With a sigh he nudged a control and watched as the apparition, like so many
previous loves, returned to the wizard regions which had spawned it.
Moreno was next to rejoin reality. To the
silent amusement of her companions, Selinsing lingered longest among the projections. She
blinked as the last one vanished.
"That one was new to the files."
She was mildly apologetic. "Mutant slavo-equine. Very
interesting."
"Spare me." Moreno slugged down
recombinant liquor. Smallest of the three, spare of word and feature, he had the doe sadness
of a saint and the moves of a pit viper. His tiny black eyes scanned the rolling,
uneven levels of the Center.
"I'm sick of this. Look at that odious
pair over there." His head bobbed.
Like a bear emerging from hibernation,
Carson swiveled in his seat. Selinsing tilted her head to one side.
The two Wais were deep in conversation, the
hypnotic movement
of arms, fingers, head, and neck supplementing verbal communication. In attire they
were impeccable, in gesture flawless. Moreno wanted to puke.
' 'They squat on their feathery butts and
never get within a hundred kilometers of any actual fighting, but if we happened to ask about joining the Weave they would immediately vote against us."
Carson belched, a
rolling benthonic exhalation. "Who gives a shit about
their stupid Weave, anyway?" He sucked at his tankard. "Screw
"em."
"We do all
the fighting and they won't even let us vote in their organization,"
Moreno muttered bitterly.
"I don't mind
that." Selinsing was incongruously petite. "What I don't like is sitting
here while their stupid Military Council
decides strategy. They've always been overcautious."
"Just
so." Moreno straightened in his chair. "The only way we're ever going to get off this stinking, sweaty dung-ball of a world
is to kick the living mierda out of the enemy, and we can't do that while we're getting blitzed in here.''
"Can't do it out there,
either," Carson reminded him. "Orders.
You know what the Council says. Patience."
"Yeah, patience," said Moreno
morosely. "And the Massood go along
with 'em. Damn shrew-faces."
"They've
always gone along with the Council." Selinsing drew imaginary lines on the
tabletop. "That's why this war's been
going on for so long. Not that they're cowards. Just overcareful. They've been listening to the S'van and Wais for too long. Not to mention the
Turlog."
"I heard that
two of the crabs were on Eirrosad, dictating tactics." Moreno glowered at
a distant pair of necking S'van. Their eruptive beards
intertwined indistinguishably.
"It would not surprise me,"
said Selinsing. "Orders are that no
unit can advance more than two kilometers for fear of being flanked."
"Flanked mierda." Moreno's
disgusted gaze abandoned the S'van.
"War's been going on here long enough for everybody to know everyone else's position. We know pretty well where the enemy headquarters for this
region is situated. We ought to
smash right in there, take it out, verdad?,
and not stop until we reach their
planetary HQ.
That'd put fin to the Purpose on
this piece of dirt. Then maybe they'd post
us somewhere decent."
"I agree," said Selinsing,
"but Command doesn't."
Carson leaned back in his chair.
"Why don't you two quit yer bitching?
We're stuck here and there ain't a damn thing we can do about it because our own officers spend all their time diplomatically disagreeing with
Massood and S'van tactical drivel. They've got less guts than the squids."
"As a matter of fact,"
Selinsing murmured softly, "it is said
that the Amplitur actually have two sets of guts."
"Then they're
probably real happy with the current state of affairs." Carson sought wisdom
in the depths of his impressive tankard. "Me, I personally don't think
they want to beat us. Just keep things
stalemated until they can outlive
us."
Moreno rested his
forearms on the table. The music of many-species music ricocheted off surrounding
walls. "I say somebody's got to do something to change
the present state of affairs. Somebody's got to do it now.'"
"What did you have in mind?"
Eyes half-closed, the relaxed Selinsing
contemplated invisible amours.
"Our position
is pretty isolated, the farthest advanced of any firebase.
The ideal place from which to strike. An end could be put to
the business of Eirrosad ... if
somebody had the guts to do
it." Eyes narrowed, he appraised his colleagues. "Preferably several
somebodies."
"You mean hit
'em with just our own squads?" Carson shifted in his
seat. "Wouldn't be enough firepower to be sure of success. Anyway we'd be
ordered back too soon for it to do any good."
"Not if we started out with
incontrovertible orders in the first
place," Moreno ventured conspiratorially.
Carson blinked at him. "Must be too
many lights in here. I ain't followin' you."
Moreno put a hand on his friend's arm.
"What if the word came down from
Command level to carry out just such
an attack?"
Selinsing uttered
something unmistakably derisive in the language of her
ancestors. "At least you have chosen the proper
venue for wishful thinking."
"Yeah, dream
on," Carson grunted.
"You know Colonel Chin?"
Moreno inquired of his companions.
When they drew
close together Carson's thick eyebrows resembled a pair of caterpillars engaged
in unspeakable activities. "Sure.
Everybody knows Chin. But Chin ain't in
command of our position. Wang-lee is."
"That's so.
But right now Wang-lee is busy conferencing with the major
minds back at Katulla Nexus, hashing strategy with the crabs and the S'van.
That leaves Chin in charge until she gets back." He
leaned forward eagerly. "I happen to know Chin's as
tired of waiting on the Council as the rest of us."
"I have never heard him say
anything along those lines." Selinsing
was being cautious.
"You wouldn't
expect him to blurt it out in public, now would you?''
Moreno smiled like a man in possession of a considerable
secret.
Carson's eyes
widened. "You've talked to him! About this?"
He whistled softly. "One wrong word scrapes the wrong nerve and you'll find yourself back at Supply Central, busted in rank and cataloging foodstuffs for the duration."
"Anything
would be better than squatting in the middle of this
jungle, waiting to go mad."
"You are joking," said
Selinsing slowly. "Though if someone
like Chin were to give the orders ..."
"Give orders, hell." Carson
turned to stare intently at Moreno.
"If Chin feels the same way about these delays as the rest of us, could be
he might consider doing more than just issuing orders. Like maybe
leading an assault himself.''
Suddenly aware he might have gone too
far too fast, Moreno adopted a cautioning tone. "Slow down, my friends. I've only suspicions. I don't know
Colonel Chin's feelings exactly. It's only been mentioned on a couple of
occasions,
and casually at that. Chin never got specific. He's a funny kind of guy, even for an
officer."
"Nothing wrong with his rep. I know he's
got what it takes upstairs." Carson rapped his belly. "Question is, does he have it
here?"
"If we hit the enemy with our full
strength," Selinsing was murmuring, "not just our three squads but
everything on the base, we could roll right over them and strike for their planetary
headquarters. Ja; maybe even get ourselves a couple of squids.
Vacuum them right out of the forest."
"That's the wipe!" Carson drained
his tankard, glanced hopefully at Moreno. "How about it, Juan? You think
Chin might
go for it?"
"Not in so many words," the
shorter man replied carefully. "Chin's as focused on his career as any
officer. He'd have to feel he was covered in case of a screwup."
"Certain ambiguities might creep into
official communications, rendering ultimate comprehension a matter of individual
interpretation." Both men looked at Selinsing, who smiled like a
petite wolverine. Communications was her subspeciality.
"There is a certain officer in Base
Operations," she explained unctuously. "He is Massood. If these
hypothetical orders happened to be received in Massood, difficulties in translation might
have to be resolved as best as possible by whichever personnel happened to be present at the time."
"Like you?" Carson wore a grin of
a different sort.
She smiled ever so slightly. Escaping
rainbows stained her jet-black crewcut. "It is not inconceivable. It would of course also be
incumbent upon me to see that matters of ambivalence were conveyed personally to
the acting base commandant so that he could propose a determination based on available
evidence and expert opinion."
"You again." Carson's admiration
knew no bounds.
Having intended only to submit the first
draft of a casual notion, Moreno was somewhat taken aback by
the speed with which his companions had proceeded to polish it.
"Slow down.
We're all half-drunk."
"Not me,"
Carson insisted cheerfully. "I'm four-fifths, at least.''
"What if Chin
doesn't take to the idea in the spirit with which it's offered?"
Selinsing shrugged. "Then I can be
held responsible for a poor translation from
the Massood, remember? I'm willing
to take that much of the risk. If he so chooses, all he can fault us for personally is an excess of
enthusiasm."
Carson's chair
hummed as it retreated from the table. He rose, weaving
only slightly. As he stepped out of the Human cone of influence, the shape in
the shadows changed from that of a tall,
voluptuous woman to a short and to
the sergeant's eyes utterly repulsive female S'van.
"Let's do it now." His eyes
blazed. "Let's do it quick. I'm
sick of sitting on my ass blowing kisses at shadows. I want to kill something."
That was Carson
for you, his friends knew. Just a regular guy.
Whispering excitedly among themselves the non-coms exited
the club, oblivious as always to the expressions of disgust
and relief which crossed the faces of their non-Human
allies and fellow patrons as the three primates departed.
Chin's apartment
was located deep within the forward firebase's central
accommodations complex. Given the option, on Eirrosad
as elsewhere, high-ranking officers usually elected to sacrifice sweeping views
in favor of claustrophobic safety. As befitted the base's second-in-command, Chin rated not one but three rooms: a
sleeping cubby, private hygienic
facilities, and a meeting and strategy room. Native vegetation had been
planted atop the complex, which in
combination with sophisticated methods of camouflage allowed the base to blend
into the surrounding jungle.
It was quite late and typically dark
outside when the three noncoms ventured from their quarters. Overhead, the camouflage
aerogel shimmered like fro/en smoke, concealing movement, mass, and heat from
possible detection. Beneath its distorting imagery hundreds of soldiers and support
personnel sheltered.
The stone-faced, uninhibited Chin greeted
them in a pair
of briefs. He disliked climate control as much as official ceremony and
in the privacy of his own quarters disdained the use of both. Formally attired,
his nocturnal visitors were soon sweating profusely.
Physically Chin was anything but impressive.
He was shorter
than any of them, Selinsing included. Like her, his features were small,
verging on the delicate. The Malay returned Chin's stare boldly. There was about
as much fat on him as on an egret, which he superficially resembled. Despite that he
looked older than he was.
Yet this was a man who had spent his entire
adult life fighting in the service of the Weave. The mere fact of his continued survival
was all the testimonial he needed. The numerous scars which covered his body, scars
which even Hivistahm medical science had been unable to eliminate completely,
underlined his accomplishments as rakishly as they clothed his muscles. Small he
was, but nothing to trifle with.
In his expectant presence Carson and
Selinsing wavered. In the confines of a commandant's quarters at two o'clock in the
morning, intentions nurtured by boredom and booze tended to lose immediacy. As the
one who had originally conceived it, a hesitant Moreno was therefore left to give birth
to the proposition.
"Colonel, sir, my colleagues and I, well . . . we've been talking."
"So I presumed when you requested a
meeting at this unconscionable hour." Chin's words were like the rest of him: short, clipped,
to the point.
Moreno was not intimidated. Chin was widely
respected
as a soldier's officer. "It's something that's beeir bothering us for a
long time, something we've talked about a lot. It's
not anything we can take care of without help. Command-level
help."
"Your help,
sir," Selinsing chipped in. "And your discretion."
"Really." Eyebrows ephemeral
as a late-night regret rose slightly.
"It's good to know that one's opinion is respected by one's troops. Excuse me a moment." The near-naked officer rose to check the door, then his
viewscreen, before resuming his
smile and his seat. ' 'Cool out tonight. Metrolg predicts rain."
"When doesn't
it rain on this stinking planet?" Carson muttered
rhetorically.
"When indeed. Tell me now: with
what do you need my help?"
"Something of
vital importance, sir," Moreno told him.
"Allow me the privilege of making
my own evaluation," Chin murmured. "It may differ from yours."
"I don't think it will, sir."
Moreno glanced at his friends for support,
then smiled tightly back at the commandant. "None of us do."
When the word came
down from Colonel Chin's Tactics Group that
something big was in the offing, the Massood were
willing, if a shade puzzled. It struck several of their officers that
they had not been consulted on procedure. Informed
that the success of the exercise hinged upon surprise and unpredictability, they had to confess that it had indeed
caught them completely unprepared, and might logically
therefore have the same effect upon the enemy. Debate, they were informed, would only slow them
down. It was time to act, not
discuss.
When informed of
the nature of the forthcoming operation, the Human
officers and noncoms expressed unqualified enthusiasm. Though most of them
were as tired of sitting around as the trio
which had confronted Chin, none had
heretofore manifested their feelings in half so overt a fashion. One or two of the younger officers did find
themselves pausing to wonder at the abruptness of it all, but their
curiosity was drowned in the rush of preparations which followed the handing down of orders.
Among the support
personnel, Hivistahm and O'o'yan, Wais and Yula and the rest, there were
only the usual misgivings. As the
representatives of the noncombat species
lived in a perpetual state of apprehension anyway, it mattered little to them whether Human and Massood
forces were coming or going. They performed their assigned tasks with silent efficiency while doing their best to
keep their attention averted from
the bloodthirsty grimaces and exclamations
of those sentients who were preparing to die on their behalf.
Some who were
hobbyistically inclined to philosophical consideration of matters strategic
wondered why this particular moment had been chosen for a
massive attack and could find no reason. It did not
trouble them overly. It was in the nature of Humans to do the unpredictable.
They had been doing it with regularity and to great effect
ever since they had been recruited into the effort. No
Hivistahm, no Lepar was about to second-guess them.
Imagine mounting
an all-out assault on the enemy when there was no
obvious justification for doing so! Clearly a stroke of
purest brilliance. The support teams threw themselves
energetically into the last-minute, frantic preparations.
F'tath was not a
high-ranking officer, but he was S'van. Even as he joked
and hurried to carry out his own duties, he found himself
questioning the press of activity. Not the actual orders; they at least were in
line with historical Human-Massood strategy.
What concerned him was the narrow chain of command down which they had
been passed. For example, as pertained to
his own department, there hadn't even been time beforehand to discuss
projected lines of supply, an omission
which to him smacked of the blatantly neglectful.
He promptly made
it his announced intention to bring the oversight to the attention of his
superiors at Sector Command as soon as he finished supervising requisite
preparations for the battle group's departure, this being about as close to actual combat as a civilized
S'van could come. So hectic was the
press of work, however, that he could
not seem to find sufficient time to properly formulate the questions he badly
wanted to ask.
Which was very
much the intention of those who had drawn up the
departure schedules.
By the time F'tath
and those few others to whom similar thoughts had occurred were allotted a
break, dozens of heavily armed sleds and sliders
were rising above the forest canopy
and streaming away eastward, the start of the assault undeterred by the morning
rain. At which point it seemed
foolish even to a S'van to question an operation already under way. So
F'tath and others of like mind carried
their concerns with them to bed.
No reserves were
held back. Every slider, sled, and soldier on the base
was thrown into the all-out attack. Humans and Massood
rolled over the first couple of enemy positions before
the startled defenders realized what had hit them. Crigolit and Ashregan were
prepared to beat back surgical thrusts by small groups of fast-moving troops, not the kind of ravening firepower which
the attackers now brought to bear.
That was how it had gone on Eirrosad:
probe and flee, strike and retreat. Hurt your enemy as much as possible
and then fall back to heavily fortified
bases deep in the jungle.
The Crigolit and
Ashregan had no idea how to react to the sudden shift in tactics. Not that
their assailants gave them time for prolonged
contemplation.
The Massood in
particular were elated at the speed with which the first
couple of enemy positions were overrun. Casualties were
light, boldness and determination having proven themselves
the equal of twice the firepower. They complimented their
Human allies even as they redoubled their own
gracefully lethal efforts.
Certain Human
noncommissioned officers felt themselves vindicated. The first enemy bases had
been taken with greater ease than anyone could have
hoped for. Not only Human senses had been dulled by the long war of attrition on Eirrosad. Crigolit and Ashregan
reaction times were likewise well
below the usual, to their detriment. It was a damn good thing, Carson told his colleagues, that they had decided to move first.
Conferencing with his subordinates, Chin
hit upon a strategy of racing past instead
of engaging the remaining three enemy
firebases to strike at enemy Sector Headquarters itself. Barely enough time was allotted for the squad supervisors to bellow their agreement, let alone
voice any objections.
If they could not
merely take out but capture that critical installation it would place them in
position to flank and put pressure on the enemy's planetary HQ. A victory of that magnitude might not end the war for Eirrosad,
but it would unequivocally upset the status quo. Dispersement of this possible conclusion induced tired soldiers
to redouble their efforts.
Where resistance
was weak or even nonexistent slider riders and sled
troops raced ahead, bypassing bewildered enemy emplacements
and floater forces, leaving them with nothing to shoot at but vacant forest and
empty air. Though increasingly spread out, the combined
Human-Massood battle group persisted in its wild, mad advance, shoving aside or smashing everything in its path.
Floaters were
blasted out of the sky before they could assume adequate
defensive positions, or were shot down from behind as they tried to retreat.
Enemy stores and structures were demolished
on the ground as the sled teams strafed
and bombed them in passing.
Stealing a modicum
of time, the commandant of one of the remaining enemy firebases did manage
to mount something of a counterattack.
Sliders and floaters and sleds filled
the air with explosive projectiles and needle beams, cohabiting in technologically advanced mayhem as
they darted through and around tree-covered Sludgel while driving the unfortunate native fauna half-crazy.
The Humans
excelled at such random, individual combat, cutting up
and isolating enemy forces into smaller and smaller groups,
until there was nothing left to fight back. Outmatched, Crigolit and Ashregan
units had no hope of halting the assault.
Ineffective as it
was, when the first enemy counterattack came F'tath fully
expected Command to give the order to hold and consolidate
their substantial gains. When no such directive was
forthcoming he sought clarification beyond his immediate
command level, only to be informed that Colonel Chin and
his staff were far too busy plotting the next stage of the
advance to grant an audience to a lower-level supply
officer. Though he responded with the usual S'van humor, it was not the response
F'tath had hoped for.
In a combat
situation, even S'van had learned the value of deferring to
Human judgment, but something about this particular campaign left F'tath feeling
more than a little uneasy. Though bold and
clever on the battlefield, Humans were not perfect, not immune to the
occasional tactical mistake. He tried to share his concerns with others, but
they were either numbed by the incivility of it all or else too busy to listen
to him. In point of fact he was usually too
busy to listen to himself.
But there was
always time for worrying.
So swift, brutal, and effective had the
Weave assault been that both forward firebases had been lost by the time Ranji's group received word
to mobilize. Saguio had been lounging close enough to unit communications to
overhear the first reports.
"They came in so fast, with utter
recklessness," he said breathlessly. "Our people didn't have a chance.
Northwest Base
managed to put together a counterattack but Command Central doesn't expect it
to stop them." Outside the barracks, members of different species were
running or scuttling about frantically. Sirens wailed and vehicles sped across the grounds
with criminal disregard for equally frantic pedestrians. The base's inhabitants
were hastily trying to bring order out of chaos.
Crigolit barely paused long enough to
exchange greetings via antenna touch, while Segunians tripped over everything including
their own gangly limbs in their fervid attempts to reach their stations.
Ranji paid little attention as his brother
harangued fellow members of the team from Cossuut. The Humans and Massood, it
appeared, had attacked in overwhelming numbers, concentrating a tremendous amount of
firepower on
a small front. They had pushed past or broken through successive defensive
layers and were apparently striking directly for Sector Headquarters itself, with
little in their path to slow or stop them. The battle front, which had been relatively
stable for many years, had been completely shattered.
Skids landed outside the barracks, fully
stocked and readied for combat by the base's Acarian equipment handlers. A dazed
Ranji felt himself swept along as the transport rose and sped northward, skimming the
treetops in its haste to reach their assigned position.
The Cossuut unit was supposed to be utilized
only for special
purposes, but in the face of Sector Integrity's collapse every available
fighter had been conscripted for defense. As the craft began to descend toward
the line which had been established outside one of the three surviving firebases, Ranji was
forced to seriously consider the likelihood that he might soon be called upon to
strike at Human beings with something more damaging than sharp queries.
Could he give the order to fire on his own
kind? If they were indeed his own kind, he reminded himself. In the frenzy of confusion
and preparation that engulfed him he was no longer certain of anything, except
that prospects for a long and comfortable retirement had recently been drastically reduced.
Death at least would resolve all un certainties and put an end to his private
sufferings. .j
Once more the peculiar calm which his troops
mistook j for quiet confidence
settled over him. Then someone was shaking him by the arm.
"Did you hear, Ranji?" Saguio
regarded his brother with concern. "Change of plans. Command's leaving
all the
firebases to fend for themselves. We're being committed directly to the
defense of Sector Headquarters." His
| eyes
glittered expectantly. "We're going to be right in the " front of the fighting. No more sneaking
around in the middle of the night."
"I heard. Get into your armor. Tell
Tourmast and Weenn to pass the word. We're liable to come under fire before we arrive."
Saguio frowned slightly. "Headquarters hasn't come under attack yet.
Body armor can get hot. There's plenty of time."
"Where Humans are involved there's
never enough time. Just ask the survivors of the two forward firebases ... if
there are any. Move it!''
Startled, Saguio rushed to comply.
Ranji followed deliberately. War of a
different kind was raging within him, unsupportable claims doing battle with reluctant truths,
emotion locked in earnest combat with reason.
Abruptly the grandiose futility of it all
struck hard. A thousand years of unending conflict, not over survival or culture but an idea.
The more tenuous the concept, he mused, the greater the ferocity with which
it was contested. It seemed a wasteful repository for a gift as precious as
intelligence.
But if there was nothing to do battle over,
what place did someone like himself who had been trained to fight from birth have in
civilized society, be it Ashregan or Human? He began to think of himself as an
intellectual as well as emotional foundling. Did such thoughts trouble his friends from home?
Had they ever worried any Humans, and if so, how had those mysterious creatures
dealt with it? He wondered if he would ever know.
Certainly they were a most unique and
peculiar species, and what was he if not peculiar enough to be one of them?
The cataract of concern dulled his mind as
he slipped into his own field armor, a task he'd drilled at often enough to perform without
thinking.
"They're doing what" Field
Marshal Granville gaped at his Massood counterpart only long enough for the import of the other's words
to sink in before the two of them started toward Communications. Granville was
a mature, stocky,
slightly overweight man, but over the short distance he had no trouble keeping up
with the long-legged alien. Additional confirmation of the initial reports was mirrored in the
expressions of the communications personnel on duty, irrespective of species.
"There is no longer any question of
what has happened." The Massood district commander's whiskers were twitching violently.
"On-site verification arrived just before I left to inform you. I felt
it would be more believable coming from me than via courier or over the system, and I
am sure that like myself you desire to waste as little time as possible in dealing with the
consequences of these actions."
"Gratefulness for that, Shatenka,"
wheezed the field marshal in passable Massood. The two sector commanders hurried to the
nearest console, causing the Hivistahm technician seated there to fumble nervously at
his translator in the presence of so much feral rank.
"Are you in contact with the base in
question?" Granville inquired bluntly. The Hivistahm replied in the
affirmative.
"Then put me through."
"Truly I should like to, honored
Commander, but I cannot," the Hivistahm replied sorrowfully.
"Why not?" Granville's tenebrous
Human tone made the non combative Hivistahm shake slightly.
"Because there is truly no one there.
All responses from programs are. Apparently everyone in the attack participating is, even to
including support personnel."
"This is madness." Commander
Shatenka added something in colloquial Massood which none of the tangent translators near him
succeeded in picking up.
The two commanders moved to another console
and confronted
a Human officer. "Who's in charge out there?"
Names scrolled down the screen in front of
the woman like
damned souls plunging hellward. "A Colonel Nehemiah Chin, sir."
"I have remembrance of that name."
Shatenka's upper lip curled emphatically. "A good officer. It makes no sense."
"I'll say it makes no sense,"
Granville growled. "Who sent him orders requesting an all-out assault in his
sector? It
leaves us damn exposed back here."
"I have already called for a full defensive
mobilization,"
Shatenka assured him.
"I know, I know. That's hardly the
point."
A Hivistahm analyst looked up from her
console, wary of the Human commander's temper. "Honored sirs, first reports
indicate that the forces in question already taken have two major hostile
positions and are directly for the enemy Regional Command center
striking."
"You're right. Someone is mad."
Granville glanced up at his tall counterpart and lowered his voice.
"What's your considered opinion, Shatenka. Can Chin bring this off?"
The Massood considered, digging
energetically at a back molar. His whiskers subsided. ' 'The forces in question
are composed
largely of your own kind. However, since you ask my thoughts, I should say it
depends on how much firepower they can ultimately bring to bear when they finally
reach their target. If by then the enemy has not profoundly reduced them
in strength and they do not pause their attack long enough to give the
Ashregan time to muster reserves from other regions, then I should think it
possible.
Just."
Granville angrily fingered his translator.
"If this attack fails, or even stalls, they'll find themselves trapped between large-scale
enemy regional defenses and those they've bypassed or failed to wipe out on the
way in. In which event we could lose the entire battle group."
"Your thinking mirrors my own. They have
advanced too
far too fast. Now they have no choice but to press the assault.''
"Maybe not. If we can reach individual
squad leaders, we can countermand their orders. If enough of the group turns together, they
ought to be able to fight their way back.'' Granville plotted a path toward
fieldcom.
Shatenka followed. "Communications at
this range will be bad."
"I know. I wish R&D could find a
way to defend a communications relay satellite against knockdown for longer than a couple of
days. We'll just have to do the best we can."
Somehow he was not surprised when the
O'o'yan technician informed them that he could not make contact with a single
element of the rogue Weave force.
"The problem is at the receiving end,
Great Marshal. It matters not which frequency I employ. There is no acknowledgment."
"It fits."
"What fits, my friend?" Shatenka
inquired anxiously.
"Chin's acting on his own, without
orders."
The Massood growled softly, his small
triangular ears flattening against his skull. "That is a very serious as sumption." i
"Grounded, I think, in more than
coincidence."
"Perhaps. But irrelevant should the
venture succeed."
"Truly, as our Hivi friends would say.
He's been very clever.'' There was grudging admiration in the field marshal's voice.
"He'll emerge from this either a damned hero, or just damned."
"We cannot reinforce them."
Shatenka pointed out.
' 'I know. The extent of their advance
places us in enough danger as it is. I only hope that our opponents are so
dazed and
confused by Chin's attack that none of them take the time to realize how
exposed it's rendered us back here.
"In the meantime, until the situation
resolves itself we'll back him every way we can and pray his people bring this off. We can forward
certain classes of supplies by unpi-loted sled. I'll see to that. You deal with
any questions from Central."
"I would far rather be on the
battlefield." The Massood sniffed pointedly.
"Your thoughts," muttered Granville
acerbieally, "mirror my own." He turned back to the O'o'yan tech. "Keep trying to
make contact. If you reach anyone—Human, Massood, Lepar, regardless of rank or
position—I want to know about it. If I'm not here, find me. If I'm asleep, wake me. If
I'm in the can, beat on the door."
The O'o'yan inclined its narrow, delicate
head. "Understood, Great Marshal."
Any early feelings of uncertainty among the
members of the attacking force about their chosen course of action vanished as enemy
resistance collapsed under the fury of the Human-Massood assault. There was
barely enough time to savor each triumph before orders arrived directing the next attack on the
enemy's position. Certainly there was no time to formulate questions, which was the
intent of Chin
and his collaborators from the beginning.
The attack gave no sign of faltering. The
soldiers of Chin's battle group were in superb condition, and even seemed to gain
strength with each objective attained. Though the initial advantage of surprise had
been expended,
the battle group continued to forge ahead on skill and dedication alone.
The counterattack gave some members of
Chin's staff pause, especially when he insisted on sending shock teams and scouts on ahead
to probe the enemy's SHQ defenses in spite of the fact that the enemy now had
to be aware of their intentions. But since Chin's predictions had been coming true with
edifying regularity, pause did not give way to objection. Not that a few concerns
would have swayed the colonel in any event. There were too many others on the staif
who fully supported his strategy.
While Chin's reaction to his accomplishments
thus far was
less than boisterous, some of his personnel were less restrained. Three
noncommissioned officers in particular made no attempt to hide their feelings.
Though exhausted, they had no intention of requesting a break, neither for themselves nor their
troops. Not with the perimeter of the enemy's Sector Headquarters already under
attack from outlying scouts striking from superfast sliders.
Take that objective, they knew, and the
poofs back at Regional would have no choice but to back them with fresh troops. They would
have gained too much to risk giving back. Enemy
influence across the entire southern quarter of the
Eirrosadian landmass would be broken.
Things were going so well that Chin had
decided to send several squads racing around
behind the enemy HQ in order to be
in position to interdict any attempts at reinforcement. In an earlier era such strategy might have been carried out with aircraft, but with the
advent hundreds of years before of
compact computer-guided missiles
and energy beams capable of knocking anything out of the sky, control of the air had become
irrelevant to modern warfare. Among
the clouds there was no place to hide.
Increasingly tired
but increasingly confident, Chin's group continued to
advance.
Even in moments of
direst distress it was in the nature of the Amplitur to remain
calm, a characteristic which their allies found endlessly
reassuring. Since the universe had evolved gradually, they were fond of
pointing out, it similarly stood to reason that
there was no need to concede emotion to haste. It required
an extraordinary series of debilitating circumstances to
reduce an Amplitur to agitation.
While distinctly
nonplussing, the current situation failed to qualify.
"It would
seem," commented High-many fold-Leaving, "that
our position here has changed rapidly from dangerous to precarious."
"That is
unarguably so." Place-bereft-inward favored the speaker with one eye while the other swiveled independently on its stalk to study the slowly shifting topographical image that floated in the air between them. "An exceptional effort will have to be made if we are to stave off serious damage to local expectations."
They would have
liked to have conferenced with their colleagues at
Planetary Headquarters, but the press of battle and Weave interference techniques had rendered that impossible. It was only by chance that they, the only other pair of Amplitur on Eirrosad, happened to be at the Southern Sector HQ when the Weave had launched its blistering and utterly unexpected attack. Both
were acutely conscious of the demands their allies had subsequently placed upon
them and determined to resolve the situation to the best of their abilities.
Unfortunately, the attacking Humans and
Massood were disinclined to cooperate.
Though reluctant to expose themselves to the
exigencies of a combat situation, the Amplitur had no intention of concentrating their
efforts on securing their safety through personal flight. Such an action would
have had a devastating effect on the morale of their allies. If they were
cautious it stemmed from understanding of an underlying reality: there were not that many
Amplitur in the universe and their survival was vital to the advancement of the
Purpose. They did not run, but, rather, guarded themselves well.
The Ashregan and Crigolit officers who joined
them in the
chamber were neither calm nor composed. It might even be said that they had passed beyond
agitation to panic.
"What are we to do?" The Ashregan
spoke without offering so much as a polite greeting or casual honorific. The Amplitur
understood and said nothing. Most other species had not yet begun to come to grips
with the vagaries of their endocrine systems.
Besides, desperate circumstances did not
permit time for civilized verities.
One of the Crigolit scuttled forward and
employed its forelimbs to unfold a collapsing readout. "We have concocted a plan."
Chitinous digits traced glowing lines on the screen. "First we concentrate
our forces much as the enemy expects."
High-manyfold-Leaving commented dryly.
"I do not see the reinforcement of tactical redundancy as extricating us from our
present situation."
The attempt at sarcasm caught the Crigolit
unprepared, but it continued anyway. ' 'The intent is to lull the enemy into false
expectations of quick victory."
"Given our present circumstances it
will not be necessary to lull them," the Amplitur murmured.
A sound akin to rusty whistling and air
escaping underwater emerged from behind the Crigolit's
mouthparts. "I elucidate further, honored Teachers.
Here," and his digits moved, "we place the special squadron from Cossuut.
Fortuitously they are among us. Only when the enemy finally attacks in full strength do we exert our utmost to hold them back, as the special Ashregan fighters
stab into them from behind.
"Under ordinary battle conditions
this would seem a futile tactic, but even
Humans must grow tired from continuous fighting. They are spread out
and their lines of communication and supply
grow longer as they advance. In such
a situation a small, irresistible force operating behind their lines might wreak considerable
havoc.''
The two Amplitur
consulted, leaving the representatives of their allied
races to mill about in awkward silence. It was
Place-bereft-inward who finally replied.
"There is
considerable risk. If the fighters from Cossuut do not have
an impact then we will have reduced our defensive
capabilities and gained nothing in return."
"Then we
should concentrate our forces here," chirped one of the assembled Crigolit officers.
"Neither shall we do that."
High-many fold-Leaving gestured absently with a tentacle. "It is our
intention to put up only minimal resistance
and abandon this place to our voracious enemy.''
Many of those among
the assembled had thought themselves beyond shock. They were wrong.
"Honored
Teachers, I ask you to reconsider," pleaded the ranking
Ashregan. "The distance to Planetary Headquarters'
perimeter and the safety it would provide is more than five days'
travel by fast skid. During that time we would
not be able to use many of our heavy weapons and could not maintain an adequate defensive formation. Fast-moving pursuit could take us apart a little at a
time."
"We can defend
this installation!" The ranking officer's adjutant
was as insistent as she was outraged. "Whether the Cossuut group is otherwise employed or not. Let the Humans and Massood come. They are effective in the jungle, but can they
dig a determined defense out of this mountain? Tired and worn as they must be, I
think not.''
"Our greatest weakness since Humans have allied themselves with the Weave has been our repeated
underestimation of their abilities,
in tandem with an unpredictability
which verges on madness." Place-bereft-inward relied on logic to convince,
though it would have been easier simply to "suggest" the decided
course of action to those present.
"As you so bravely state we might well
be able to defend our position here. However, after careful consideration of all relevant
factors we postulate an equal chance of failure. Even odds are no odds at all.
"If we utilize our full strength to
defend, and lose, then this entire region falls under the control of the
enemies of the Purpose. Gathering Weave strength here would threaten our very hold
on this world, rendering the security of Planetary Headquarters itself
untenable."
"Does not retreat allow the enemy to
achieve the same goal at little cost?" The bold female Ashregan was unrepentant. ' 'I fail to
see virtue in flight.''
"I shall elucidate." The Amplitur
extended two of the four digits on the end of its right tentacle and impacted
the
drifting topograph. It froze. Colors appeared on its surface as
High-manyfold-Leaving manipulated heavy air.
' 'We will put up minimal resistance before
abandoning this installation, but neither do we propose complete retreat."
"I don't understand," said the
ranking Ashregan.
"The female is half-right. The enemy
will be tired, but that does not mean they will be weak. We note that Humans have repeatedly
demonstrated uncommon endurance under stress. It is almost as if they revel
in personal suffering, as though pain and discomfort are required before they can reach great
heights. According to a captured Human psychologist this 'ennobling angst,' as
he called it, is endemic to the species and a requirement for its survival and advancement.
Insane as it sounds it is nonetheless very real. We must
try to comprehend it if we are to formulate successful
strategies for defeating them.''
"Your pardon
and understanding, honored Teacher," said the Ashregan
commander, ' 'but I fail to see how this impacts on our
present situation."
Place-bereft-Inward
took up the explanation. "This strange thesis holds that
the more difficult the situation, the harder Humans
fight. It is when everything is going their way that they are apparently at their most vulnerable. In order to make use of this knowledge we must for now accept this reversal of reason
without trying to understand it.
"The Humans
are superb fighters, but they are not superbeings, and they
have their own unique weaknesses. It is through our
comprehension and utilization of these vulnerabilities that
they shall be defeated, not by any attempt to impose our system
of values upon them."
In the silence
that ensued the two Amplitur perceived that their attempt
to spread enlightenment had produced only bewilderment. "I shall be
specific." Place-bereft-Inward's words
were accompanied by a mental suggestion of badly needed reassurance. "The majority of our people will
pull out, but not to retreat. Some will race toward Planetary Headquarters, giving the arriving enemy the impression that all are attempting to flee in that
direction. It will seem the natural thing for us to do. Meanwhile the bulk of our forces will head not for the
perceived safety of the headquarters
perimeter but for the dense hilly jungle to the southwest."
"That places us farther from
potential safety or reinforcement than
anywhere else," one of the elder Crigolit was unable to forbear from pointing out.
"Precisely,"
the Amplitur replied with cool confidence. "It is the
last thing the enemy would expect of us. From a strategic standpoint it is an
almost Human move. New problems require equally new and
radical solutions.
"After the
enemy has wrested this installation from the modest force which will remain to
'defend' it, and after they have begun their
pursuit of the group which will be sent
fleeing northwestward, but before they can consolidate their new conquest, we
will counterattack. Not in an attempt
to retake our position here, which would concentrate our forces dangerously, but all up and down along their line of assault. This time the element of
surprise shall be ours."
"Your pardon,
honored Teacher," said the obstreperous female
Ashregan officer, "but this strikes me as strategy based on hope as much as knowledge. The Humans excel at the kind of fragmented combat you propose.''
"That is
so." Both Amplitur agreed readily. "But you forget the Cossuut unit. Surprise and support from the rest of our forces should enable them to make a much greater impact than they
would be able to if attacking on their own.
Remember also that our assailants are not all Humans. According to the
reports there are Massood and noncombative species in the attacking force as
well. If these can be thrown into confusion
or panic, it will greatly complicate
the Humans' ability to fight, since they have come too far to quickly evacuate support personnel."
"And our fighters will be fresh and
rested," High-manyfold-Leaving pointed
out. "That counts for much."
While there was
some continuing discussion both Amplitur impatiently
suggested that their allies put any remaining objections aside in the
interests of speed, concurring that
insufficient time remained for the luxury of independent debate. So it was not
surprising when the assembled officers declared in a body,
"We accept the plan of the
Teachers."
"We feel
wellness at your decision." The Amplitur replied simultaneously,
gratified by the unanimous acceptance of the
foregone conclusion.
Hidden deep within
difficult, highly vegetated terrain, the forces which had
withdrawn in hasty but orderly fashion from the interior
of the mountain fortress were barely able to monitor the
Weave attack when it finally arrived. Those limited Ashregan, Crigolit, and
allied troops who had been left behind to mount a semblance of a
defense fought long and hard before they were overwhelmed by the ferocity of the assault, bravely sacrificing themselves in the cause of the Purpose. The Amplitur could not have hoped for better results.
Holding alertly at
their assigned position, Ranji's group was aware of what
was taking place only through infrequent and cautious internal communications.
They were too far away to hear the rumbling explosions
which issued with pernicious regularity from the interior
of the tabletop mountain as its conquerors obliterated
stores, equipment, and defenders with equal glee.
Soon squads of attackers were regrouping
atop the jungle-clad butte. Espying fleeing
enemy, small teams shot off in
pursuit, intent upon running down and destroying every potential survivor before they could reach the distant safety of their planetary headquarters.
Ranji considered the
Ashregan, Crigolit, and others who had accepted death
in the service of a feint. It frightened him to know that there was a time when
he might have done so with equal enthusiasm.
Now all he saw was
the extinction of brave individuals whose deaths in no
way enriched the universe. There was something
inherently obscene in the notion of dying for a strategic advantage. For
example, from what he had seen Humans who would readily sacrifice
themselves in defense of their world or even a friend were
much less likely to do so to preserve an abstraction.
Like the Purpose,
he told himself.
He was finding it increasingly difficult
to believe in much of anything.
The Amplitur, of
course, did not readily sacrifice them selves for the
cause. Though it was ostensibly because of their limited numbers, Ranji more
and more had come to think of this as a convenient
rationalization. The notion stuck in his conviction and would not
be moved.
For reasons
unknown, swept up in events he could not control in that uneasy time and place,
he found himself thinking frequently of the
Lepar.
Then the word was
passed that it was time to strike, and' his only thoughts
were for survival.
Seemingly from
behind every tree and rocky pinnacle the squads of
Ashregan and Crigolit slammed into the conquerors of the
mountain, most of whom were for the first time in several days just starting to
relax. Their timing could not have been
better had prognostication been other than
a prehistoric fancy.
Innumerable
firefights erupted in the terrain between the mountain
and south-flowing rivers, consuming frantic members of varying species with
inchoate impartiality. Humans and Massood frantically rushed to gather wits and weapons with which to defend them selves.
So furiously did
they strike back that in places the counterattack was
stopped cold, the attackers annihilated despite the advantage
of surprise. Elsewhere it was Humans and Massood who
were devastated, unable to mount an adequate defense
or flee to safety.
Ranji fought to
defend himself and, surreptitiously, his brother. It troubled him that he, likely
Human himself, was compelled by circumstance
to kill other Humans. Letting the natural killing reflex take over
allowed him to ignore his initial
inhibitions. This surprised him when it should not have. After all, Humans had been exterminating each other without compunction for thousands
of years.
Saguio,
Soratii-eev, Birachii, and the others charged into combat armored with the blissful balm of ignorance, unaware they had been called upon to slaughter their own kind, a task they executed with unalloyed vigor.
As for Ranji, under
the pretext of essaying strategy he strove to avoid as
much actual combat as possible. Cognizant of his
recent experiences, those operating under his command
considered his reticence prudent. He did manage to fire
his weapon frequently, with an inaccuracy those who happened to be momentarily
caught in his sights found laudable.
Innocent succulents and trees suffered the consequences of his anguish.
Spread out over a
huge section of swampy terrain, the conflagration would have struck an
onlooker as natural rather than artificial
in origin, as if some immense blaze had
suddenly erupted in the heart of the tabletop mountain and spread to the surrounding forest.
Indistinguishable as to source,
plumes of smoke rose from burning vegetation, from burning machines, from
burning bodies.
Amid heat and
smoke and dense vegetation it was difficult for Ranji to
tell Crigolit from Ashregan, Ashregan from Massood, Humans from his friends.
Only differing armor and equipment types offered ready
means for identification. One had to think fast and shoot faster if one expected to survive. He sought solace in delay
and tried not to think.
By keeping his
personal floater as close as possible to the ground he
managed to avoid the bulk of aerial combat. It was while
working his way slowly through a grove of massive, heavily buttressed trees that
he came upon the two corpses.
They were Human, one of each gender.
Great blackened gaps showed in their light
field armor where energy weapons had struck home. Their own rifles lay
nearby, punctuation marks bestriding lost lives. The right side of the man's skull was missing. Though cauterization was extensive Ranji could still see part of the brain, drying in the air like a wrinkled gray melon. The man lay crumpled on his side, his companion on her back. Her skin was pale, and he was very glad she did not much remind him of the woman he had known on Omaphil.
This close to the
mountain the soil was more than firm enough to support
his floater. He landed in hopes of learning what he could.
Close inspection
of the corpses told him little he did not already know. He bent over the man. If
he peered hard enough into the gaping
cranial cavity, would he be able to see
a small bundle of nerves, the nodule that Hivistahm and Human surgeons had assured him was alien to
every unaltered Human mind? Since he
sensed he would not his examination was cursory at best.
Rising, he resumed his seat on the
floater and sent it forward, angling slowly
through the grove. Every channel of
his communicator was alive with orders and exchanges. Around him the jungle boomed and hissed like a
gigantic reptile caught in the throes of violent death. He did not look back.
There was nothing he
could do. If he tried to surrender to the opposition under battlefield
conditions he would likely be shot on
sight. The bulky, securely attached cephaloprostheses
which had restored his Ashregan appearance could not be removed without
the aid of a fully equipped surgery.
Thoughts of
surrender passed quickly. That was not why he had returned to
his friends.
He cruised slowly
through environs becoming unnatural. Repeated clarion calls over his
communicator heralded successive triumphs
for the Purpose. Dull instinct dragged him
along while his field equipment kept him alive, armor-shell protecting epidermal shell concealing . . .
what?
Hammered at multiple points along their
line of advance, the fatigued attackers
were gradually cut into smaller and smaller groups. Expectations of glory
gave way to concern for survival. Without orders, without direction, they began to
retreat, fleeing back toward the meandering river they had so exultantly crossed the day
before. Supplies from Granville and Shatenka's joint command did not even have the chance to arrive before
the retreat began, and could not in any
event have prevented the disaster.
The faithful of the Purpose took many
prisoners that day. When it became clear that the assault had been turned, the
Amplitur sent a powerful combined battlegroup in pursuit of the
survivors. Many of Ranji's friends participated.
They swept beyond the rivers and overran the
forward Weave
firebase from which the attack had been mounted, taking control of its minimally manned
weapons systems and natural defenses and bringing a great swath of previously
Weave-controlled territory under Amplitur control. The opportunities for
rescue of those surviving Humans and Massood who had been scattered throughout
the endless jungle were reduced
from modest to nil. Indeed, Granville was
forced to request reinforcements simply to hold his own position.
Carson, Moreno, and Selinsing did not even
have the consolation
of knowing that their deaths had contributed to a gallant failure. It was an ignominious
rout. Caught between impenetrable canopy and a fast-moving Crigolit floater, Selinsing's
slider disintegrated under a hail of enemy fife. Carson was shot down over the main
river, while Moreno died trying to escape the captured fortress, which was rapidly turned
into a sandstone tomb by counterattacking Ashregan and their backups.
Many who were not killed fighting went down
in the jungle
on disabled vehicles, like so many exhausted birds unable to complete
an especially difficult migration. Some were rescued by daring outfliers who ignored
Granville's orders to stand clear. Others were caught and slain or captured by the
pursuing enemy.
Colonel Nehemiah Chin might have escaped to
face court-martial.
Instead he chose to use the concentrated firepower
of his command sled to cover the retreat of less heavily armed regular troops. Those who escaped might live again to fight another day, whereas his
military career was already finished.
The great gamble
had not paid off. Having acquired a debt he knew he
could not pay, he saw no reason to return.
It was most ironic because everything he
and his co-conspirators had hoped for had
come to pass. They simply had not credited the enemy with the wherewithal to
mount an effective response, an
oversight which he spent much of the
time remaining to him regretting.
Death brought peace
to Colonel Chin, but not contentment.
For the Weave
forces on Eirrosad the debacle was total. Plans for pressing
the enemy on other fronts were abandoned as reinforcements were hurriedly
rushed to defend what remained of Granville's shrunken sector. Overall strategy suffered a severe and embarrassing
retrenchment. Chin's Catastrophe, as it came to be known, forced Weave tacticians to abandon an optimistic status quo in
favor of a policy of anxious defense. Meanwhile, the dead commander's
dour superiors reaped a harvest of recriminations.
It was as serious a
battlefield defeat as Weave forces had suffered in some
time. The effects were felt beyond Eirrosad,
reverberating throughout the chain of command all the way up to the Grand Military Council itself.
As for the
Amplitur, they did not throw up their tentacles in triumph and husk hosannas
to the Purpose. It was not in their nature to celebrate death, even that of those who would destroy them. Revelry was left to the
Crigolit and Ashregan, the Molitar and Mazvec. The Amplitur would celebrate only when the Purpose was
fulfilled, be it a hundred years in the future, a thousand, an eon.
That did not mean
they did not find gratification in the accomplishment.
For their brilliant tactical maneuver
High-manyfold-Leaving and Place-bereft-Inward received quiet praise and new assignments. Of
rest there would be none. There would be plenty of time for the Amplitur to
rest once the Purpose had been fulfilled. Until that far distant day there was still too much
for them to do and too few of them to do it.
The news from Eirrosad had depressed
everyone at Weave Command on Omaphil. Conversation and spirits alike were muted. Even the
normally jocose S'van were subdued.
Two Humans, a pair of Massood, and three
S'van clustered in a high-ceilinged chamber afire with images of suns and ships. Rising
and descending on invisible supports, they studied and analyzed the
three-dimensional representation of their particular quadrant of the galaxy, not
so much
reading the map as voyaging through it.
One of the S'van waved the small wandlike
device he carried. Representations of starships swirled and reposi-tioned
themselves according to his directions. In the enclosed chamber his
translator boomed.
"We've already overextended ourselves in
our attempt to take Eirrosad. It weakens our inner spatial defenses and exposes us along this
entire line. I say it's time to consider pulling back. A strategic retrenchment does
not a retreat make."
"We cannot," argued a Massood
floating high above him. "If we give up Eirrosad, it will make it
extremely hard
to advance into the next important enemy sector . . . here." Her wand
stirred galactic soup.
"That's true. Our next big thrust will
be made much easier . . .if we can hold Eirrosad," another of the S'van said pointedly.
"Would you concede the Amplitur the same
sort of, advantage we seek for ourselves?" she riposted. "There are no
other habitable worlds in its immediate vicinity.''
"It's premature to speak of
concessions." One of the Human officers descended to the same level as the S'van. "Our situation
on Eirrosad's been damaged but not devastated. We may not be in a position to mount
any attacks for a while, but I think we can hold on to what we have.''
"I don't doubt that." The S'van put
both hands behind his back, thrusting his thick beard forward. ' 'My concern is that by
continuing to support forces on Eirrosad we weaken ourselves elsewhere. It's well known
that Humans dislike looking over their shoulders, lest they see something that displeases
them. In warfare ignorance is not bliss; it's lethal stupidity."
"Look," said the other Human
sharply, "I'll grant that you guys are brilliant tacticians, but you're as cautious
as any
of the species who don't carry guns. If it wasn't for us and the Massood, you
wouldn't advance anywhere. You'd just sit around on your hairy butts waiting for the
Amplitur
to hit you at their leisure."
As Human and S'van glared at each other from
perspectives
that differed as much as their respective heights, one of the Massood hastened
to change the subject.
"On a related matter, it seems clear
that the decision to return the altered Human-Ashregan to his friends was a mistake."
"We can't be certain of that yet." The Human who replied sounded slightly defensive.
The more belligerent of the two S'van
grinned. "Ignorance in this case is embarrassing."
The senior S'van had yet to say anything. It
was a marvel
to him that individual members of the contentious species of the Weave
could cooperate long enough to have a discussion, much less fight an
interstellar war. If the Amplitur could but see how truly fragile was the
structure of the Weave, how fractious and argumentative its members, they would
surely press their millennia-old assault even harder.
"That incident is history," the
S'van commented. "Not every experiment produces the results one hopes for. Time
spent
on recriminations is divisive and wasteful."
"We don't know what the subject's present
condition is.
Just because he
hasn't contacted us yet doesn't mean he's never going to." It was the
Human's turn to be defensive.
"It's
perfectly understandable that you stretch reason out of
compassion for one of your own. Had S'van been the
subjects of genetic manipulation by the Amplitur we would be equally
concerned."
As was typical of his kind, the Human
refused to be swayed by mere logic. "We don't know for certain that his Ashregan conditioning has reasserted itself.
We don't know for a fact that the
work our people did with him here on
Omaphil was unsuccessful." He hesitated. "Majority opinion
holds that he's probably dead, because he was returned
to the region where our recent losses occurred. Prior to our reversal of fortunes there, enemy casualties are known to have been heavy. It's reasonable to
assume he was among them. Until then he may very well have been trying to decondition his colleagues, which
was his avowed intention in returning."
"Probably we will never know,"
said the other Massood.
"Truly I would like to."
Everyone looked up
as a new figure drifted in to join them. Access to
the map chamber while conferencing was in progress was
supposedly forbidden, but First-of-Surgery had been granted
clearances usually denied even to senior officers.
The darkling
enclosure was alien to him, so very different from his normal brightly lit
surroundings. Furthermore, it was occupied by intimidating Humans and Massood. He instinctively stood close to the
S'van.
"I know you." The younger
Human officer frowned slightly in
remembrance. "You oversaw the whole experiment."
"As you truly remember, you may
also recall that I most strenuously argued
against the unfortunate subject Ranji-aar
to his friends returning, but was by the military overruled." He met
and held the Human's stare, something none
but a Turlog could manage for long.
"At the time we felt we had no choice," said the other Human.
First-of-Surgery eyed him frostily. "Of course you a choice had. You could to myself and other
specialists have listened. But your actions were, from what I have seen
and studied, of military thinking typical. You around you gather experts and analysts. Not to their opinions
listen to, but to an intellectual blanket create to from criticism shield yourselves.
Behind this barrier you carry on as before, deluded
that you of the help you have acquired made use. Now you have for this
shortsightedness on Eirrosad paid the price."
"Now just a minute," said the other Human. "Are you
suggesting that the return of this individual to his former friends and associates had something to do with
our recent defeat on that world?"
"I suggest nothing. I infer nothing. It is only that when the
unexpected itself repeats, is piqued my interest in relational
hypotheses."
"It has been determined that the Eirrosad disaster was the
fault of a single renegade Human colonel who deliberately excluded from his decision-making process all tactical
advice except that which arose from a select inner circle." The other
Human spoke with assurance.
"An all too common fault." The Human turned sharply on
the S'van who'd made the comment, but could discern nothing in the way of
expression behind an all-obscuring black
beard.
"It distresses me to bad news bring atop bad news."
First-of-Surgery clicked his teeth softly. "Facts have an awkward way of
lives of their own assuming."
"Go ahead," the nearest Human grumbled. "We've
heard little else these past few days. A little more won't make any
difference." The surgeon's translator rendered the primate's guttural
barkings into barbaric but comprehensible Hivistahm. This maceration of his
elegant language did not irritate him. As a physician he had a better
understanding than most of Human cultural failings.
"Please my
inadequate words excuse, but it has my experience been that visuals time as
well as confusion save."
Removing a control
wand not unlike those in the possession of his military colleagues, he
adjusted it while waving at the empty space
between them. Several star systems
were rudely swept aside, to be replaced by the floating image of a
Human skull. As he spoke, sections exploded
and expanded to reveal hidden secrets.
"You all are
or should by now be conversant with the recent studies
which were conducted on this world on one of the genetically
altered Humans who were preborn abducted by the
Amplitur. It was my privilege in charge of those studies to be." The wand
moved.
"Before the individual in question
was at his request returned to Eirrosad an
operation was carried out in which the Amplitur-induced alteration to his brain
was surgically isolated from the
rest of his nervous system, thereby negating
its influence." Slitted pupils monitored Humans and Massood for reaction.
"I remind you
that my staff and I considered this individual's release
and return premature."
"That's old
news, not bad news," commented the nearest Human.
"Truly."
The surgeon's tone was sharp. "Under natural conditions Human neural tissue rarely regenerates. Modern Hivistahm
and O'o'yan technology enables us such regrowth
artificially to induce, thereby rendering the Human physiologic condition
known historically as 'paralysis' a
medical anachronism.
"Prior to the
conclusion of surgery on the individual in question the
Amplitur-induced neural nodule within his brain was biopsied.
A computer projection on recent analysis based a
potential capacity for self-regeneration of this organ suggests." As he
spoke, animated neurons reasserted
themselves within the immensely magnified image rotating before them.
"This is a prognostication
only," observed the male Massood.
"The fact that such growth can occur does not mean that it will,
or that the Amplitur organ will successfully reconnect itself to the appropriate portions of the individual's brain."
"Such rapid cellular growth could even be carcinogenic,'/'
pointed out one of the S'van in uncharacteristically humorless fashion.
"That is not an impossible scenario," First-of-Surgery
admitted. "In that event the individual might die before the condition could be detected and treated.
Conversely, if successful regrowth
and reconnection were to occur, he might
despite all our arduous work with him here, under the sway of the Amplitur again find himself. Or
the clash of what he knows with what
he feels might well unbalance him mentally."
"Then all our work here was for naught," said another S'van.
"Not true. We learned much of importance." With a wave of the surgeon's wand the magnified bits of
Human brain and neural tissue vanished. "We are certain in the future others modified by the Amplitur to
encounter. Perhaps by then we will
have how permanently to inhibit the Amplitur
organ from regenerating discovered." To the ensuing silence he added a note of hope.
"As has pointed out been, this a prognostication only is." Double eyelids blinked. "Such
regrowth may not take place, or if it does neural reconnection may not recur,
nor may there be any harm to the individual. This but one of many possible physiologic scenarios is."
"You assign the worst case a high priority, though, or you wouldn't
have interrupted this conference to tell us about
it."
First-of-Surgery regarded the scaleless
warrior Human. An ineffable
sadness colored his laconic response. "Truly."
The other Human nodded slowly as he spoke. "What we really need to do is find the world where the
Amplitur are doing the actual
modifications on Human infants and embryos and blow the goddamned place
all the way back to the First Cause."
First-of-Surgery
shivered slightly at the Human's unbridled ferocity. If
not for the need to recruit species capable of combating the
advance of the Amplitur, he might not have been above
consideration of a little genetic engineering himself. Though
from the beginning he had concealed his feelings well,
the whole business had unnerved him more than he would
have cared to admit.
One thing his studies had led him to
ponder was if a "civilized Human"
might not be a contradiction in terms, a
biological impossibility. He was glad he would not be around to find out, for even the most optimistic
scenario had the war against the
Amplitur continuing far beyond the
end of his projected lifespan.
Even so, his sleep
was troubled.
As was traditional, victory celebrations
were kept to a minimum. However, Military Command decided that its triumphant but
exhausted soldiers deserved not merely a rest, but that greatest of all rewards for
those who serve in combat: a visit home.
Had Ranji been given the option he would
have chosen to stay on Eirrosad. His genuine hesitancy was, however, interpreted as
modesty, and together with his friends he was shipped back to peaceful Cossuut.
His subtle hints that he be allowed to remain behind were swamped in the flush of
congratulations. Realizing that excessive demurral on his part would
only eventually attract unwanted attention, he had no choice but to accept the
enforced vacation.
As a Unifer much attention was focused on
him. Whenever
possible he tried to have his subordinates answer the innumerable
questions that were put to the group, with the result that he became more than ever
an object of curiosity and interest. In seeking obscurity he found only fame,
or at
least fame as it was known within the homogenized ethical orbit
presided over by the Amplitur.
Though the cephalopodians had no need of such
intangibles
themselves, they recognized the importance of maintaining good morale among allied
races and did their best, when circumstances were appropriate, to encourage it. Public feting of
the victorious was useful. Modest adulation was not discouraged. As for the
Amplitur themselves, they ascribed glory to an abstract
rather than to individuals.
Saguio proudly
appointed himself guardian of his brother's solitude,
shielding him from the queries and attentions of the
curious. I wonder if he would be so zealous in my defense, Ranji mused in the privacy of his
apartment, if he knew how hard I fought recently to
avoid combat. But he was glad of the
privacy.
His self-imposed
isolation during the voyage back to Cossuut was
interpreted as introspection and suitably respected.
After a while even the most persistent left him in peace, allowing Saguio to relax his vigil.
Ranji used the
time to try and prepare himself for the inevitable
forthcoming confrontations. Despite his best efforts,
however, he was unprepared for the storm of emotions that tore through him when
he was greeted at the shuttle disembarkation
point by his joyful parents. He was able
to maintain control only by lavishing his attention on his little sister, Cynsa, of whose genetic makeup
he was relatively certain. As
certain as he could be of his own, he
reminded himself.
"Good to have
you home, firstborn." As a sign of paternal Ashregan
affection his father was rubbing Ranji between the shoulder
blades.
"Yes, son. We
worried, and missed."
Both his mother's
warmth and his father's radiant pride struck Ranji as so genuine that for a
moment he nearly forgot everything that had
happened to him in the previous months.
Once more solid reality dissolved into an unsettling speculative mist.
Once again his identity fled the realm of
verifiable knowledge for distant, uncertain biological shores.
He found he could
not look long in his parents' direction. Not while the great question remained
unresolved. Were they innocents or collaborators,
empathetic dupes or cold-blooded agents of the Amplitur?
How much of what they did and said was of their own volition
and how much at the prompting of Amplitur "suggestion"? Was their "love" for him and his siblings anything other
than the consequence of "careful calculation?
Would he ever know?
Modern technology
could pinpoint the location and dimensions of black
holes and quasars, antimatter accretions and Underspace ... but where was love? How did
he find it? By intuition, research,
simple triangulation, what?
Cynsa's hugs and
laughter provoked no such introspective agonies. At
the heart-wrenchingly familiar family compound he played
with her incessantly, luxuriating in her innocence and
ignorance. She didn't care who or what she was, only that her beloved elder
brother was home for a while.
But she was growing, developing the same
acute reflexes and lanky form as her
brothers. Ranji knew that her innocence
could not be preserved indefinitely, any more than had his own.
He'd been home more
than a month when the authorities asked him to speak at the commencement
exercises for the next group of graduating fighters. It was
impossible for him to refuse.
Now he looked out across a sea of young
Ashregan faces. Twice as many as in his original group bore the telltale marks
of Amplitur genetic manipulation. He wanted to cry out to them, to hold each
and every one close while explicating the
appalling details of alien duplicity. Their upturned gazes were focused on
him, eager and expectant. The Amplitur had stolen their birthright and crippled their capacity for independent
thought. To stand there on the podium and look down at them was almost more than he could bear.
As his silence
persisted murmurs arose from the other speakers and dignitaries seated behind
him. His trauma, those in the know explained
knowledgeably. It will pass.
He forced his lips
to move and sensed sounds emerging from his throat, but it was as if another
person was speaking. He, Ranji-aar, was completely detached.
The cool, robotic presentation garnered more approval
from the captive audience than it deserved. Any who found
it disappointing were too polite to voice their
opinions.
Only recently he
had been as young as those now raptly and unquestioningly
listening to him. He could pity, but not condemn. The
great lie of their condition was not of their choice.
He had returned to
seek truth and dispel lies. Now he saw that this was neither the time nor
place to try and depose something half so
elusive. They would surely lock him up or worse, seek the advice of an
Amplitur "specialist." In the
confusion that would invariably result, he would be quietly disappeared.
Though the
knowledge he carried threatened to choke him, somehow he
made it to the end of his speech, reciting the prepared text as mechanically as
any artificial diaphragm. The prophylactic distance between himself and his audience vanished when he was asked to answer a few questions.
Had he been blind
he still could have told the pure Ashregan in the
audience from the modified Humans by the nature and emphasis
of their queries. His perception had been altered by experience and
revelation. Never again would he mistake an
Ashregan for a Human or vice versa. He
had become irrevocably attuned to the differences.
He was careful to reply as an Ashregan,
muting the Humanity he had acquired on
Omaphil. The audience hall would be
a bad place in which to arouse suspicions. It was not without some
relief that he allowed himself to slip back
into the familiar mannerisms of his childhood, to be nothing more than a
young warrior, even a young hero, surrounded
by friends and relations.
Afterward it was impossible to forget
the many faces that came up to congratulate
or greet him personally, impossible not to see. beyond shining eyes and
obscenely swollen cheek ridges to the
bastardized DNA beyond. Buried
within those coils, at least, was the real truth.
Raised as Ashregan, they would be sent
to slay Humans. Returned to Humanity, they
would exert twice the effort to kill the Ashregan who had betrayed
them before they were born. That, too, was truth, one he
didn't much care for. Even at his young age he had
learned that it was not in the nature of truth to be
likable.
Only the fact that
confusion nearly outweighed his anger enabled him to
keep his emotions in check. While he was certain he could
no longer be what he had been, neither did he yet know if
he was truly capable of being what he was. Whether out in
public or at home with his family he was careful of
what he said and how he acted lest it occur to someone that he
might be acting "Human."
As it mounted, the fury he felt only
served to further confirm his Humanity.
New graduates not
only replaced his battlegroup's few losses but nearly
doubled it in strength. He and his fellow Unifers received
this statistic and more during a meeting with senior Ashregan officials. In vain
he searched the assembled for the revered
figure of his teacher Kouuad. That was an individual he would very much like to
have questioned. How much did he know? How ignorant had the venerable, fatherly Kouuad been of his
students' biological history?
Perhaps, Ranji thought, he was not
present precisely because he was privy to
such knowledge.
Soratii-eev nudged
him. They were being addressed by an officer of
considerable reputation and rank.
"You have
rested long enough. The Purpose needs again what only you can
give.
"Your sorties
on Eirrosad and Koba have been but preliminaries for what
is to come, tests in which you and your troops have
succeeded admirably. Having accomplished all that was hoped for you, it is time
for you to lead a historic assault against
the enemies of reason." Ranji and his
friends shuffled expectantly in their seats.
"What's our
target this time?" asked Cossinza-iiv from the corner.
The speaker yielded the podium to another
officer. "Eirrosad and Koba are disputed worlds. It is in such places that the
forces of the Purpose and those of the Weave have contested for supremacy for the
past hundred years." He paused for emphasis. "Thanks to your recent accomplishments the decision
has been made at the highest levels to carry the attack directly to the enemy
in a manner not attempted for some time."
Producing a wand, he used it to generate the
image of an
alien star system, complete to moons and asteroid belt. An occasional comet
sped through the three-dimensiona construction to vanish in odd comers of the
room. The attentive
listeners ignored such cosmic distractions.
Sharpening focus, the speaker drew their
attention to the fourth world out from the slightly pale sun. It exhibited the familiar single
large landmass haloed by clouds and ocean.
"This is Ulaluable." Since his
translator was not programmed to react to proper names the officer had to pronounce it slowly for
his audience. "Not a large world nor one particularly rich in natural resources,
though it has its share. It occupies an important position beyond what the Weave would refer to
as its frontline, if such archaisms had any meaning in space." As he
manipulated the wand controls illuminated portions of the projection
punctuated his speech.
"It possesses fewer than the usual
complement of islands, a
benign climate, many highlands, and modest mountain
ranges. There are highly productive farmlands. Since it was first settled Ulaluable has been a significant contributor to the enemy resistance. Naturally it
is well defended." Pinpoints of
light sprang to life on the planetary
surface.
Birachii squinted at the projection.
"Mighty extensive troop distribution for a contested world. Where are our forces concentrated?
In the opposite hemisphere?"
The officer caused the globe projection to
rotate a hundred and eighty degrees. The scattering of indicator lights on the other side of
the landmass was not significantly different from what they had already
observed.
"Ulaluable is not a contested
world." Only after the resultant buzz of startled conversation began to fade
did he
add, "It is in fact a highly developed, thoroughly civilized world, long
ago settled and largely colonized by Wais, though there is also a substantial
minority Hivistahm population."
"Which means there's no way we can
carry out a landing there." Cossinza gestured at the rotating globe. "The defenses of a
settled world would cut us to bits as soon as we touched down."
The officer turned to her. "Though Ulaluable
is highly developed,
its largely agricultural nature and intermittent mountainous topography offer
unpopulated expanses where a determined landing force might successfully establish itself before the
planetary defenses could muster a reaction. Certainly the population does not
expect an attack."
"With good reason," Soratii noted.
"Who makes up the defending garrison?"
"It is largely Massood, with the usual
Hivistahm technical support teams. There are some Humans present but according
to the best available intelligence their numbers are small." The speaker
regarded his audience earnestly.
"Much time has been devoted to the
gathering of requisite intelligence. There are many reasons besides its topography why
Ulaluable lends itself to unexpected attack. Most of its major power facilities lie
exposed in the foothills and mountains. Several important communications
centers have been constructed nearby. If these could" be overrun before the
defenders could bring reinforcements to bear, it would give an invading force not
only a tactical advantage but considerable leverage in any subsequent negotiations.
"One reason why something like this has
not previously been attempted is because the usual Ashregan-Crigolit-led strike force could
not advance from objective to objective quickly enough to make it viable. The enemy's
confidence springs from identical knowledge. Your special teams have demonstrated the
ability to attack with speed. With your
people in the vanguard our tacticians
believe a successful invasion of Ulaluable can be carried out. The local Wais population is of
course incapable of offering any resistance." He hesitated.
“I do not think I need speak of the effect
such a defeat would have on Weave morale."
The initial speaker regarded them solemnly.
' 'If more of your kind were
available we would consider attacking an even more
important enemy world. Ulaluable was cho sen specifically because of its perceived
vulnerabilities. We value you all greatly and have no intention of sacrificing you on behalf of
a gesture.
' 'Because of the unique nature of this
expedition participation is not compulsory. No opprobrium will attach to any who choose
demurral." Silence greeted his words. Wishing badly to say a great deal, Ranji
could only keep
still.
The elder officer gestured approvingly. "I believed Iand hoped that would
be your response."
His slightly junior colleague surveyed his
expectant audience. "You will have the best backup available. Experienced Ashregan,
Crigolit, and Mazvec troops drawn from ' other theaters of conflict will fully
support your strikes. We are depending on you to provide speed and decisiveness,
not overwhelming firepower.
' 'If it appears that despite all our
careful planning the gambit is doomed to failure, you will be brought out immediately,
irrespective of risk to evacuating personnel."
"Even if it means losing a ship,"
added the senior officer. "The High Command holds your troops in that
much regard."
"We don't think you will fail." Certainly, Ranji thought, both speakers sounded confident.
"If we did, this venture would
not have reached the planning stage, much less advanced this far beyond it."
Like his companions, the proposal left Ranji
somewhat dazed.
It was so unexpected because it was utterly unlike the strategy of
patient attrition the Amplitur had favored for a thousand years. They were adapting to
new circumstances with a speed that left him breathless. How the Weave would react to such tactics remained to be
seen.
He and his kind, he
knew, were to constitute the centerpiece of such
innovations.
The senior officer
broke the ensuing silence. "Not incidentally, you
are all being promoted. Every one of you, every member of
your respective groups. Such honor is not unprecedented,
but it is unusual. The High Command takes pride in you and your
accomplishments." He sought out a particular
individual.
"You,
Ranji-aar, are hereby raised to Field Unifer."
Cossinza gasped
softly. Soratii sat motionless. If he was upset at being
jumped in rank he did not show it. Ranji didn't think it would bother him. Since
the days of the trials they had become good friends, respectful of each other's abilities and opinions.
To be given
command was the last thing he wanted, yet to refuse the honor was unthinkable.
Doing so would expose him to relentless scrutiny. From now on
it would be impossible for him to hang back and hide on
the battlefield. Not only would he be unable to avoid
the killing, he would be forced to direct it.
At least, he told himself, as commanding
officer he would better be able to insure
Saguio's safety. Aware that everyone
was expecting some sort of response from him he said, "When are we to depart?"
"Preparations
require another five days," the officer told him. "That should give everyone ample time to prepare, and to spend more time with mates and offspring. Rest, delight, and immerse yourselves in the Purpose."
The meeting was at
an end.
"You will
take care of yourself."
His father stood
alongside him in the back of the family compound as together they contemplated
the sunset. Ranji wanted to scream questions and accusations.
Instead he stood silently, trying to sort the emotions
that gnawed at his insides.
"And you will look after your
brother."
Ranji heard himself replying. "Yes,
Father."
Grainfields stretched from the rear of the
residential square to a bilious orange horizon. This time of year they lay fallow, their
unrelenting flatness interrupted only by the stark silhouette of an isolated, twisted
kekuna tree.
As the dorsal arc of Cossuut's sun sank out of
sight, the' two turned to walk back to the house. "You know, Ranji, you've been acting rather strange since
you've been home."
"Have I?" Clods of recently turned
earth gave him something to focus on. Some he kicked to bits, others he spared. As he
would soon be expected to do with friends in battle.
"Your mother and I don't understand. Are
you sure you're
all right?"
His father's concern proved nothing one way
or the other,
Ranji knew. Once again he was made aware of the damning ignorance that jailed his
spirit. Mind-dupe or calculating agent? A glance at the old man proved
unenlight-ening as ever.
"I'm sorry if I strike you as
unnaturally introspective,
Father.
You should know that combat tends to dull the
senses."
"No; there's something else."
Halting, Ranji forced a narrow Ashregan
smile. "I'll take care of myself, and Saguio as well. Rest assured on that." There at
least was a promise he could make with assurance.
It wouldn't do to leave his father
questioning. The old man might seek answers from local officials or, worse,
from the Amplitur stationed on Cossuut. Embarrassing queries might find
their way back to him, even on distant Ulaluable. He knew that only continued
caution would preserve his secret.
Leave-taking gave him no difficulty until it
came time to
say good-bye to his sister. That guileless innocent cried as she hugged him close. He could feel the
growing strength in her, strength the Amplitur intended to put to dreadful
misuse, and somewhat to his surprise he found that he was crying, too. The
outpouring of emotion must have eased his
father's concerns, because the old man made his farewells quickly, propounding no more unanswerable questions.
Sensing that it was for the last time, Ranji looked back as the transport vehicle carried him and Saguio
away from the house, away from the
grainfields in which he'd played as
a youth, away from the residential complex and the only home he'd ever known.
Because in that final moment he had to make
a decision in order to keep
his sanity, he'd decided that his parents were innocent, as captive of Amplitur
machination as he and his brother. He reached that conclusion on the basis of
more than twenty years of love and affection, understanding and nurturance.
His mother and father had to be ignorant of the biological truth because
every Ashregan lived in fear of the
terrible, dreaded Human beings. Surely no amount of Amplitur suggestion
could have so thoroughly overcome that deep-seated terror for such an extended
period of time. Yes, surely they were dupes, tools of the Amplitur, as innocent
in their own way as his baby sister. They had to be because he wanted it to be
so.
How would they look at him if the truth were to be revealed?
The transport accelerated, plunging into the onrushing night.
The speech of the three Wais administrators
was so rapid, convoluted, and inflected that it was almost impossible for the translators the non-Wais wore to
render it comprehensible. Despite their agitated discursion, the trio of
ornithorps retained their composure. To have exhibited exasperation in the
presence of other species would have been,
well, unrefined.
"What reason can you have to call us here, away from our
daily work?'' The Wais who spoke sported a fringed neckpiece of breathtaking elegance which served not only as a testament to her importance but was ravishingly beautiful in its own right. The feathers which protruded from her flowing
attire were of exquisite color and expertly groomed,
as were those of her two male companions.
The instant his translator finished, the
S'van replied. "Evidence has recently
come to light which suggests that the
enemy is planning something extraordinary.''
"Of what
concern, pray tell, might Amplitur military intrigues be to
us?" Concerned that in her haste to reach the meeting
on time it might have slipped a finger-length too low, the administrator gently
fluffed her neckpiece.
The S'van withheld
the comments which automatically came to mind when
one found oneself dealing with the I Wais. "We have
word that they are planning to mount an attack on one of the primary Weave
worlds."
Though they found
the news as upsetting as would any civilized member of the Weave, none of the
Wais reacted visibly. To have done so in front of aliens
would have been considered unbearably gauche.
“That is difficult to believe,'' said
one of the male Wais finally.
"Though
controversy continues, the evidence seems irrefutable."
"Which unfortunate world is to be
the target of this outrage?''
"That we
haven't been able to determine . . . yet." The S'van wished for a
platform. He didn't like looking up at the Wais. Having to
tilt his head back raised his beard off his chest and exposed the sensitive
skin beneath. "Thanks to our informants we have been able to
reduce the list of candidates to three. Tuo'olengg, Kinar, and . . .
Ulalu-able."
Very little could
induce a Wais's neck feathers to spike and pupils to
widen, but the S'van's announcement managed that
accomplishment.
"How can this
be?" So upset was the remaining male ornithorp that he
nearly committed the unpardonable sin of misinflecting the interrogative. "Surely the
Amplitur know from experience that an attack on any developed world would be soon
surrounded and annihilated."
"You'd think so." The S'van readily
agreed. "That's why we've gone to such lengths to confirm the
information we've received. If all these enemy preparations are simply in support of a
feint, it's far and away the most elaborate one they've ever propagated. We can't take
that chance. As the current Administrating Triumvirate of Ulaluable do you want us to take that
chance?"
The polyphonic Wais reply was as unanimous
as it was harmonious.
"That's what we thought your reaction
would be." The S'van looked satisfied. "The Grand Council has determined to implement
exceptional security measures on all three worlds. If the Amplitur's purpose in
this was to force us to reallocate scarce resources, then they've already accomplished what they
set out to do. You'll be given everything this quadrant's Command can
spare."
"What would possess the Amplitur to
embark on an adventure with no chance of success?" the female member of the
triumvirate sang bemusedly.
"Obviously they think better of their
chances." The husky voice of the Massood officer who'd accompanied the S'van was a sharp
contrast to the mellifluous tones of the Wais. "Perhaps you have heard about
the new fighters they have been using? The ones who hurt us so badly on Eirrosad?"
"We have heard. While the Wais are
noncombatants, we are not indifferent to the progress of the great conflict."
A half-hidden figure behind the Massood
stepped forward. "If the Amplitur choose Ulaluable as their target, you'll have to be a
damn sight less indifferent.''
Though not nearly as tall as the Massood,
the Human officer
towered over the S'van and Wais. Stocky and powerfully built, he sported a heavy
mustache and long sideburns which curled toward his chin. Even as they went to
great lengths to
conceal their distaste for the primitive cosmetic affectation,
the Wais instinctively drew back from] the massive
primate.
"This would be a lot easier if we
knew which of the] three worlds they were
going to hit, but we don't, so the | same defensive resources have to be
allocated to each. Ulaluable gets no more
than Kinar or Tuo'olengg. I promise that we'll do our best for you, but
I'm afraid you're going to have to issue a
general alert. Besides the need to brief
you, the governors of Ulaluable, that was our purpose in calling this
meeting. I hope there won't be any panic."
The slightly
taller male replied condescendingly. "The Wais do not 'panic,' sir."
"No,"
muttered the Massood under his breath. "They just freeze at the smell of a
weapon."
The female glared.
"We will do our part. All necessary measures will be
taken . . . insofar as a wholly civilized people can respond
to such a threat, of course. As a chosen representative
of the populace I assure you that you will have our full cooperation. We may
not be able to 'kill,' but we can do much
else in our own defense."
The S'van hastened to try and lower his
allies' emotional temperature. "We
know the Wais do not fight. Remember, I'm S'van. We do not fight,
either." The, administrator seemed
mollified.
"The Council will appreciate any
assistance you can render to the defending
forces. Additional personnel are already
on their way. Massood and . . . Humans."
Feathered heads
dipped together, chittering softly. Again it was left to the senior female to
speak. "You must be aware that Human combat troops have never been stationed
on Ulaluable, or for that matter any of the Wais worlds. It is not part of the Covenant of Agreement."
Out of the corner
of an eye the S'van saw the muscular Human stiffen
slightly. However, he said nothing, exhibiting a
self-control not normally associated with his kind. He was a ranking officer, the S'van reminded himself, and intelligent enough to
know that in such circumstances it was better to let a S'van do the talking.
"All Human personnel will be assigned
to and billeted at Important industrial and communications facilities. Cities and
unnecessary contact with the general population will be avoided."
"Suits us fine," the Human could
not resist muttering.
The male Wais who spoke affected not to hear
the comment.
"We are of course grateful for the assistance of all our friends and
allies. It seems we are to have no choice in the matter anyway.''
"On the contrary," said the S'van.
"If you so desire, these additional defensive forces allocated to Ulaluable
can instead
be divided among the other threatened worlds."
"That will not be necessary," the
female hastily assured him. "You must understand that while you concern yourselves with
matters military, it is left to us to deal with the delicate social fabric of our
society."
"I do understand." The S'van
smiled behind his beard. Of all the Weave races, only the S'van utilized the smile
more
than Humans. "It is my hope that Ulaluable is not the target of the
Amplitur."
The three ornithorps whistled agreement in
unison, each musical exhalation pitched slightly differently from that of its neighbor.
"We are obliged for your concern," the female said, "and
realize that extraordinary circumstances call for extraordinary measures. We
gratefully accept the temporary stationing of additional Massood and Human soldiers in our
soil."
"Temporary," chorused her male
associates.
The Human officer continued to observe and
listen in silence. He'd served as liaison to the "civilized" Weave races too long to
allow their reactions to the presence of his kind to upset him. Save for the Massood
and occasionally
the S'van, the thanks Humans received for putting their lives on the
line in defense of other species was indifferent at best. He sighed resignedly. The
Wais could not help the way they were. At such times
the Human lot' could be a difficult one.
They would provide
ample material aid, but that was all. Once, he had
seen a Wais, fortified with medication, through a
tremendous effort of will actually lift and fire a small handgun before collapsing in a nauseated faint. It was an
experience not likely oft to be repeated, even if Ulaluable was attacked. The defense of their world was up to him and his kind . . . and the Massood, of
course. No getting around it. That was .the way the pulsar spun, he told himself.
Silently he wished
for the meeting to end. Someone had to serve as a
liaison to the Wais, and he had been compelled to accept
the role. That didn't mean he had to like it. Like the majority of his kind he
had been trained as a soldier. Direct action suited him, diplomacy made him itch. He longed for reassignment to a combat unit.
Even the sympathetic S'van was
starting to get on his nerves.
Idly he fingered his service belt. Like
his boots, the material of which it was
fashioned was incredibly light, tough, attractive, and of Wais design
and manufacture. That was what the Weave was
about, he mused. Each species
contributed according to its talents and abilities. Wais designed, Lepar
carried, Hivistahm engineered, S'van held together, O'o'yan maintained,
and so forth. Turlog thought, Humans and
Massood slew.
He comforted
himself in the knowledge that the specialty nature
seemed to have assigned his kind was at least easy to understand.
The grim expression Ranji wore whenever
he was compelled to leave his cabin discouraged even close friends from trying
to talk to him, and helped to preserve his solitude during the long Underspace
journey out from Cossuut. Everyone knew that as Field Unifer great responsibilities
devolved upon him. It was therefore only natural to assume that his attitude
was a reflection of the serious inner contemplation that preceded battle. He
was left alone.
His isolation suited Ranji just fine.
Had his companions known the real reason for his solemnity they would have been
shocked and dismayed. Not only was he not deeply engrossed in preparing
battlefield strategy; he was wholly absorbed in trying to find a means of
avoiding combat altogether.
There were too many times when he
wondered why he was bothering to try. He was one man, one individual caught up
in a millennia-old galactic conflagration that involved billions of intelligent
beings. Events of prodigious import were in motion, and like litter on a wave
he found himself helplessly swept up and washed along, to be pounded against
whatever shore fate had in store for him. Not for the first time he found
himself thinking that perhaps the best thing he could do was simply try to preserve
his own life and live it out as comfortably and unobtrusively as possible.
Only, he was repeatedly hammered by uneasy
dreams, and visions of his sister slicing
Human throats at the behest of
shadowy, tentacular forms. Thoughts were not as easily avoided as friends.
What could he do?
They were about to attack a developed Weave world
largely populated by the ultracivilized, innocuous race
known as the Wais. As the mere appearance of enemy
troops was likely to paralyze the population, they would have to be defended by
Massood and Humans. How could he, as Field
Unifer, avoid participating in battle and giving orders if not directly
having a hand in the deaths of many of his
own kind? Desperately seeking a
means of avoidance, he found only bleak and inner despair.
Time was running
out. The invasion force was less than five days from the target. Preparations
for touchdown had already begun. He might yet be spared
contemplated agonies, he knew, for their landing shuttle might well be blown out
of Ulaluable's sky by orbiting or land-based defenses, thus sparing him the
need to make life-threatening decisions. His attitude toward such a quick and exonerating death had grown dangerously
ambivalent.
Perhaps worst of all, the truth gnawed
at him like an insect struggling to escape
its cocoon. He had returned to his
people to give them knowledge, only to find himself unable to speak. The
futility of his circumstances tormented him
far worse than any prospect of dying.
His colleagues saw the inner struggle
mirrored in his expression and
misinterpreted its origin to his benefit.
He considered
feigning mental collapse, seeking surcease in an
inveigled disgrace. But that would not preserve his brother, nor prevent his
sister from being trained to follow after.
There was simply no way to extend his solitude to those he loved. He would have to find another way.
As attack
preparations around him intensified, he redirected himself to the problem with
ferocious application.
It wasn't until
the day before the fleet was to phase out of Underspace that
he remembered the kindly Lepar, Itepu. Remembered his
compassion and understanding. His had been a simpler
view of the cosmos, basic and uncomplicated. In such simplifications were
certain virtues. He pondered those
memories, trying to recall everything he and the Lepar had discussed during his half-forgotten journey from
Eirrosad to Omaphil.
When the word came
for all soldiers to don field armor and equipment, he was much eased in
mind. He knew now what he was going to have
to do. If it ended in death, then at
least he would be spared the future tribulation of thinking.
Those under his
immediate command relaxed when they saw their Unifer
stride purposefully into the landing shuttle. Clearly the
depth and extent of his hermetic contemplation during the
voyage out from Cossuut had amply prepared him for
the forthcoming conflict. It boosted their morale
accordingly.
"Look at
him." The recent graduate nudged his companion as they watched Ranji
board the command sled. "Utterly self-possessed. He's
ready."
"I hear he's always like
that." The young woman tracked the
Unifer's progress admiringly. "You heard the story of how he handled
himself on Eirrosad?"
The man was
checking the charge level on his stinger. "Never
panicked, kept his head when everybody else was losing
theirs. I'm glad we're in his group."
"By the
Purpose," said a much shorter Ashregan from nearby, "I'm just glad he
is on our shuttle!"
They examined each
other's armor locks and visors, exchanged and
rechecked weapons. Once the shuttle touched down on the Ulaluablian surface
they would be thrust outside and into a combat situation,
where such checks would have to be performed, if at all, under arduous and
possibly lethal conditions. Better to make certain
seals were tight and weapons powered up now.
It must have been
something to see: a dozen immense starships suddenly
and simultaneously materializing from Underspace just
above the cloud layer of Ulaluable's blue-green globe. There was nothing present
to witness the sight, however, except the
alert sensors of the automatic! orbiting
planetary-defense system, which responded anon.
As ships dropped
shuttles in the fashion of fecund invertebrates,
on-board weaponry had some success in dealing with the
cluster of orbiting hellaciousness. One ship | was
destroyed by a self-guiding orbital mine, both erupting in a flaming plume of metal, gas, and organic components. Seared vacuum momentarily blinded every instrument in the vicinity. Five other vessels
were badly damaged by high-power,
mirror-aligned particle beams.
The rest unloaded
their deadly cargo with admirable speed and dispatch. Metaloceramic
crescents dove into the clouds and made their way to the waiting
surface, where their contents spread out and sought cover
with slick alacrity.
Not every shuttle
made it to ground. Some were obliterated by surface-based weapons. Others
ran afoul of scrambling high-speed
aircraft. But by the time the surviving starships retired to the
protective astrophysical anonymity of Underspace, the greater portion of the battlegroup had successfully disembarked and
dispersed. Now if Ulaluable's
defenders chose to use heavy weapons on
the invaders they would be putting at risk sensitive portions of the very world they were supposed to be
protecting.
Ordinarily
destruction or damage to half an attacking force's ships would
be sufficient to bring an invasion to a halt, but not this time. There was too
much at stake for the Amplitur to recall
their ground forces, which after all had
made it down largely intact. The components of the engagement had shifted surfaceward. Time to see
what the Ashregan-led battlegroup
could do.
Ranji's shuttle
landed hard in a grassy glade surrounded by extremely thin, tall trees, rattling
both soldiers and equipment. The attenuated
woods provided some cover from patrolling aircraft, as did the
soot-colored clouds from which a light rain
was falling. As troops rushed to disembark, the shuttle's crew stayed at
the equipment which projected half a dozen
ghost shuttles overhead, their purpose
being to bemuse and distract enemy sensors.
Ranji commanded
slightly less than a thousand regular and modified
Ashregan soldiers riding skids and floaters. They
deployed themselves with gratifying speed, erecting camouflage and establishing a perimeter while engineers excavated a hole
deep enough to conceal the shuttle. Maintained
and defended by its own crew, it would serve as a field base, a point of
reference, and, if need be, a means of final
retreat.
Their target was the control station of
the principal power-distribution grid for
the entire northern third of the planetary
landmass. Like any other unavoidably unsightly industrial complex on a Wais world, it had been sited as far as practicable from the nearest population
center.
An intricate
network of dams in the nearby mountains stored water for
irrigation and hydropower. It would have been a simple matter to target them for
destruction by land-based missiles, but
that would require their replacement
by the eventual victors. A much more sensible course of action involved the
incapacitation or better yet, the capture
of the complex that stored and distributed the power thus generated.
If Ranji's group
could capture the complex they would control the supply
of energy for half the population of Ulaluable. Nor could the
defenders blast them out without destroying the
critical components of their own power grid. A successful
assault on the center would weaken local communications,
industry, and transportation significantly.
The Wais were
little better prepared psychologically to deal with an attack than if they had not
been warned at all. True to the claims of
their chosen administrators, they did
not panic: they merely shut themselves away in their homes and waited for defenders or assailants to
triumph. In the sparsely populated regions where the invaders landed, it was more difficult to pretend nothing
so uncivilized was taking place.
Some citizens fled, others barricaded themselves in their places of work,
and a small portion went catatonic.
Of all the Weave races, the Wais were
perhaps the least well equipped to deal with the awkward reality of contentious violence. The
very thought of their exquisitely coiffed I garden world being subjected to onerous
combat was enough to induce severe trauma in the more sensitive of them. It was
left to Ulaluable's Hivistahm inhabitants to maintain the abandoned planetary
infrastructure and assist the defenders in the movement of troops and supplies.
The second group of invaders made swift
progress toward the capital city's communications center until they came up against a
small but well-entrenched cluster of determined Massood. As the defenders were in
possession of advanced surface-to-air weaponry, the attackers' skids I and floaters were
unable to detour to their target.
Thus bogged down, the invaders were forced to
take up secure
positions of their own, which gave the besieged Massood time to call in reinforcements
from the city. This included a flying squad of Humans, who threw themselves against the Ashregan
with utter disregard for their own safety, making life miserable for the
Unifers in charge of the attack by reducing their careful timetables to chaos.
In spite of the fact that the majority of
actual combat was restricted to obscure or outlying areas, there were casualties
among the civilian population . . . from heart failure, shock, and
cerebral hemorrhage. Wais physicians (those who were not themselves paralyzed by
circumstance)
were kept busy tending to their own kind.
Soratii's team successfully wrested control
of Ulaluable's
northernmost shuttleport from its defenders. If they could hold the
place, it would allow for faster and safer resupply from orbit. As their first important
conquest, the achievement cheered every member of the invading forces.
Ranji's group received the news as they were
skimming in
attack formation toward their designated target, their skids and floaters
tearing along just above the ground at maximum combat speed. Since their attention
was concentrated on sensors and weapons systems,
their cheers were silent ones.
Once more those
close to him took his silence and otiose expression for quiet determination
and resolve. It would have shaken their
confidence not only in their Unifer
but in themselves had they been able to see the pain and uncertainty that raged within him.
Tormented by
unceasing doubt and confusion, Ranji left necessary decisions
to subordinates like Weenn and Tour-mast. In the
absence of direction from above the group's flexible command structure allowed them
to skillfully guide the battlegroup through
rugged mountains toward its target.
Ranji's continued silence as they neared the high, narrow valley which had been selected as a staging
area for the actual attack began to
concern them, but they said nothing.
By now their Unifer was famed for his moodiness.
Underground lines
fed power from dozens of different sources to the main distribution center,
which lay on a fertile plain between the nearest conurbation and the mountains. It was decided to attack late at
night. Despite a thousand years of
military development, ordinary darkness still offered soldiers a certain
amount of cover which strategists and planners were pleased to take advantage
of at every opportunity. The absence
of notable geological features in the vicinity of the target rendered a
stealthy approach impossible anyway.
Ranji found himself hoping that the
majority of the complex's defenders were
Massood. From what he knew of the
psychological makeup of the Wais, actual operations were probably being run by local Hivistahm.
Any formal
defenses were probably of recent installation, since, like any
other civilized Weave world, Ulalu-able would have
been ill prepared for a serious assault. In that respect
resistance might be less well organized than it had been
on Koba or Eirrosad. The downside was that they had to
continue to advance, since they as yet controlled little
territory and therefore had precious few places to retreat to.
He didn't doubt that the complex's defenders
were prepared
to extend greetings to any uninvited visitors. Since sheer cliffs and
steep gorges offered some protection even from modern weapons, they would anticipate
an assault from that vicinity rather than the open plains of the south, though they would
doubtless be alert to an attack from any direction. Local geology allowed little
leeway for subtle strategies.
The outcome would be determined by whose
fighters were the more skilled, the more determined, and by what sort of weaponry the
defenders had managed to put in place.
Whoever they were, boldness was not their
hallmark. When
Soratii's squads first sortied from the foothills they met intense fire and
promptly withdrew. Had Ranji been I in charge of the complex's defense he would
have followed | up with immediate pursuit and counterattack, if only to test his
attackers' strength and resolve. Those inside the distribution grid's
perimeter did no such thing. In classical fashion they chose to sit behind their
screens and sensors and weapons and wait for the next hostile move.
Probably not many Humans, then, he decided,
feeling a
little better about the situation. He smiled relievedly, suddenly realized
what he was doing, and glanced around the interior of the command skid to see if
anyone had noticed the unnatural, un-Ashregan expression. No one had. Everyone was
concentrating on work or conversation. In the future he would have to be more
careful. Assuming he had one. And if he did, what would it be as?
If naught else the long journey outward from
Cossuut had
given him ample time to think. He had arrived on Ulaluable with a vague notion of what
he wanted to do. All that was lacking now was a means for carrying it out without
getting himself or any of his friends killed while integrating his
intentions into the little matter of the battle he was expected to direct. Surely a
simple enough task.
The practical knowledge he'd acquired on
Kobe, Eir-rosad, and even
Omaphil enabled him to probe the enemy's
defenses with few casualties. Though hastily installed, they were substantial and deadly. Soratii's people encountered
and reported the presence of photic charges,
heat- and shape-seeking missiles, and intelligent explosives, in addition to an aurora dome which
would instantly short out the
components of any approaching vehicle, not to mention microwaving its
inhabitants. The complex was going to be
difficult to approach, much less capture.
In the attackers' favor was the fact
that on a civilized world such
installations were not constructed with an eye toward defense. Most of the
distribution complex was located aboveground, buildings and facilities
arranged in an aesthetically
tasteful but exposed star pattern with typically lush Wais gardens burgeoning between. The defenders would also be hampered by the need to keep
the grid functioning while
simultaneously fighting off any assailants.
Ranji knew that in
order to have any impact he would have to move fast. As Ulaluable's
defensive command identified the invaders'
targets, they would proceed to rush reinforcements
to those areas. He had no intention of being stuck in the mountains for a long siege. Whatever he finally decided to do would be executed with
speed.
Exhilarating, this
independence of mind, he mused. Exhilarating, and addictive.
Occasional missile
exchanges produced a lot of noise and flame but no
serious damage to either side, as antimissile weaponry
obliterated projectiles in midnight. Beam projectors were
held in reserve, since the use of such advanced devices simultaneously exposed
their positions to enemy sensors and return fire.
The extended,
cautious firefight that occupied the daylight hours
witnessed much sound and fury but nothing in the way of
advance or retreat. The Massood and Hivistahm defenders soon
realized that their attackers wished to capture and not destroy the
distribution complex, and were able to conduct their defense
accordingly.
The slightly
sloping plain that halted at the base of the mountains
was sliced by several mostly dry gullies, watercourses designed by nature to drain the
foothills in the rainy season. An intent Ranji had begun studying them through magnifiers
from the moment of his group's arrival. Now he left his position near the
front of the command skid
and moved to stand next to his adjutant, Birachii.
"I'll need a floater." He poked at
the luminescent, hovering representation of what in ancient times would have
been called
the battlefield, his finger tracing one particular topographical feature
until it came to rest among several pinpoints of blue light. "It looks like
this one squad's made some real progress. I'm going to check out their
status."
"Your pardon, Ranji?" Birachii eyed
him uncertainly.
"I said, I'm going out. To have a look
around."
The sub-Unifer hesitated. "I ask
excusal for making exception, Ranji, but you're the group commander. If you'll just tell me
what you want, there are many on board or outside who are much more expendable than
yourself and who'd be glad to go in your stead."
"Thanks, Birach, but I have to do this
myself. See, I'm not just going out to survey the terrain. I have it in mind to reconnoiter an
idea." He turned. "Jhindah-ier will be in charge until I get back."
Birachii didn't try to hide his surprise. Though a perfectly competent
officer, Jhindah-ier was a member of the pure Ashregan contingent and not one of the modified.
"It's bad procedure." Ranji found
his friend's concern touching. "And not in keeping with the teachings of
the Purpose."
"Birach, ever since we were children
we've been noted and promoted for doing the unexpected. I'm just taking another step along
the same old trail. Don't worry. I just want to confer with the squad leader. I have
every intention of returning to supervise the rest of the attack. Now stop mooning at me
like a lovesick youngster and requisition that floater."
Intelligent shells dueled in the airspace
between the mountains and
the distribution complex, darting and feinting, occasionally annihilating each
other in spectacular bursts of high
explosive. Others released enervating gases, which were as quickly
rendered harmless by receptor-seeking neutralizing
bonders. Rapid-mutating biological agents had not as yet been utilized,
since they had an awkward habit of infecting those who employed them as readily
as they did those they were intended to incapacitate.
Set afire by explosives, much of the flora proximate to the combat zone blazed hellishly around Ranji as
his floater shot down the canyon he'd chosen. The coniferous forest
which coated the rugged mountain slopes had been turned into a crackling,
snapping inferno. He ignored the conflagration.
The lightweight field armor he wore kept him cool and comfortable while
supplying him with fresh, filtered air.
Just ahead a giant tree exploded from the heat, showering him
with flaming splinters. The floater rocked slightly but stayed on course as he
continued to descend, hugging the bottom of the canyon tight enough for the
air-repulsion vehicle to send droplets flying from the debris-laden rivulet
that coursed muddily below.
Then he was out of the foothills, screaming through the
steep-sided gully. Smoke from burning plains grass and scrub formed dense
red-brown clouds which settled in the gully, choking off
forward vision and forcing him to rely on instruments.
Informed of his
intentions, the scouting squad was waiting for him,
hunkered down on both sides of the narrow, soot-filled
stream. As he neared the shapes that materialized out of
the gloom, he carefully brought the floater to a halt. Gravel crunched beneath
the craft's landing struts as it settled to the ground.
Something
scrabbled through the muck under his boots. Looking down, he saw
a dark green multilegged shape desperately scrambling for the
perceived safety of shallow water. Some kind of local reptile or amphibian. For
a single pure instant unsullied by war or confusion or self-damnation
the universe stopped. In it nothing moved, nothing existed save for him and the
single poor mud-dwelling creature beneath
his feet whose misfortune it was to
have found itself caught up in the maelstrom of a higher confrontation. He thought of Itepu.
With the toe of
his boot he gently boosted it over the last obstacle in its path and watched
until it had found obscurity beneath the
water's soot-laden surface.
His instruments
indicated three troop skids and half a dozen escorting
floaters strung out in line down the winding canyon. That
was the best the gully would permit. If it narrowed any
further, they would have to begin advancing vehicles in
single file. The Ashregan squad leader had properly concerned
herself more with avoiding enemy detection than
concentrating firepower.
She was understandably
surprised that battlegroup commander Ranji-aar, the Field Unifer, would expose his valuable person to such conditions.
"Greetings,
honored Unifer." She was short and petite even for an unmodified Ashregan,
but there was strength in her greeting and in what he could
see of her face through the protective visor. ''Do you wish
to take personal command of the squad?"
"Not at this
time, officer." He peered impatiently past her.
Regular troops were staring in his direction, unable to restrain their curiosity. Among the modified who were present he recognized the Sub-Unifers Tourmast and Weenn from the Eirrosad campaign. He'd be able to work with them.
"You have under your command a young sub-officer
named Saguio-aar?"
The thick smoke
rendered formalities extraneous. She responded with a
thin Ashregan smile. "Your brother's on the second transport skid, sir.
If you would like him brought forward, I
can ..."
"No. Just
making sure of my information. What I would like is for you to
resume your advance, officer."
She eyed him
evenly. "We're very exposed here, sir. The situation
could become . . . active."
He met her stare
without blinking. "As you may have heard, Unifer, I'm
not exactly a desk soldier. I expect things to get
active. As a matter of fact, I'm kind of counting on it.
Someone has to strike first."
"Yes,
sir."
"I'll let you know if I have any
suggestions. In the meantime this is still
your squad. I await your actions."
She turned and
snapped orders to a subordinate, who cocked his head
once to the side in the Ashregan gesture of acknowledgment
and began relaying directions via the communicator hung
around his neck.
An instant later
troops were scrambling to activate floaters as the three
skids rose into the smoke-filled air. Ranji turned his own vehicle
over to another soldier, opting instead to join the
squad commander on board her craft.
The group resumed
its cautious advance down the winding channel,
sensors wide open and feeling for anything that might smack of
enemy defenses. Instruments showed small rapids ahead,
and air-repulsion units thrummed a little harder as
one vehicle after another surmounted the cataract, bouncing
slightly at the bottom.
There was clearer
air ahead, and a revelation which Ranji had suspected
from the careful study of available maps but which
could only be confirmed by on-site observation. The gully did indeed negotiate
a course all the way from the mountains to the foothills
through the distribution complex itself.
"Camouflage
up!" snapped the Squad Unifer. Combined with the drifting haze from the
many fires, the diffusion units would help
to conceal their presence.
They were close
enough to see Weave attack sleds rising from within the
enemy compound and accelerating northward. Much nearer
still, tall, slim pylons quivered with energy, their
presence marking the boundary of the aurora dome. They pulsed like firebrands on the
skid's sensor screens.
Unaffected by such artificial
constraints, the gully marched on, wending
its way into the heart of the distribution
complex. In the rainy season it probably ran full, Ranji decided, an impressive torrent filling the
cut currently occupied only by a
dirty trickle.
The complex had been designed to
facilitate specific functions, he knew, of which defense against an extra-planetary assault was not one. Its hastily
installed aurora dome would have
been set up to stop an attack by skids and
floaters. Air-repulsion vehicles. That traveled above-ground.
The technology of modern warfare had
become so complicated that sometimes the simplest things were overlooked in the rush to defend against the
highly advanced.
If they went in single file on minimum
power, it was just possible they might be
able to avoid the center's defenses.
There would be some downward leakage from the dome, but unless he was
completely mistaken about its style of construction their field armor should be
able to slough off its effects.
That was
essentially what the squad commander proposed. Having long
since worked out the details and come to the identical
conclusion, Ranji let her ramble on until the time came to
bestow his blessings on the plan, which he did without
hesitation. After all, their initial aim was the same: to
slip safely inside the enemy's defensive perimeter. It was only afterward that their objectives would diverge.
Her subordinates expressed quiet enthusiasm for the plan. Visions
of triumph and rapid promotion filled the minds of those gathered in the
command skid.
"If we can do this," one of them murmured, "we can
change the whole thrust of battle."
Truer than you can know, Ranji thought approvingly.
Of course, the stratagem which had gradually been gathering strength inside him ever since they'd
left Under-space might be doomed to failure. His attempt to implement his intentions might well result in the death
of Saguio and all their friends in addition to himself. He wouldn't live
long enough to shoulder the responsibility of failure.
But he'd waited and stalled and delayed long enough. It was time
to act. Consequences would remain forever unforeseen unless he forced the
issue. With a little luck he might be the only one to die. He could hardly dare
countenance the possibility that he might succeed.
They were working out the line of approach when he vouchsafed an
objection. "I hate to point this out—" The Sub-Unifers and their commander looked up at him. "—but there're
too many of us." He stirred the hovering projection with a finger.
"No way will we be able to slip three transport skids and half a dozen
floaters inside unobserved. ''
The squad leader glanced at her second-in-command, then back at
Ranji. "What do you suggest?"
"The success of this little sortie rides on surprise, not
numbers. I think we should go in with the most compact, toughest unit we can
condense out of your squad. Nothing against the other troops, but to me that
means every soldier who hails from Cossuut. They've had the same training,
they know what each other is likely to do in a given situation. We'll have less
firepower but better control over it.
"Furthermore, those of us who hail from Cossuut have Human
stature if not facial features. If we're spotted inside, the defenders may hesitate before challenging us, a delay of
judgment which could prove crucial to our success. Our moving at night can
only contribute to their confusion."
"Those who don't participate in the
initial attack can be held back as reinforcements or in the event cover is
needed for any eventual retreat." She waited for him to finish.
"I want you
to take every non-Cossuutian soldier with you on two of the
skids and four of the floaters, assume a position halfway
back up the gully, and wait.''
"Yes,
sir," she said uncertainly. "Wait for what, sir?"
Ranji did not
hesitate. "Developments."
The squad commander was tapping her nose
with a forefinger. "What you say about
surprise versus firepower makes sense, sir, but there are no more than
twenty or thirty soldiers from Cossuut in my
unit. I'm afraid that if you go in with so few you'll achieve surprise
but little else." Assertive murmurs
rose from her non-Cossuutian subordinates.
By their silence Ranji saw that Tourmast and Weenn sided with him.
He hadn't
convinced the others, though. If the argument continued
and the squad commander remained obstinate, sooner or later someone would think
to pass the proposal on to field headquarters. He knew what
kind of response that would produce. It would mean the end of
everything he'd planned. Nor could he hope to wait for
another chance that might not come. He had to
convince her.
Staring straight
into the female Ashregan's eyes, he tried to will her to his way of thinking.
"I understand your concerns but if we don't try this, we'll have wasted a unique opportunity. Either we do it my way or we
don't do it at all." He leaned
as close as courtesy would allow, trying
to utilize his overbearing height. "Surely you see that it has to be done my way?"
She started to
reply, caught herself, and blinked. "Yes, of course
you are right. It has to be that way. I'm sorry. I just did not see
it at first.'' Her tone was perfectly level as she addressed her bewildered
subordinates. "The Field Unifer is right. His is the best way.'' As Ranji
straightened she turned back to him.
"We will position ourselves as you
suggest and wait for further orders."
"Good." Though pleased, Ranji
was a bit startled at the speed with which she acquiesced. "With fewer
troops we can get in and back out that much faster.''
"Yes, sir," she murmured
agreeably. "Whatever you say,
sir."
Thick smoke and the onset of a dismal
evening combined to conceal the bustle of activity in the gully as soldiers
responded to the new orders, changing craft according to whispered directions.
When all was done, the two floaters and single transport skid in the forefront
of the column held only special troops from Cossuut.
"You're sure you know what to
do?" Ranji and the Ashregan squad commander stood up to their ankles in
gully mud, enveloped in near total darkness. All suit and vehicle lights had
been, turned off lest someone inside the Weave compound spot them moving about.
"Yes, honored Unifer. I am to
assume a defensive position and wait for developments."
"Don't forget it." If she
thought his emphasis redundant, she chose not to point it out.
With Tourmast and Weenn at his side he
watched as the two heavily laden skids and their escorting floaters made their
way back up the canyon. They were soon swallowed by the smoke-filled night.
' 'You sure won her over fast,''
Tourmast commented.
Ranji gazed in the wake of the last
floater. "Not really. My way is the best way.''
"Is it?"
He frowned and
turned to his friend. "You don't believe in my
plan?"
Tourmast essayed
the kind of thin Ashregan grin he'd grown up with. "I have my
doubts." He glanced at Weenn. "But
we believe in you, Ranji. Because of what you accomplished back home. Because of Koba, and Eir-rosad."
Ranji was more shaken than he cared to
admit. He'd have to proceed carefully. If he
lost the confidence of such as these, it would be they and not the
Ashregan squad leader who would bring his
unjustifiable tactics to the notice of higher command.
Of course, if it got to that point, it
would mean that everything he'd planned and
hoped for had failed anyway, and what
happened to him would no longer matter. And he knew that if he tried to intimidate Tourmast the way he had the Ashregan, that tough Cossuutian noncom
would simply laugh at him. From here on everything had to go smoothly, he knew. There would be no time for
involved explanations and no second chances.
Tourmast was right.
The squad commander had given in with surprising ease. It was
something to think about . . . later.
Saguio ventured an
encouraging sign as Ranji and the two noncoms
climbed aboard the remaining skid. Ranji found himself
wondering what his brother would look like without his
genetically engineered cranial ridges and unnaturally
expansive eye sockets, with protruding nose and ears and
shortened fingers. If everything went according to plan, he might soon have the
chance to find out. He kept his expression
carefully neutral.
"We will wait until midnight local
time," he told his subordinates.
When there was no more time left he
gathered his friends and fellow soldiers
close around him. Communicators
carried his words to those mounted on the pair of flanking floaters outside.
"You should
all have been briefed by now. Since they have a lower
profile the two floaters will try the gap first, keeping as
close to the ground as possible. If they make it through undetected and without
damage or injury to those aboard, the rest
of us will follow on the skid.
"If the
radiation from the aurora dome doesn't fry us through
our armor or incapacitate our vehicles, the plan is to keep moving down the gully until it passes
close to a structure. At that point
those on the floaters will abandon their
vehicles and attempt to force an entrance. As we will by then be inside the
defensive perimeter the likelihood is strong
that individual buildings will not be guarded.
"If entry is
successful the rest of us will follow in twos and threes.
The one thing we don't want is to bunch up in a large
group which could easily attract attention."
A soldier in back
gestured for attention. "Your pardon, Unifer, but
leaving our vehicles behind means going in without heavy
weapons.
"That's
right, but remember: if at all possible, we want to capture
this facility, not destroy it. We'll be a lot less conspicuous without them and once we're inside it would only inhibit our maneuverability anyway. If things get too tight, we can always return to the gully and bring them on line." He let his gaze rove over his expectant audience.
"I want every
one of you to take the attitude .that we're out to avoid a
fight." Bemused muttering rose from the group.
"No shooting, no killing unless in self-defense. If we can just keep our calm we may be able to stroll into sensitive areas and quietly take over.''
"That's not
how we did it on Eirrosad." This time the objection
came from the center of the group. Ranji didn't waste time
trying to identify the speaker.
"This isn't Eirrosad," he
reminded them quietly. "It's a
civilized world, with much worth preserving. Our goals should include the concept of minimal destruction.
Any idiot can fire at anything that
moves. It takes a true soldier to
know when to pick his shots."
"It's
unnatural," said someone else.
The irony of his
reply was not lost on Ranji. ' 'You know, you're starting to
sound exactly like a bunch of Humans."
No one had a
rejoinder for that, the ultimate insult.
'What happens if we do manage to make it
inside?"
Weenn said into
the ensuing silence. "There'll be illumination.
Under lights we look a lot less Human."
"So does our
armor," Ranji admitted. "We won't fool anyone who
gets close into thinking we're Human, but our shapes are Human enough that at a
distance or on first glance they may very
well hesitate, and he who hesitates is lost."
Tourmast's gaze
narrowed. "That's a Human expression, Ranj."
"Consider the
applicability and not the source." Ranji stared at
his subordinate and friend, focusing on the facial ridges that no longer looked natural. From experience he knew that they could be removed, but first he had to excise doubt and
ignorance, and keep those around him alive long
enough to perform the necessary preparatory intellectual and emotional surgery. His revelations
would be of little use to the dead.
"This is
crazy," Weenn was muttering. "Precisely the sort of thing one would expect from you, Ranji-aar. It also just might work."
"If you pull
this off," Tourmast was saying, "you'll be the biggest hero since Sivwon-ouw of Hantarie."
"I'm not interested in herodom. I'm
just trying to accomplish the maximum gain with the minimum risk to
life." Ranji turned and considered the smoky view forward. "If our latest information is correct,
the installation is currently being
operated principally by Hivistahm, with Massood and S'van assistance and
Massood defenders. There will also be the usual scattering of other species. Doubtless some Human soldiers will be present.''
"It doesn't
matter if they're all Humans in there," said someone behind him.
"We'll handle them, Unifer!"
How much more than
your safety I am now charged with none of you can
imagine. He checked his chronometer.
"Very well then. It's not time yet.
Ready yourselves, and those of you on guns
and sensors keep alert. All the enemy
has to do to ruin our plans radically is overfly this gully and take one look down."
Between the smoke, fumes, and moonless
night, the darkness when they finally began
to move was Stygian. Fitfull bursts
of light flared occasionally overhead as intelligent shells and missiles expunged one another with joyful
determination. Energy beams probed vaporous reaches,
singeing atmosphere and soil, seeking enemies. Ranji was a gratified witness to
the ballet of destruction: it would
make the work of the defenders' detection systems more difficult.
Oblivious to the petty discord of
contumacious sentients, a storm blew in from the east. Wind and driving rain stirred the swirling clouds of smoke, putting
out fires and driving exposed soldiers on both sides to shelter. Thunder and lightning would serve to further
confuse sensitive detectors on both
sides. Ranji knew they had to move quickly
now. If the gully down which they were traveling filled with runoff from the foothills, his entire plan of action would have to be abandoned. Neither skid nor
floaters were designed to operate underwater, much less their occupants.
Everyone held their
breath as the first floater eased beneath the lightly
glowing wall of the aurora dome. A generating pylon just
to the left of the gully gleamed on the pilot's screen, its
lethal outline clear and sharp despite the torrential
downpour.
Moments later the second floater
followed, powered down to the point where
its landing skids dragged in gully-bottom mud. Once on the other side of the
charged aerogel dome its pilot pivoted the craft to signify that they
had made the transition safely.
The much bulkier,
less maneuverable transport skid rose and moved slowly
forward, its air-repulsion units functioning at the minimum level necessary
to lift it off the surface. Ranji found his attention flicking between the bank of sensors that would scream for attention if
the aurora dome began to affect the
craft's instrumentation and a
rearward-facing detector. At any moment he feared that a wall of water might come rushing down the
gully, forcing them upward into dangerous prominence.
But the water
level remained unchanged beneath the advancing skid, and
the sensors slept on.
Once safely inside
the defensive perimeter the three craft regrouped lest
even their weak emissions be picked up by the complex's
defenders. Tight-beam communicators were not employed.
Instead, Weenn passed instructions to the floater pilots by
climbing out onto the dripping nose of the transport skid and
yelling at them through the rain. Ranji smiled to himself. So much for advanced
technology. Its unavoidable drawback was that no matter how
clever in design, as soon as you employed it to
disturb or otherwise make use of the usable electromagnetic
spectrum, some other equally sophisticated device somewhere
else could sense its operation. Not so two people
chatting back and forth.
Still advancing on
minimum power, the three vehicles drove deep into the
heart of the energy-distribution complex, following the
winding path of the gully. Once everyone tensed as a large freight skid
thrummed past just ahead of them, gravid with cargo. As it was
not a military vehicle it possessed no sensing equipment of its own, and the crew was intent only on their assigned destination, not the
familiar, unremarkable terrain they were crossing. No one looked outside and
down, and so the huddled intruders were not seen.
Where the gully
made a sharp bend to the west it widened slightly, leaving a steep bank on
one side and a shallow muddy beach on the other. There they disembarked from their cumbersome vehicles, Tourmast
in particular bemoaning the need to leave behind the heavy weapons that were mounted on the skid. All
internal power was shut down as the
troops assembled outside in the rain and
muck.
"Remember,"
their Unifer admonished them, his visor flipped up to expose his face to the
rain and darkness, "from here on you
have to try and look like Humans, walk like
Humans, think like Humans." Nervous laughter rose from people as yet unaware that they were being
instructed to act like themselves.
The mounting irony threatened to overwhelm
Ranji.
"What happens
if we're challenged?"
He squinted at Weenn through the
pounding rain. "We're a battle squad on our way to take up newly assigned positions. Nobody shoots, nobody even
makes a hostile grimace unless I give the word. I'll handle any confrontations. I can speak Human pretty good,
without the aid of a translator.''
Tourmast was close by his side. Very
close. "I didn't know you could talk
Human, Ranj." The downpour muffled
his words. "When did you pick that up?"
"What did you
think I've been doing all the time I haven't been talking to anybody? There's
a lot you don't know about me, Tourm. Maze me if there isn't a lot you don't know about yourself.'' He headed off into the
rain, leaving his friend and
subordinate to gaze after him thoughtfully.
Scouts from the floaters scrambled up
the crumbling north wall of the gully,
momentarily vanished, then returned
to indicate that the grounds surrounding the nearest large structure were occupied only by decorative
plants, walkways, and fountains arranged according to typical Wais design. Advancing at the run in double file,
the rest of the squad followed.
Exterior lights from the building and
other nearby structures scarcely illuminated the line of dim bipedal shapes that splashed forward
through dark rain and expanding
puddles.
With a very few
exceptions a door is recognizable anywhere civilization
has taken hold. As expected, no guard lingered in the downpour outside the one
they soon confronted. A small amber glowlight shed
minimal illumination on the solid landing below. While the rest of the squad
hugged the shadows, Ranji tried the door pull. It opened easily.
The light inside
was much brighter than he would have preferred, but
there was little to be gained by trying another structure. They were in a relay or
switching station of some kind. Around them massive machinery hummed with purpose,
oblivious to the conflict that raged outside as loads were shifted and power shipped
to urban centers far to the south. Illumination came from lightstrips laid into ceiling, walls,
and floor. Those in the floor were color-coded.
Muttering an order to Tourmast, he waited
nervously until
everyone was inside out of the storm. As Weenn shut the exterior door
behind the last soldier a pair of Massood appeared in the corridor just ahead. One was
intent on a recorder pad while her companion recited readings from a panel of telltales.
He grunted something, started to move on to the next in series, and froze as
his eyes met Ranji's. One long-fingered hand instinctively readied for the
side-arm
secured at his waist.
"Don't do that!" Ranji's Massood
was erratic, and he hastened to adjust the translator built into his field
visor as
he approached the pair. "We're here to talk, not fight." Glancing back at his
troops, he added in a terse whisper, "Try to look relaxed and
indifferent."
The Massood's cat eyes widened slightly as
the figure in field armor slowly came forward. The female stood motionless, still
clutching the recorder pad. Ranji felt his companions' eyes on his back, heard their
confused whispers as they wondered what their Unifer was up to. But they were mindful of
his orders, and kept their weapons lowered.
He stopped an arm's length away from the
towering, lanky, gray-furred figure. Vertical pupils expanded and contracted. Both
short, pointed ears were cocked sharply forward. Whiskers twitched violently.
The Massood clearly confused.
"We're not hostile," Ranji assured
it.
The technician swayed slightly. "But you
are Ashregan,"
it declared with certainty.
"That doesn't matter. I'm telling you
the truth."
He expected further argument, wondering how
he was going to persuade them before someone in his
squad came forward, gun at the ready, to see what was
going on.
Instead, the
Massood's twitching eased and it relaxed visibly. "I
believe you”
"Yes," added his companion
with utterly unexpected alacrity, "we
believe you."
Desperation must
make a man convincing, he told himself, bemused but much
relieved. "Why don't you go and inform your
superiors of our arrival? Tell them there's a squad of
armed altered Ashregan down here ready to surrender.
We'll await your return."
"That is a
good idea." The two technicians turned and departed.
Ranji waited until they were safely on their way before
rejoining his companions.
Their unease was
palpable. "What's going on?" Tour-mast wasn't the
only one who crowded close, demanding an answer.
Saguio's anxious face was visible behind his visor.
"Why'd you let them leave like that?"
"What did you tell them? They
didn't look worried," Weenn asked.
During the walk
back Ranji had composed a response. "I told them
that we were a special floating unit disguised to look
like Ashregan."
"And they believed that?"
Tourmast was more than doubtful.
"You saw what happened, didn't
you?" said Saguio. "They just
walked away quietly. No fear, no panic. Just like we were allies."
The Sub-Unifer
wasn't convinced but couldn't think of anything else to
say. Nothing he could envision nor anything in his
training had prepared him for the scenario he'd just
witnessed. "What now?" he muttered.
"We go forward, of course."
Ranji turned and beckoned casually.
Several soldiers exchanged glances, but all followed.
They had nearly
traversed the length of the switching station when
Weenn, advancing on the right, called for a halt. Tension took
hold of the squad as they sensed movement in front of
them.
"Something here doesn't make
sense." Tourmast gripped his
weapon, waiting for the sensors in his hood and
visor to interpret what he couldn't see with his own eyes.
"Everything
makes sense," Ranji assured him quietly.
"There they are!" A startled
soldier shouted as she started to raise her
rifle. Ranji rushed out in front of her, raising his voice.
"No shooting, I said!" In the
stunned faces of those who gaped at him
there was much confusion and in several cases, the first inklings of painful suspicion. Saguio could be counted
among the latter.
By the time anyone
thought of wresting command it was too late; they were
completely surrounded by armed Massood. Engulfed in
an unprecedented and inexplicable calm, intruders and
defenders regarded one another nervously.
"Stranger and
stranger." Tourmast regarded his friend and
superior closely. "Why haven't they fired on us?"
Feeling more
vulnerable than he ever had, and with good reason, Ranji
addressed his troops. "Turn over your weapons."
He glanced in Tourmast's direction. "They haven't fired because
I've informed them that we're surrendering."
"We're doing wha?"
Weenn blurted.
"Surrendering."
His eyes roved over the squad, trying to seek out the one
unsteady weapon that could reduce his plans to chaos. "This is an order.
You are to comply . . . now. If the thought troubles any of you note
that we're thoroughly outnumbered."
Someone mumbled
loudly. "Traitor!"
Flinching, Ranji
tried but failed to identify the speaker. "I'm no traitor, as you'll see. I
know exactly what I'm doing and everything
will be explained to you so that you understand."
"What's there to understand?"
A resigned Tourmast deactivated his rifle
and slowly placed it on the floor. "It looks pretty straightforward to
me." His tone left no illusions
about what he was feeling.
Ranji walked over
to him. "I know what you're thinking, Tourm, but you're
operating under a significant number of mistaken
assumptions."
Tourmast didn't
meet his gaze. "Is that so? What sort of 'mistaken assumptions'? That
you're someone any of us should continue to pay attention to, for example?" Around them disgruntled, angry Cossuutians were
laying down their arms under watchful Massood eyes.
Ranji held his
temper. "For starters, how about the fact that you're
not Ashregan, but Human."
Tourmast's
expression twisted unpleasantly. "My first thought was
that you're a traitor and a coward, but I see now that's
not fair. You're only crazy."
"It would
shock you to know how many times I wished it were that
simple." He backed up and raised his voice. "All of you, listen to me!
We're not Ashregan who've been modified to
look and fight like Humans. We're Humans
who've been raised to believe that we're Ashregan. I'm sure that at one time or another you've all
noticed and remarked on the
similarities, from our reaction times and muscular density to our physical stature and enthusiasm for combat.''
"What nonsense is this?" The
brief speech had done nothing to convince
Tourmast of his friend's thesis. Or his sanity. "It's all been explained to us from childhood. Such
characteristics are the gifts of the Teachers, given to us so that we may better defend the Purpose."
"Rather than given us gifts they've
stolen our birthright," Ranji shot back. "We are Human. No
Ashregan can be 'modified' to do what we've
done. All our lives are lies. Yours,
mine, my brother's." Utterly baffled, Saguio gaped at his mad sibling.
"All of us.
"Once we were
all wholly Human children, or at least Human embryos. We
were abducted, stolen from our parents, and without
consent surgically and genetically altered solely to
serve the Amplitur's needs. They placed us with Ashregan
families, gave us Ashregan histories, had us raised to
believe we were Ashregan. They've trained us to fight as
Ashregan warriors, and when they're satisfied with our performances, we'll be
withdrawn from combat." He paused for emphasis. "For breeding. So
that we'll pass on the traits they've inserted in us to our unknowing offspring."
"You forget
one thing," said a soldier as she reluctantly divested herself of her weapons. "I myself have felt the Teachers in my mind. Most of us have. If we were Human something in us would resist such Teacher contact. This is a fact that is widely known."
"True," Ranji replied,
"but what's not widely known is that
the Amplitur have inserted into each of our brains a special neural
nexus of their own design." He tapped his
forehead. "Here. Through means no one as yet properly understands it negates the mechanism in the
Human nervous system which responds
defensively to attempted Amplitur
probing. It renders us susceptible to their mental 'suggestions.' " The Massood soldiers, he
noticed, were paying as much
attention to him as his fellow Cossuutians.
"Why should we
believe you?" Without really understanding why,
Weenn found himself wavering. "Why should we believe
anything you say?''
"Because I've
seen the nexus inside my own skull." He swallowed.
"Many of you have heard the story of my miraculous
survival on Eirrosad. It's all falsehood. I did not spend months
wandering alone in the jungle. Instead, I was
captured and taken to a world called Omaphil, where Hivistahm surgeons severed the connections
between the Amplitur nexus and the
rest of my brain. As a freed, restored Human on Eirrosad I saw how
Amplitur probes were used to manipulate the rest of you. I saw because self-determination had been restored to me, if
not the biological defenses common
to all natural-born Human beings.
"It nauseated
me, and it made me angry. I determined to bring the truth to as many of my
fellow abductees as possible. Until we were sent here I had no idea how to do
that
because I knew that as soon as I started trying to explain you'd think
me insane and have me turned over to the psychologists. They, in turn, would call
in the Ampli-tur. And that would likely be the end of me as a free-thinking,
independent-minded individual.
"I understand what you're going through
right now, what you're thinking. I understand because I fought the idea as hard as
you're fighting it this minute."
"They did something to you, all
right," Weenn murmured sadly. ' 'Affected your mind somehow. Messed up your thoughts."
Ranji was nodding grimly. "I know words
alone won't be enough to convince you, because they weren't enough to convince me.
You're going to have to see the scanner images and the rest of the proof for
yourselves."
Under the watchful gray cat eyes of a group
of wary and very puzzled Massood, the disarmed Cossuutians were led from the switching
station. Outside, the rain had eased. A cluster of Hivistahm and Massood hovered at
the edge of the gully where Ranji's people had abandoned their vehicles.
"Images can be faked," someone in
the group muttered.
Ranji was ready for every objection because
not long ago
he'd voiced them himself. "True, but close-quarter surgery cannot. I
don't expect any of you to believe or understand until one of you undergoes the
same operation I did while the rest look on. You can't deny the evidence inside your own
heads."
Tourmast strode disconsolate but thoughtful
across the damp walkway. "So someone has to volunteer themselves for the operating
table. The enemy's operating table."
"You're going to have to stop thinking
of Humans as the enemy. The enemy is us, we are them. I know it's going to take a
tremendous readjustment on everyone's part."
"Our Unifer," Weenn muttered.
"Master of understatement."
"I know how
hard this is." Ranji implored his friends. "You're going to have to
throw out everything you think you know, think you feel. But it can
be done. It'll be easier for you than it was for me because
you have me to help you. I had only Hivistahm and Humans."
They entered a
large angular building fronted with sheets of bronzed
translucence that glittered in the walkway light-strips.
"This operation," Tourmast
persisted. "Is it risky?"
"So I was told. I won't lie to you.
Dangerous or not, everyone will have to
undergo it sooner or later.''
"What about
this?" A female soldier had removed her now unnecessary hood and visor.
She ran gloved fingers along her cranial ridge.
"More Amplitur handiwork,"
Ranji told her. "Along with the diameter of our eye sockets, the length of
our fingers, and the other physical
differences. Under the right instruments
the proof is clearly visible, and it can all be corrected." He touched the calcareous mass above his recessed
right ear. "This is a prosthesis. I’ve already seen myself as a Human. Great revelations sometimes
spring from small sources."
"No Hivistahm
or Human's operating on me," someone in the middle
of the column muttered. Angry whispers indicated he was
not alone in his determination.
"I'll do
it," a voice announced unexpectedly.
Ranji looked into
the crowd, to find his brother meeting his gaze.
"As far as I know, Ranj, you've
never lied to me." Saguio surveyed his
fellow fighters, many of them childhood friends. "If Ranji-aar
says this is the truth, then I believe
him."
"Sagui, it
doesn't have to be you. We can ..."
"What's the matter, Unifer?" A
belligerent young woman pushed her way
toward him. "Afraid to have your own
flesh and blood go down on the table?''
"Yeah," said someone else
accusingly. "Don't you want him made more 'Human'?"
"Don't you see?" Saguio importuned
his brother. "It has to be me. If I don't have the operation, neither will
anyone
else."
Intending to reply, Ranji found himself
choking on his objections. His brother was right, of course. Saguio had always been smarter
than his older sibling had given him credit for.
Tourmast put a comradely arm around his
superior's shoulders. "We'll all be watching closely when the Hivistahm cut your
brother open, Ranj. It would be well for them to find something. Because if they
don't, no matter where they imprison us or how they treat us or what they do to us, one of us
somehow, sometime, will find you and kill you." He gave Ranji's shoulder a
suggestive squeeze before removing his hand.
The response was steely cold. "If
nothing is found you won't have to worry about finding and killing me, Tourm.
Because
I'll have attended to that particular detail myself." The Sub-Unifer grunted
under his breath. There was nothing more to be said. They quite understood one another.
The dialogue was unnecessary, Ranji knew.
The Hivistahm
surgeons would find an Amplitur-induced nexus inside his brother's skull, just as
they had within his own. They had to. Otherwise it would mean that he truly had been lied to, had
somehow been thoroughly and disastrously fooled.
He refused to consider it. Another attempt to
so drastically rotate his perceptions and rewrite his sense of self would put an end to
him as efficiently as could Tourmast.
The column turned left at the end of die
corridor. A gaping double door beckoned, and they were herded into a high-ceilinged
chamber packed with instrumentation.
The Massood officer who'd taken them in
charge vanished, to reappear moments later in the company of a harried-looking
Human who struggled to mine sleep from his eyes. His brushy crown of red hair
jolted memories Ranji thought long buried.
"What the hell is this?"
Ranji walked up to him. He was taller
than the man, though not the armed Massood
who stood nearby.
"My name, sir,
is Ranji-aar. Despite that I am not Ashregan but Human,
like you. So are my companions."
"You don't
say." Having cleared his eyes, the man began rubbing his chin. "Part
of you looks Human, part Ashregan. We've
heard about your kind."
"The result of
Amplitur bioengineering performed on Human infants and
embryos," Ranji explained.
"Sounds like
antimat to me. What do you expect me to do with you?"
Nearby, the Massood officer's nose wrinkled in the presence of so many strange
smells.
"Get in touch
with your Military Council. Contact the central medical facilities on the Yula
world of Omaphil, and if he's still there, ask for a certain
Hivistahm First-of-Surgery. I was there not long ago. They'll tell you all about me." Exhausted beyond measure, Ranji
sank to the floor on shaky legs.
"In fact, they'll be more than a little relieved to hear that you've spoken with me."
The Human exchanged
a glance with the Massood, who curled an upper lip by way of
response. "Assuming I go to the trouble of making such
contact, what am I supposed to say?"
"Tell First-of-Surgery to come with
as many skilled surgeons as the Weave can
spare. Tell him there's work for them
here."
The Human's gaze narrowed. "At the
moment we're being hard pressed by the rest of your friends. As you undoubtedly know, the local population is worse
than useless in the face of armed
invasion. That leaves it up to us temporary
immigrants to try and save their world for them. Right now that's all that concerns me. This is no place for a medical convocation. Yet you expect me to
requisition the use of deep-space relay time on behalf of some half-Ashregan
freak, because he wants to see a doctor?''
Ranji looked up tiredly. "If you don't, I can guarantee that the remainder of your military career will be spent tending sanitation facilities on the airless moon of Earth."
The Massood leaned
forward and whispered in broken Human. "Consider: Though armed they have
committed no violence. After successfully breaching our defenses without
raising any alarm they surrendered peacefully when
they could have caused a great deal of damage. While I also view the creature's words with the
greatest suspicion, it cannot be denied that there may be more to this than self-delusion."
Silently the Human officer pondered the
tall armored enigma that called itself
Ranji-aar. "How'd you get inside the dome, anyway?"
"I'll explain
everything ... as
soon as you get in touch with your
superiors and verify what I've told you."
Another pause,
whereupon the man reluctantly turned and shouted something in guttural Human.
There was movement in the corridor outside.
The Massood leaned forward politely, whiskers twitching, lower lip
curled slightly downward to expose sharp
teeth.
"We are complying with your
suggestions. You must understand that it
will take some time to make contact and receive a response. Until then you and your troops will be held under guard and appropriately treated."
Ranji nodded tiredly, free at last to
employ whatever Human gestures he wished.
"Thank you. I have one additional
request. I ask that you isolate me from my companions."
The Massood
officer said nothing, but the fine erectile fur on his muzzle
stiffened slightly.
It was strange to
sit by himself in the room they had given him and wish for the defeat of Birachii
and other old friends. If they overran the
distribution complex and "rescued"
Ranji and the other captives, even Saguio's determination to support his
brother might falter. Certainly there would
be no reunion with First-of-Surgery, no revealing, liberating
operations for his companions. He would be
shipped off-world at first opportunity, an object of anger and pity for
the curious Amplitur to prod and probe.
But deprived of its Commander's
strategic skills, the attack faltered. Birachii and Cossinza's squads failed to
dislodge the installation's defenders. Even as they lamented the loss of the brave assault team led by their friend and Unifer, they fell back to the protection of
the foothills and requested instructions from Regional Command.
Two weeks later a column of heavily
armed and armored attack sleds arrived at the distribution complex, having fought off sporadic enemy attacks all the
way from Usilayy, Ulaluable's capital
city. The Massood and Human officers
in charge of defending the installation were surprised to learn that
the convoy had made the dangerous run not to bring reinforcements but solely to
escort the tiny clutch of prisoners back to
the capital.
The pressure of
coordinating the center's defense didn't allow much time
for casual conversation. Now it was too late. But the Human
officer who'd confronted Ranji on that rainy, confusing
night many days earlier did manage to be present when he and
his companions were being loaded aboard the armed
sleds.
"Look, I
don't know who or what you are or how much of your story is true," he told his
former prisoner, "but if you are Human
under all that extraneous calcification, how did you come to look like this?''
Ranji glanced back
at him. "I told you. The Amplitur."
The man nodded
sagely. "Wouldn't put anything past the squids. But
this ..." His
voice trailed off. "Will you do
me a favor? We don't know each other and you certainly don't owe me anything, but when you get to wherever it is
you're going, and your situation is finally resolved,
will you let me know what the results are? As one curious primate to another?"
"I'll try." They parted with a
handshake. The wholly Human gesture at last
felt easy and natural to Ranji. The unconvinced
among Ranji's fellow soldiers did not hesitate to curse the exchange.
In contrast to its
arrival, the convoy's run back to Usilayy was
uneventful. Having decided to concentrate their firepower on specific targets,
the invading Crigolit and Ashregan had few
personnel to spare for disruptive sorties of dubious military value. Had they known that Ranji and his companions
were traveling with the convoy, its progress would have been considerably
reduced. But as far as Ashregan command was concerned, they'd perished bravely while trying to infiltrate an enemy
installation. Notification of that conclusion was already on its way to
friends and relations.
Never having had
the opportunity to examine Humans at close range,
Ranji's companions were forced to admit the extraordinary
similarities between themselves and their guards, while the Humans in the convoy
regarded their prisoners with equal dubiety
and puzzlement. Anyone who continued to insist that captors and captives
were not somehow related was asking a lot
of the principle of convergent
evolution.
Everyone knew,
however, that physical appearance was not what mattered
when evaluating potential enemies o allies. What was
important was what individuals believe and how they thought, and in that
respect the gulf between was still wide. With the possible
exception of their enigmatic leader, the clutch of captives
remained wholly Ashregan in attitude and outlook.
Usilayy betrayed no
sign of the war that raged around distant strategic
centers and military targets. The city simmered beneath a
serene autumnal sun, genial and bustling ablaze with late-season flowers and
trees that dripped coppery-colored leaves
into neatly domesticated streams and
dancing fountains. Within its protected and manicured confines the notion of war seemed a far-off,
abstract obscenity.
Wais officials left
disposition of the special prisoners to grim-faced Massood
and Humans, studiously avoiding allies and enemies
alike.
Despite the
knowledge that he'd done remarkably well in safely
delivering twenty-five of his companions to the Weave, Ranji
couldn't help but lament the absence of good friends
like Soratii and Cossinza. Their deliverance would have to await additional progress. With luck the invasion would fail and they would be captured before they could be evacuated.
If not, at least
Tourmast and Weenn and the rest could be shown the truth. Afterward they could
somehow be returned home or to their units,
there to further spread the knowledge
of what the Amplitur had done to them. They'd have no other choice, any more than had Ranji.
It would all have to be done with the
greatest stealth and care lest the Amplitur
learn what was happening. Ranji would
not put it past the Teachers to sorrowfully and with great regret put an end to an unsuccessful
experiment by having the several
thousand participants still under their control quietly terminated.
It was proposed
that the captives observe the operation via special monitors set up for that
purpose, but despite the fact that no
actual cutting was involved, Tourmast and the others would have none of
that. Unanimously, they insisted on being
present in person. Otherwise they would believe nothing.
In appropriate garb
they crowded into the operating theater. It was
spacious, spotless, and elegant, as befitted a Wais-built
facility. Visible instruments mirrored in design the
multitude of flowers that carpeted the grounds outside. In aspect it was far more reassuring than intimidating.
Ranji was with his brother in Preop.
Their respective situations
notwithstanding, it was Saguio who did most of the comforting.
"Relax, Ranj.
If what you've been saying is true, then I've nothing to
worry about."
"It's still a complex
operation." Ranji gazed down at his brother. "Even if they are just
severing neurons and not excising the nodule
itself.''
"Hey, you went
through it, and look at you: no crazier than usual." Saguio grinned
tightly. "Not that I'm not ready to get
it over with."
"I'll be
there every minute. So will the whole squad."
"Yeah,
great." Fear momentarily shadowed the younger man's face. He
forced it aside. "Don't let 'em cut anything
I might want to use later.''
An O'o'yan arrived
to administer a glass of water containing an oral anesthetic. Five minutes
later two of the short, reptilian meditechs
were guiding the cushioned operating
pallet and its comatose cargo into the Surgery.
Conversation died among the onlookers as
Saguio's pallet arrived and was locked in position. The O'o'yan immobilized his head with air clamps, then stepped
back. Several Massood guarded the
doorways.
A pair of Hivistahm
assumed operators' positions at the surgical station.
They were accompanied by a Human surgical programmer,
the most competent on Ulaluable. After scrutinizing
them dubiously, Ranji walked over and put a hand on the top
of the console.
"Wait a
minute. Where's First-of-Surgery? "
The nearer of the two Hivistahm blinked up at
him. "I Second-of-Surgery am, chief physician on Ulaluable. The First-of-Surgery to
whom you refer unable to come is. Distance and time prohibitive are."
An anxious Ranji looked over at his
recumbent, anesthetized brother. Lying there motionless he looked even younger than he was.
"None of you have ever been involved in an operation like this. I expected
someone experienced. ''
The other Hivistahm replied stiffly. "I
assure you that there is no need our competency to question. The appropriate programming
instructions were transmitted and thrice checked before into the computer being
entered. Remember
that it in control of the actual procedure is. We are present only to
check and monitor."
Still Ranji hesitated. ' 'That programming
was designed for my skull, my brain. Not Saguio's."
"The instrumentation is designed
variations into account to take. Truly calm yourself. If uncertainty arises, we are here to
adjudicate."
Tourmast's voice sounded from nearby.
"Something wrong, Unifer?"
He could insist they wait until
First-of-Surgery came in person from Omaphill. That risked unnerving his fellow
Cossuutians even more than they already were. He wavered, staring at
the helpless form of his brother.
"Call it off," he said finally,
walking around the console. "I don't care how carefully you recorded the
necessary instructions, I'm not going to allow ..." Something stung him in the middle of the back and he whirled. One
of the Massood guards was standing
there, pointing a narrow metal tube
in his direction. Two long fingers were tensed on the complex triggering mechanism.
It seemed as if the Surgery was being pumped
full of fog.
He stumbled against the console, dimly felt it bang into his back.
Through the thickening mist he heard the rising, uncertain murmuring of his fellow
soldiers, and the voice of the Hivistahm in charge.
“Better it is that the patient not
remain long under anesthesia. There no danger is. Your leader understandably concerned for his sibling is. He merely tranquilized has been. This way
is for him and his brother both better. Everything
under control is. By the Circle I, as a physician, swear it."
As the shot's effects spread like a deep
massage throughout his body Ranji lost
control of his lower limbs. Two
Massood caught him under the arms and at the ankles. He felt himself being carried from the room. Fighting to shout,
to call for help, he discovered that his larynx had been rendered as
dysfunctional as his legs.
A face appeared
before his eyes, its outlines swimming. Weenn gazed down at
Ranji as he was carried past. The fluid expression on
his friend's face was unreadable.
When he awoke he sat up in the bed so
sharply that the O'o'yan attendant who
happened to be checking his waste-recovery system fainted, with the
result that instead of shouting imprecations
and demands, Ranji found himself bending
over the unconscious creature trying to stop the slight bleeding at the back of its head.
His return to
consciousness, not to mention his abrupt physical reaction,
had alerted monitoring hospital instrumentation. Hivistahm and other O'o'yan
came running. Those first on the scene were
greeted by the disconcerting sight of the Human warrior bending over the
bleeding attendant. The tension level rose quickly until Ranji was able to explain. Thus reassured, they hurried to
assist both O'o'yan and patient.
Ranji apologized,
and the attendant absolved him of any blame. It was his
fault, the O'o'yan explained. Though an experienced
rneditech, he'd never worked with Humans before. It was his
responsibility to be appropriately prepared, and he
ought to have anticipated potential shocks.
"Your concern is appreciated,"
the attendant concluded.
"Never mind that." An
impatient Ranji evaluated shoulder insignia
until he located the highest-ranking Hivistahm
present. "How is my brother? Where is he?"
"He's
fine." A young man stood grinning in the doorway.
"Resting comfortably." As he entered Ranji saw above his heart the symbol of the Human combat
meditech corps ... the
traditional caduceus with its entwined snakes
spitting caustic venom. "Matter of fact, he's in the next room."
Ranji started
forward, stumbled, and allowed the tech to steady him.
Though concerned, none of the Hivistahm or O'o'yan stepped
forward to offer physical assistance. They were still
subject to certain inherent antipathies only a few of
their kind had been able to overcome. They examined the
nude primate with professional detachment.
"Take deep breaths," the tech
advised Ranji. "Your clothes are in
the side closet."
Ranji nodded and did as he was
instructed. When he felt halfway steady on
his feet he dressed. Still fumbling with
the seals on his undersuit he hurried to the next room down the hall. Two Massood were posted there, two
Humans within. At a nod from the
tech they let him pass.
Saguio was sitting
up in bed, an entertainment projection dancing in the air before him. As his
brother entered he waved and touched an unseen button. The
projection vanished.
"Hi, Ranj." He smiled easily,
looking relaxed and comfortable. "You
look worse than I do."
Ranji put out a
hand to steady himself against the wall. "I suppose I
must. How are you feeling?"
"Well. I heard
what happened to you. That was a nice gesture, but apparently unnecessary. I've
been up all morning. You haven't." He
looked past his brother to the tech and the guards. "Could we have
some privacy, please?"
The tech hesitated,
then nodded. Turning, he spoke to the guards, smiled
briefly back into the room before following them out
into the corridor.
Ranji scanned the room. "Probably
isn't any privacy. I'm sure they've had
sensors on both of us ever since we got
here."
"I'd be
surprised if it was any other way. If the situation were reversed,
we'd be doing the same. The rest of the squad was in earlier. They watched the
operation. It must've been pretty convincing
because they all believe you now. So
do I, even though I didn't get to see anything. Tourmast said that organ showed up on the visual probe exactly as you described it. The meditechs even
let them manipulate the visuals
themselves." He ran a hand through his hair. "I don't feel any
different."
"No," Ranji told him slowly,
"you won't."
"They ran some
tests on me right afterward. Stuck me in a machine they said came as close to
duplicating a Teacher ... an
Amplitur mind-touch as could be done with
circuits and programming. This time I was conscious of what was happening inside my head. I could
feel the pushing. Never felt that before." He shifted in the bed,
gazed earnestly at his brother. "Is that really what it's like? The Teachers really have been making us do
what they want without us even
realizing it?"
Ranji nodded
slowly, luxuriating in the increasingly familiar Human
gesture. "They've always referred to their pushes as
'suggestions.' I suppose that's all they are, except that
nobody has the ability to turn one down. Except Humans. The
operation doesn't give us back the Human neurodefense
mechanism, but it does make us immune to Amplitur
suggestion. Those of us who have the surgery will never
have to suffer that again."
"And the rest of it, about us being
abducted Human children and all, that's
true then, too?" Ranji nodded solemnly.
Saguio looked
pensive for a while. "It's a lot to handle all at once, Ranj. A lot."
"Sorry. It's
not the kind of thing that can be ladled out in small doses."
' 'How long have
you known? Since your disappearance on Eirrosad, right?" Without
waiting for his brother to reply
he leaned back against the curving mattress. "I've been Ashregan all my
life, and now a few scalpel passes later I'm Human. I wish I did feel
differently. It might make it
easier to accept." He touched his head. "The damned thing's still in there, isn't it?"
"They told me that it's too deeply embedded in the cerebrum to risk removing," Ranji explained.
He touched his own skull. "I
have one, too, remember. So do all our friends."
He found a chair and pulled it over next to the bed. Though designed to support the backside of a Hivistahm tech, it would hold him if he watched his
balance.
"There are things that have been
bothering me ever since we landed on this world. I wanted to be able to share them with someone,
but I had to wait. Now I can share them with you."
Saguio blinked ingenuously. "Share
away."
Ranji hesitated. "What time are they
supposed to feed you?"
His brother gave him a strange look but
replied readily. "I last ate about an hour ago. I don't imagine I'm due for another feeding
until evening."
"Call an attendant. You have the means
to do that, don't you?"
"Sure." Saguio thumbed the
requisite switch. Moments later a single O'o'yan entered. Ranji addressed it
without turning,
keeping his eyes on his brother.
"We'd like something to eat,
please."
"It is not yet scheduled."
Ranji concentrated on his request. "We
really would like something to eat. Now.''
The O'o'yan blinked. "Certainly. Do you
have a particular meal request?"
"No." Ranji was satisfied with the
response. "Whatever you can bring will be fine."
"Very well." The slim little
reptilian attendant left to comply.
Saguio was staring intently. At the same time
he was quite aware of the
presence of untiring monitors in the room.
"What was that all about?"
"Nothing," said Ranji in a slow, deliberately
self-contradictory manner. "I was just feeling hungry."
"Oh, yeah. Hungry."
A silent Ranji sat across from his brother, pondering. The sensors
overhead could record his words, his expressions,
his movements; but they could not read his thoughts.
The experiment only confirmed the hypothesis that had been
maturing in his mind ever since he'd had the disagreement with the female
Ashregan Unifer in the gully outside the power distribution complex. She'd
consented to his radical proposal too quickly, too easily. At the time he'd
thought little of it, though it had nagged at him intermittently ever since.
Then had come the confrontation with the two Massood technicians
inside the switching station. After that he'd no longer been able to bury his
suspicions in the back of his mind.
And now the ready acquiescence to his request for an unscheduled
meal. From an O'o'yan, for whom a deviation in scheduling was akin to altering
respiration.
He was anxious to test his theory further. On a S'van, perhaps, or
a Massood field officer. The effort required was something of a strain, like
concentrating for a long time on small print.
According to what the Hivistahm had told him on Omaphil, the
effect was electrical in nature. It had been explained to him that there were
primitive creatures which could sense such impulses but could not distinguish
those generated by the mind from those produced by the rest of the body, nor
could they in turn affect them. They could only detect. On Earth they were
known as sharks, and the organs capable of detecting and crudely analyzing impulses
were called the Ampullae of Lorenzini. Coincidentally, the attitude and
temperament of such creatures was said to be not unlike that of Humans
themselves.
What name should
he give to the related but far more sophisticated
organ inside his brain? What did the Amplitur call that
portion of their unique minds which could via projection
induce subtle alterations in the firing of another sentient's neurons? Induce, adjust, rechannel. Suggest.
As he had
suggested to the female Ashregan Sub-Unifer, the pair of Massood technicians,
and now to a single O'o'yan medical
attendant.
He'd examined and
reexamined the period immediately after his own operation and was positive
that for some considerable while thereafter
he hadn't possessed such capabilities.
Therefore they took time to develop. Perhaps something within the brain took time to heal following the actual surgery. Whatever it was, it was utterly
unexpected. Of that he was certain. The Hivistahm surgeons, his fellow Humans, none of them knew or suspected anything.
At present Saguio could do nothing, was
completely unaware of the ability that might
have unintentionally been bestowed
on him as a side effect of the operation. As to whether he would develop anything like it only time would tell. Not a lot of time, either. Ranji would have
to watch him very carefully. He was
conscious of the fact that whatever
had happened to him, to his mind, might constitute something unique, an
aberration not to be repeated. Just because it had taken place in his
brain as a result of the operation didn't
mean it would recur whenever similar surgery was performed on a fellow modified Gossuutian. Individuals might heal, might recuperate
differently, with wildly differing
results.
"You all
right?" Saguio was eyeing him curiously.
Ranji smiled.
"Just the lingering effects of whatever it was that
Massood smacked me with."
"What was it
you wanted to share with me?"
"Tell you later. Right now I want
to know how the others are doing."
"Ciscine-oon
and Dourid-aer agreed to have the operation as soon as I came out of it and
proved to everyone's satisfaction that no harm was
involved. Ciscine's probably in surgery right now. The head Hivistahm told me that if
all went
well they hoped to perform two operations a day until they'd gone through the whole
squad. They had a second team standing by to execute the follow-ups."
Ranji frowned. "Follow-ups?"
"You're the one who told me about it.
Cosmetic surgery." Saguio scratched his cranial ridge with a too-long finger. "I
imagine they'll be coming for me pretty soon. You too, Ranj. If I'm going to be
Human, I expect I'd better look the part. Bet I make a better-looking Human than you." He reached out and put a
hand on Ranji's shoulder. "You'd
better prepare yourself, brother, because when they finish cutting on me there
are a lot of questions I mean to ask
you."
Ranji gazed back at his sibling. "Don't
worry, Sagui. I'll answer every question you've got. In fact, I have answers to questions
you haven't begun to formulate."
The battle for Ulaluable
raged, with the invaders seemingly incapable of
making significant headway and the defenders unable to
drive them off-world. Meanwhile, the pace of operations
continued at a steady two per day as one after another of Ranji's fellow soldiers submitted to the programmed manipulations of the sonic scalpel. The Hivistahm could easily have performed half a dozen of the surgeries per day, but the more dilatory pace allowed the anxious patients to receive greater individual attention during the recovery period, while simultaneously helping to assuage the lingering unease among the as yet untouched.
Having thus
insured the Cossuutian prodigals against future Amplitur
mental manipulation, Weave Command had no more idea what
to do with them than if they had suddenly been presented with two dozen
defecting griffins. Their view of Human culture and Humanness being
understandably skewed, instructional materials suitable for
correcting a lifetime of misconception were provided for the
use of the Restorees as they came to be called. These,
combined with the Hivistahm's expert cosmetic surgery and the friendship and compassion of those Humans on the medical staff, helped to speed and ease the defectors' mental and emotional transition from Ashregan to Homo sapiens.
As their new
Humanness began to take hold and the full import of what the
Amplitur had done to them sank in, several volunteered their
fighting abilities on behalf of the Weave. Such offers were
not so much denied as avoided. Despite the assurances of the Hivistahm surgeons, Weave
Command was still suspicious
of them, Ranji knew. They could hardly be blamed.
He and his friends were an unknown quantity. How unknown not even his brother suspected as yet.
The defectors were kept under close observation, ostensibly to
insure their complete and successful recovery. They complied by adapting to their new circumstances with gratifying
speed. Before long they were wandering freely among the rest of the Usilayy
Human contingent, which was to say that they were restricted to the confines of
the military compound lest their appearance on the city streets actively
disconcert the natives.
The only Wais Ranji encountered were those official translators
and support personnel who had survived the rigorous
psychological training that allowed them to interact with combative
sentients like Humans and Massood without suffering consequent mental damage.
Ninety-eight percent of the population had never seen a Human being in the
flesh, and their protective government wanted to keep it that way. The invasion
had caused trauma enough.
Not that the Weave compound was confining. It was as lavishly
landscaped and exquisitely maintained as the rest of the capital's facilities.
The Wais desired to make conditions for their vitally needed if inherently
unbalanced allies as comfortable as possible. Grassy hills, streams, small
waterfalls, flowers, trees alive with delicate, brightly hued arboreals; all
contributed to a placid tranquillity that belied the seriousness of the
situation.
Ranji explored the compound with a dedication that provoked mild
amusement among his comrades. Rather than being frantic for exercise, however,
he was seeking a location where they could hopefully gather in comparative
solitude. For mutual contemplation, as he explained to one curious soldier. In
reality he was trying to find a place out of sight of prying eyes and ears
where he could prepare them for
developments they were as yet unaware of.
Eventually he settled on a smooth-sided hollow in a cluster of round,
reddish boulders located at the northern limits of the compound. The small pond
at the bottom was fringed with tall yellow reeds from which pinkish puff balls occasionally issued, fragile hallmarks
of intermittent propagation.
Amphibious ground-dwellers scuttled through
the water or peeped from cracks in the rocks. It was a natural place to
mingle, and their presence there should not
provoke excessive comment.
They assembled in twos and threes,
chatting among themselves, curious and by
now more than a little bored. Ranji
had a couple of technicians surreptitiously check the boulders and
plants for concealed sensors. They found nothing. Their inspection was far from
thorough, but it would have to do. He
couldn't wait any longer. If he did, those
who had been operated on first might start suspecting things, and in the
absence of understanding that could prove
dangerous. None of his companions were blessed with his perspective.
Just in case, he
restricted the initial discussions to inconsequential matters. Having
established a pattern of meeting regularly
in the hollow, he was careful to divulge nothing of import for several days.
When he finally did
broach his feelings they were met with the expected
skepticism. Then a soldier named Howmev-eir recalled requesting
and finally demanding of a Hivistahm access to certain historical records.
Informed initially that such recordings were unavailable to
him, upon his insistence they were supplied with a dispatch
which startled him.
Nor was his an isolated experience. Upon
reflection, several others among the first
dozen who had been operated on
recalled similar incidents. They'd sought no deeper explanation beyond a belief that their former
captors and new allies were simply doing their best to please them.
"They were
doing more than just trying to help out new friends," Ranji explained.
"Once each of you insisted, really
pressed your point mentally and emotionally, none of them any longer had any choice in the matter,
any more than they would have if an
Amplitur had made the same requests.
Or 'suggestions.' " He eyed them meaningfully.
"Yet if we make similar demands of
fellow Humans it doesn't trigger their neural defense mechanism. So this new ability of ours
can't be perfectly identical to that of the Amplitur. There are differences.''
Tourmast spoke up. "I thought it was
strange when they acceded to my request to take a stroll outside the compound last week. We
Humans aren't supposed to show ourselves to the natives." He grinned in spite of
himself. "Makes
them jumpy.'' Other members of the group excitedly related similar experiences, though
these were far from universal. Not everyone had healed yet.
"If what you're suggesting is true,
Ranji, we should be able to do pretty much as we please with our hosts."
Ranji nodded. "Except that Humans won't
be affected, and if we aren't very careful we'll set off alarms. Asking the Massood for an
aircraft, for example, and having them provide it to us would alert the average
soldier that something was very definitely amiss. If we don't watch the number and degree of
our 'suggestions,' pretty soon the consistently peculiar and contradictory will
be tracked back to us. We're already on a kind of postoperative probation to see that
we make good Human beings."
"I'm a good Human being." Weenn was
strangling an imaginary victim. "I already want to kill every Amplitur I can get my hands
on." Suddenly his belligerence vanished, replaced by solemn contemplation.
"And I wouldn't mind finding my natural parents, either. If they're still
alive."
"Unlikely." Ranji's tone was
compassionate but unyielding. Cold reality suggested that all their natural
parents
were dead, having been replaced long ago by the Ashregan surrogates they all were
familiar with.
"If the Amplitur learn what has happened
to us, they will do their utmost to have us killed. Judging from the uneasy manner in
which the sentients of the Weave regard their Human allies, I wouldn't put it past
them to do the same. I have personal experience of that paranoia. As for our fellow Humans,
they don't understand themselves, so I would not expect them to understand what
has happened to us. Until we better comprehend the
consequences and ramifications we must keep this secret,
utilizing our new ability only when absolutely necessary.
"As a result
of Amplitur genetic engineering and subsequent Hivistahm
surgery we have become something new and different,
something the Teachers did not foresee. In that regard, all
their intricate intriguing has backfired on them. Instead of becoming their most
effective soldiers we've been transmogrified
into their worst nightmare: Humans
who possess the Amplitur ability to suggest. But we are still few. We have a
lot to learn about what's happened to
us, and we need time. For all any of us know, the talent may fade with age. Other factors we can't imagine
may affect it temporarily or
permanently. In the meantime we could easily be exterminated by fearful
enemies or friends." He let his
gaze rove the faces of his intent colleagues.
"We're going to have to be very careful."
"What I find
interesting," said one of the technicians, "is
that these neural connections have apparently grown back along entirely new
paths. You'd think at least some would have
regenerated according to their original Amplitur genetic
programming."
"I've been
thinking about that, too." Ranji paused. "It suggests to me the presence in the Human brain of some heretofore latent genetic command, as if programming was present but access to the computer denied. The Amplitur provided the
necessary access in the form of the engineered
neural nodule. When the connections they supplied are surgically interrupted, the brain provides
latent reconnection instructions of a different order.
"I've learned
that a large portion of the Human brain, our brain, is
not used. Perhaps the addition of the Amplitur nexus activates some previously dormant portion not due to, fully evolve for
another million years or so. After all, the nodule confers no inherent abilities itself. It hasn't given us the ability to communicate as the Amplitur themselves do, mind to mind. It's only an organic electrical switch.''
"That's all right," said
Tourmast, indicating the technician next to
him. "I don't want to know what he's thinking anyway." There was some nervous laughter.
"There might be other changes yet
to come," Weenn suggested.
"Anybody starts levitating, I'm first in line for instructions." He
was only half joking.
"If this is all as you say,"
the technician murmured, "then it means
that at least as far as cerebral structure is concerned, the Amplitur
and not the Ashregan or Massood are
Humankind's closest relatives. Maybe we should be allied with them after all and not the Weave."
That was a thought
which had not occurred to Ranji or anyone else, and it
froze the group in contemplative silence for several
minutes. Then Tourmast spoke up.
"No. Remember
what we were taught: biological verisimilitude and
appearance count for nothing. They counted for nothing when we thought we were
Ashregan and anxious to fight Humans, and they count for
nothing now. As Humans we have to fight the Amplitur because
of what they believe, and what they want to make us
believe. Not because of physiological similarities or
differences. The Lepar and the Sspari and the Hivistahm see the universe as we do. They believe in independence of thought and purpose like we
do. The Amplitur don't. As a Human I have no intention of being a part of their
damned 'Purpose.' Especially after
learning the truth of what they've done
to us." Murmurs of assent rose from those clustered close around him.
"What about
the others?" someone in the group asked.
"Yeah,"
wondered Weenn. "You forced the truth on us, Ranji, and we all but killed you for it because we didn't believe. How are we going to spread the news? How are we going to save the rest of our people here and back on Cossuut?"
"Continue to
be cooperative, grateful, and helpful," he replied. "Be careful to
make as few 'suggestions' as possible. Meanwhile
I'll be talking to the authorities here. I have some
ideas."
"They're not
going to let us go back to Cossuut the way they let you
stumble out of the jungle on Eirrosad," Tourmast insisted. "I don't see
them taking that kind of risk with so many
of us."
"Not to Cossuut," Ranji
admitted.
Despite intense
questioning, he would say no more.
He made his
suggestions with great care, speaking now to a
particular S'van, now to an influential Massood. His fellow Humans he avoided utterly, since they could not be similarly persuaded. He let no one help him, preferring to work alone. That
way if he failed or caused an alarm to be
raised, only he would be suspected.
As expected, strong
objections were raised when he finally presented
his proposal to Ulaluable's defense command. In support
of his intentions he pointed out that only Ms release on
Eirrosad, which at the time had been accompanied by
similar reticence on the part of his captors there, had
enabled him to liberate the twenty-five of his kind that
the Weave now held.
There was much animated discussion,
during which support for Ranji's position
came from unexpected quarters. From Massood and S'van he had previously
persuaded. Those who objected were puzzled by their colleagues' eager acquiescence, but to Ranji's relief their bemusement did not extend to suspicion.
It was therefore
reluctantly agreed that much as Ranji had been turned
loose on Eirrosad, his rehabilitated comrades would have
their Ashregan appearance temporarily restored, whereupon they would be armed
and set free in small groups to work their way back to various enemy units, in the
hope that they could, as had Ranji, bring in by
one means or another more of their kind to receive the benefits of restoring truth and humanizing
surgery.
If questioned they
were to explain that in the course of combat their squad
had been captured and sent to the capital for
internment, from whence they had managed to steal several floaters
and flee. Weave pursuit caused them to split
up in the hope that it would enable at least some to escape. There was nothing in the story to provoke
even an Amplitur into drawing an
analogy between their flight and Ranji's
earlier "escape" on Eirrosad.
Not everything
transpired as hoped or planned. Some of those who went
out were "saved" by pure Ashregan or Crigolit
forces and could do nothing but bide their time and await
reassignment. Others were more fortunate. Rescued by
roving squads composed of their own kind, they used
materials supplied by the Hivistahm and Humans to begin the slow, cautious
process of explanation and conversion. The adamantly reluctant they
were finally able to convince through demonstrations of
their ability to mentally influence non-Humans such as Ashregan
and Crigolit.
As the weeks wore
on and the battle for Ulaluable remained stalemated,
the Tightness of Ranji's course of action was proven by a returning trickle
of the Humanly disenfranchised under the
guidance of exhausted but triumphant
seers like Tourmast and Weenn. The forewarned Weave commanders of installations and regions targeted by the invaders who were thus visited immediately
notified Central Command, which sent
out heavily armed escorts to convey
the bewildered prodigals back to the capital.
There they were promptly subjected to
the corrective manipulations of the
efficient Hivistahm surgical team under the direct supervision of
First-of-Surgery, who had finally arrived from Omaphil, and an avalanche of irrefutable explanation from those who had already
undergone and survived the
liberating ordeal.
By the end of the Ulaluablian year, more
than half of the nearly two thousand
modified Human-Ashregan assigned to
the invading force had in this fashion been quietly and successfully
restored to their birthright and identity
as Human beings. Working slowly and patiently and utilizing their newfound skills with discretion, Ranji and his companions had thus far managed to avoid
piquing the interest of any enemy
officers. They were helped by the
fact that the invaders were suffering substantial losses among regular Ashregan
and Crigolit as well.
Not all could be saved. More than a
hundred had already perished or been
evacuated as a result of the fighting.
Ranji and his friends grieved for their lost relations even as they persisted in their work.
Ulaluable's
defenders had finally begun to dislodge the invaders from their forward positions
and to push them back toward the resupply
bases they had established and secured
upon landing. Attempts by the enemy to reinforce their situation met with intermittent success, as ships attempted to phase out of Underspace, disgorge their
heavily laden shuttles, and vanish into the safety of distorted physics before increasingly effective Weave orbital
defenses blasted them out of reality.
It was decided to
make an assault on the invaders' planetary headquarters,
located on the southern shore of a vast freshwater lake in
the north-central part of the continent, in hopes of taking
them by surprise and securing a decisive strategic advantage. It was a risky
undertaking and one which received
unqualifiedly enthusiastic support from the Wais, who continued to suffer spreading racial traumatization as a consequence of the invasion. Like
most of the Weave races they were
desperate to destroy the enemy, even
if it meant fighting to the last Massood and Human.
A large group of
restored Humans demanded the privilege of leading
the attack. At first the notion was resisted by Ulaluable's military command.
Though eager, to many the restored soldiers had yet to
conclusively prove the permanence of their conversions. What
better way, Ranji and his friends argued, than to lead a dangerous assault
against their former allies? Debate on the matter
raged within the multispecies Command. Eventually it was
decided in favor of the supplicants.
After all, certain members of that
Command insisted through their subsequent bemusement, they had done nothing
more than act favorably and responsibly on the numerous suggestions they had received.
It struck him as
strange to be carrying Human-designed weapons, though he
was familiar enough with them from years of studies on Cossuut. Just as it
still seemed unnatural to be fighting alongside Humans
and Massood instead of against them.
It was also
sobering to be treated as no better than any of the rest
of the troops in your battlegroup. Ranji and his companions
were used to being considered the elite. Now they formed
only one component of a much larger force whose average
soldier was presumed to be the equal of their best.
On the other hand,
it was a pleasant change to be able to melt into a larger mass of beings,
not always to be singled out physically as different from everyone else. Some of the officers knew the full story behind
the new squad that spoke fluent
Ashregan, but other than finding them interesting oddities the regular
troops readily accepted Ranji's people as
their own. Tourmast and Weenn and
the others quickly found themselves subsumed in an easy, informal camaraderie
that would have been inherently
excluded by the formalities of the Purpose.
There was something
to being Human, they soon decided, that rendered the prospect of
proximate battle more exhilarating than ever. Such feelings
were enhanced by the fact that they now had much more to fight for than an elegant philosophical abstract.
Like everyone else,
Saguio volunteered to participate, but this time Ranji insisted that his brother
stay behind. It didn't matter if one of them perished, but it might matter very much if the
knowledge Ranji had confided only to his brother vanished without being retained
for future study. Saguio protested but could not fault his brother's logic. He agreed to
remain in Usilayy.
Ulaluable Weave Command had consented
reluctantly to the single strike. If it failed to achieve its objective immediately, all
survivors were to pull out fast. Command was as yet unwilling to expose the restored
Humans, most of whom were still feeling the aftereffects of cosmetic surgery, to the risks
of an extended assault and possible subsequent recapture.
Physically, Ranji and his friends were
indistinguishable from the other Humans in the strike force. As none of them had
demonstrated any revisionist Ashregan tendencies since their restoration they had
been allowed to form fighting squads of their own and maintain their internal
lines
of command. It was decided it was not necessary yet to integrate them
into other Human units. Besides complicating internal communications,
separating the newcomers from their own kind could only enforce their sense of isolation. Better
for full integration to be achieved naturally instead of by directive. It was also
decided that they were likely to fight with greater confidence and skill if surrounded and
supported by familiar faces.
So Ranji was able to have Soratii and Weenn
and the rest
of his friends around him. Brusque Birachii had been saved, too, and
Cossinza, she of the liquid voice and lightning reflexes.
But too many of the deceived still slaved in
the service of enemy Purpose here and on distant Cossuut for any of the Restorees to
rest.
Their salvation would have to proceed one
step at a time, he told himself. First the diversion of the Ulalu-ablian invasion. Then
resurrection.
Cossinza hovered nearby, chatting with those
she commanded while experimenting with the novelty of the wide smile. Ranji was the target of many such,
for during the past months in Usilayy the two of them had grown close. There had been other women. One in particular he
remembered, from Omaphil. But Cossinza was of Cossuut and the other was
not, and in Cossinza he knew there was no deception.
It was good to have someone besides his brother to confide in.
But he continued to broker intimacy with caution, and did not tell
her everything. Not yet. For her part she respected
the hesitancy she sensed. Ranji's introspective nature was well known
to her and her friends. She liked him too much to try and intrude, knowing that
when he had something to confess she would be the first to hear of it.
The heavily armored transport sleds and their outriding sliders
roared northward at precarious speed, sometimes Jbarely skimming the surface of plains, hillsides, and lakes. In
four days they were beyond the range of ready reinforcements. If they were attacked before they reached their target,
Ranji knew, orders were to break off and return. Under such circumstances there would be no time to make insistent
suggestions to the contrary.
But the skies and horizon stayed clear of
all except startled local
fauna, and the tense strike group raced on toward
their objective.
Because of the extreme danger involved, every Human and Massood in
the group, including the sled crews, was a volunteer, of which there had been
no dearth once the proposal had been floated. The strike force was split half and half between Humans, including Ranji and his
friends, and Massood. A few unusually bold Hivistahm techs had
contributed their services, though, of course, not for combat. Their activity
would be confined to sled maintenance and
navigation.
Force tacticians hoped to slip at least ten percent of the small, highly skilled strike team inside the
enemy's defensive perimeter before they could fully mobilize to meet the attack.
Hopefully these troops would wreak sufficient havoc to turn the enemy's
attention inward, thus allowing the rest of
the force to collapse the perimeter at enough points to insure victory. At worst, they would inflict sufficient damage before pulling out to have made
the assault worthwhile.
First-of-Surgery and his staff raised what
objections they could, to no avail. Risking a valuable scientific resource like the Restored
for mere military purposes struck him and his colleagues as the height of
uncivilized absurdity. On Omaphil their opinion might well have prevailed, but
Ulaluable was a world under siege, where military needs took priority. Their
Wais hosts, who under more pacific circumstances would have agreed with
First-of-Surgery's position, voted against him.
Besides which the Restored were now
considered fully Human. As such, they had Human rights and could do as they pleased. If they
wanted to participate in scientific research, they were welcome to do so. It was
not the fault or responsibility of Military Command if what they wanted to do was fight.
Ranji was staring out one of the narrow sled
windows at
the manicured landscape of Ulaluable speeding past when Cossinza sat
down next to him, folding herself into a fixed piece of support foam. There were no
chairs on board
the transport. Only the foam, which adapted itself freely to a variety
of physiognomies. Thus Massood could rest comfortably next to their Human
counterparts, and Hivistahm alongside both.
At present they were traveling through high
desert, the sleds keeping low enough to kick sand and gravel into the air, unsettling
nonburrowing fauna and plants. Such disruption of their carefully nurtured natural
order would have displeased the Wais, but there were none aboard to bear witness to the
persistent disturbance.
"When Tourmast appeared to tell us what
had happened to you and the others we'd thought long dead, I was not alone in thinking
that the press of combat had driven him insane." She joined him in staring out
the window. "Even after he and those who'd returned with him showed us the
proof, I
still doubted. It was only when he informed us that he was operating under your
command that I began to believe. I've always thought you the best of us,
Ranji-aar. It's an opinion I shared with many.'' She put a comforting hand on his
shoulder. "I can't imagine what it must've been like being the first of us to
be exposed to the truth."
He continued to stare at the alien landscape
racing past before finally turning back to her. "Cossinza, do you feel
'Human'?" He studied her face: pale blue eyes, sharp but small nose, the wide,
thin-lipped mouth and prominent cheekbones—a flower seared but not scarred
by fire. Strange
to look upon a woman without spacious eye sockets or cranial ridges, with a
prominent nose and protruding ears. There was less, and yet there was more. Truly beauty was more than
bone deep.
She removed her hand and leaned back into the
foam. It
flexed to accommodate her form. "Sometimes I feel like I've always been
Human. It's hardest at night. In your dreams you tend to revert." Her eyes
focused on the sled's curved ceiling. "You remember growing up, training,
friends
and family. Then when you awaken you have to force yourself not to think of
them."
"I still wonder if our Ashregan parents
were willing participants in the deception or innocent dupes forcibly inducted into their
roles by the Amplitur. Some days I hope to find out. Other days I hope I never
do.'' That was a singular ineffable sadness all the Restored shared.
"We have to rely on each other
now." She shifted on the foam.
He nodded, glanced back at the window.
"You can hate the Amplitur for what they've done to us, but at the same time you have
to admire them for trying to defeat an enemy through genetics instead of on the
battlefield. It would have taken hundreds of years for their interbreeding
plan to
have had a debilitating effect on Humankind." He shook his head at the
presumption. "No Weave race, and certainly not us, has
that kind of patience. Except maybe i Turlog."
"I've never
seen a Turlog," said Cossinza. "From what I recall of my studies they're supposed to be pretty hideous to look upon,
and antisocial besides." She sat up in the foam and utilized her translator to address a Massood sub-officer
seated not far away. "You there! Have you ever seen a Turlog?"
"Only in
recordings," the Massood replied pleasantly. "The species is underpopulated."
“Would you know where to find one?''
"Not on
Ulaluable. You would have to go to their own" world, or one of the major Weave centers."
Cossinza nodded
understanding, then suggested almost playfully,
"We're both pretty thirsty. How about getting us something to drink?"
The Massood hesitated, gave them an odd
look, then rose and ambled off in the
direction of the on-board dispenser,
his light underarmor gleaming dully. Ranji remonstrated softly with his companion.
"You shouldn't
do things like that, Cossinza. It's through lack of respect that dangerous
secrets are revealed."
"Take it
easy." She smiled across at him. "Some of us aren't as skilled at
this suggesting business as you, Ranj. We need to practice."
"Practice on the enemy." He
was unmollified. "Not on allies. If we use our abilities too casually,
sooner or later some S'van is liable to
discern a pattern. I understand that
just about everything amuses them, but I don't think they'd laugh at
that."
She replied evenly.
"In a little while we're going to be killing, maybe be
killed in return. I didn't think it would matter so much."
"Try to be
more selective in the future." He was deliberately
cool.
Gunecvod reached
the dispenser and called for three containers of cold water. As the second
tumbler filled the thought about what had just occurred and struggled to make sense of it. His
upper lip curled, exposing sharp teeth. He did not feel certain enough to
broach his thoughts to any of his companions, but neither could he simply dismiss what had
happened as inexplicable and set it aside.
Unlike any others in his squad, he had many
years ago spent time as a prisoner of war on the contested world of Nura. More
remarkably still, in that time he had actually encountered one of the dread
Amplitur. It had been inspecting the facility where he and his fellow prisoners
had been
interned. Pausing before him, it had inclined both eyestalks in his
direction. To the day of his death he would be able to visualize those
protuberant, glistening orbs hovering close to his twitching face.
Then had come the probe. He'd stood helpless
before it,
vaguely aware of but unable to resist the intrusion, that gentle violation of
his innermost sanctity. For a while the Amplitur had explored his self, unable to
read his thoughts but quite capable of interpreting his reactions. Then it had withdrawn and moved
on. Other than a patina of unclean-liness which lingered for some time,
Gunecvod had incurred no harm as a result of the probe. It was something he would never
forget.
It was also something he had never expected
to experience
again.
Yet he had. Just now. There was no mistaking
it. Though mildly, indefinably different, it was sufficiently unmistakable to
prohibit confusion.
His first wild, mad thought was that an
Amplitur had somehow succeeded in disguising itself as a Human or Massood and slipping
onto the sled. Somehow that seemed a feat beyond the reach even of those
masters of bioengineering.
His attention returned to the man and woman
who had been
among those who had suffered as puppets of the Amplitur. They were conversing
among themselves, not looking
in his direction. He reviewed what he had just experienced, scrutinized the relevant circumstances.
If they were thirsty why did they not
fetch their own refreshment? Was there
something unseen wrong with their limbs
that they should make such a request of a Massood soldier? He had not wanted to comply, yet that was
precisely what he was doing. And why? Because he'd felt compelled to. Not out of friendship, or
understanding, or a desire to be of assistance. Out of a brief,
seemingly harmless compulsion.
He had served
alongside Humans for many years and was familiar with
their aspect. He could tell there was no tension in these
two. They reposed utterly relaxed in their surroundings. Could
they be unaware of what at their urging had just
transpired? It seemed unlikely. What had the Amplitur
done to them? What had they become?
Yet they and their
fellow Restorees had been cleared to rejoin their kind
by both Military and Science Command and further, to participate in the
forthcoming assault. Against that weight of official evidence he could throw only a transitory suspicion born of unforgettable
experience.
It didn't matter.
There was no misreading the sensation, no mistaking what
had just happened to him. The Humans had suggested and
he had responded. They had pushed.
Could any of the
other Restorees do it? He didn't know and felt it might be hazardous to try
and find out. From now on he would carry
with him the burden of dangerous knowledge.
He would have to watch his back, his movements, his very thoughts lest one of them suspect that they had been found out. Nor could he tell any of his
family or friends. They would not
believe him, and his accusation would
surely get back to those under suspicion. He suspected they might readily take steps to preserve their secret.
He feared the
Amplitur, but he feared Humans in possession of Amplitur
abilities far more.
It was all up to
him, until he could either find the means to prove his theories to others or
otherwise rectify the situation. He knew
that he had to do one or the other. The danger was real, real in a way only one who had suffered the probing of the Amplitur could appreciate.
Others might not understand. It had already been suggested on more than one occasion
that his years in captivity had rendered him slightly unbalanced, fit to soldier but
not to mate.
They were all wrong. His experience had left
him enlightened, not damaged. Now it fell upon him to put that enlightenment to use
for the goodness of his kind, for the ultimate benefit of all intelligent species.
If these mutations were allowed to spread they would constitute a danger to the Weave greater even than that
posed by the Amplitur. They had to be dealt with. If not by a benighted, ignorant authority, then by one who knew.
If necessary, by soldier Gunecvod acting
alone and for the good of all civilization, praise be to the Lineage!
But not now, not in this place. For now he
would have to exercise patience. So what he did was gather up the three filled tumblers
in his long fingers, still the convulsive twitching of his whiskers and lips, and
return to the pair, a pleasant expression cemented in place. If they wanted
to talk,
he would talk. If they wished to exchange jokes, he would joke with
them. He would bend the opportunity to his own needs, use it to learn as much about
them as he could. If they tried to push him again, he would not resist. Unless something made
them suspicious there would be no danger in succumbing to their suggestions, whereas if
he tried to resist there might.
Command did not suspect. Had these
Human-Ashregan been developed by the Amplitur so they could then be scattered throughout
an ignorant Weave to wreak destruction of unknown dimensions? But they were
going to attack the Amplitur's headquarters on Ulaluable. Maybe the entire invasion was
nothing more than an Amplitur deception, Gunecvod mused, an elaborate tactical
ruse designed solely to allow their Human puppets to "escape" and infiltrate Weave
forces.
The Amplitur had infinite patience. Perhaps
even their puppets were unaware of what was transpiring, were convinced that the
actions they had taken thus far to return to their species were the result of
their own discoveries and
free will. Perhaps
unsuspected mental commands had been implanted deep
within their engineered minds, designed to go off next
year, a hundred years, from now, when the Amplitur would make known their true
and secret intentions and reassert control over their
bewildered minions.
These before him
might very well fight hard to dislodge Ashregan and
Crigolit and Molitar from Ulaluable. And all the while equivocating Amplitur
would sit safely in their ships, watching
and silently applauding the success of their duplicitous efforts, sacrificing
their ignorant unknowing allies in
pursuit of some far more intimate, distant goal. It was a plan of great
subtlety.
Thanks be to the
Lineage that he, Gunecvod, had been clever and wise
enough to have discerned it.
This was
fortunate, because the man and woman did not, insofar as he was able to tell,
try to influence him again. Yet he never doubted,
never questioned what had happened, so lucid and powerful
had the single experience been.
Ranji and Cossinza
were glad of the Massood soldier's company. The need
to deal with a representative of another allied race
forced them to think of something besides incipient combat,
helped to keep their minds off potential unpleasantries.
Gunecvod found them good company, though
the woman was much more open and giving of
herself than the man. This served to
confirm what he had already suspected:
that the male was the more dangerous of the pair and would require closer attention. Other Restorees came and went, their furless faces flexing like
glutinous putty, their thoughts as
closed to him as the feral suppuration of their distinctive endocrinology. Throughout it all he maintained an engaging and salutary attitude, seeking
to add all he could to the mental
file he was assembling on each and
every one of them.
The sleds and sliders of the strike force
put on maximum acceleration as they went in low and hard. Defensive electronic firecontrols
barely had time to react to reports from querulous sensors, plot, aim, and fire
before the sleds were racing past, already beyond range of outer defenses. The
attackers needed to penetrate as far as possible before the full spectrum of the
invaders' weaponry could be brought to bear.
Several near hits rocked the armored sled.
Its companion off to the left was slowed by a missile, then fell out of the sky as it
intersected the path of a high-energy particle beam. At the speed it was traveling
it disintegrated as soon as it struck the unyielding ground, leaving behind a
trail of flame, twisted metal, scorched ceramics and plastics, and pieces of its
crew, democratically scattered across the gravel-laden surface.
The Massood pilot of Ranji's sled wove a
path through the intensifying fire, doing her best to make use of available natural cover.
It was no task for a predictable computer, not even one programmed with chaos logic. Fireballs and flaring energy beams singed the air
around the agile craft, not quite
making contact, not quite destroying.
The invaders had emplaced their installation
well, siting major structures against a towering sandstone cliff that restricted approach
from east and south. It would have been difficult to hit with aircraft or missiles,
and presumptuous
air-repulsion
vehicles were forced to run a gauntlet of defensive weaponry and sensors
located on surrounding buttes and hills.
The entire setup was a tribute to typical Crigolit planning and forethought.
In contrast, all
the attackers had on their side was boldness and surprise.
Initially, those served them quite well.
The surviving
sleds and their darting, nimble escorting sliders smashed
through the next line of defenses as the startled enemy
rushed to assemble its forces.
They were inside the perimeter. Ahead
lay sloping sheets of sprayed polymer, fronts for structures which sliced deep into the towering cliff face. There
were few windows and at ground level
only entrances cut to peculiar Crigolit
design. Explosives peeled aside reluctant doors as sleds slowed to land.
Troops fanned out
fast, able to race for predetermined objectives thanks
to intelligence supplied by the Restorees. Armed defenders
began to appear, slowing the assault.
Ranji's group headed for the central
communications complex. Years ago he'd assaulted a similar target, on Koba. Only then he had been fighting alongside
Ashregan, not Human beings. He who so
desperately sought communication
and understanding seemed fated to always be disrupting it.
He had no time to
remark on the irony: he was too busy trying to stay alive.
Entering through a
two-story-high gap their sled's weaponry had blown in
the outer wall, they soon encountered resistance. The
combined Human-Massood force swept it aside. In some
cases the Restorees were able to dupe armed Ashregan into surrendering by addressing
them in their own tongue, without the aid
of translators. In others and when
there were no Massood around, Ranji's colleagues "suggested"
that their opponents put down their arms. They
did so, with gratifying if not always universal results.
Rushing past the outlying portions of
the installation deeper into the mountain,
they emerged into a vast supply staging
complex. Armed but empty floaters sat in triple ranks, waiting to be fueled and crewed.
While some of the
attackers began destroying the irreplaceable transport vehicles, Ranji led his
own squad onward, still hoping to locate the communications nerve center. Their advance was periodically stalled by
brief but intense firefights.
In order to combat
the persistent but isolated and disorganized
defenders, Ranji's squad fragmented for flanking
purposes, coming together to engulf each pocket of resistance before spreading out again to make contact with those behind.
Weenn suddenly
appeared. He was breathing hard and looked concerned.
"We're having some trouble over on the other
side."
"What kind of trouble?" Ranji
asked him as they crouched behind a huge
gray Segunian packing cone.
The sub-officer's
expression twisted. "It's the Massood. One tried to shoot
her squad leader and another tried to shoot himself. We got them both restrained,
but barely. When we tried to find out what was going on,
they both went comatose on us."
The slim, muscular
shadow that was Cossinza hovered nearby, covering
the two men as they conversed. "What's he talking
about?'' Her eyes never left the sighting predictor of her rifle.
"One case of combat madness I could
allow for, but not two. They were
influenced." Fighting echoed throughout
the complex, explosions reverberating, weapons hissing in the enclosed spaces beneath the mountain. He rose
alongside her and gazed speculatively into the depths of the staging area.
"There are Amplitur here."
Weenn nodded
somberly. "The other Massood figured that out pretty
quick.''
"Tell our
people to keep a close watch on them and on the Hivistahm sled
techs. They may have to pull back and leave the rest of
the fighting in here to us."
"They realize that," Weenn
told him, "but they want, to try and
stick it out. Their understanding of the danger is balanced by their desire to kill Amplitur. None of them have ever even seen one. They look on it as a real
potential coup ... if
they can bring it off without getting their brains turned inside out in the trying."
Ranji chewed his
lower lip. "We can't order them out. The other squads
must be making real progress for one of the Teach . . . one of the Amplitur to
risk itself in combat. It wouldn't do so unless it had no
choice. That means there are no back exits to this complex.
It's trapped in here.
"You and
Tourmast and the others with experience stick close to
the Massood. If they show signs of being pushed, use your own
abilities to push back. Knock 'em out if you have to. When this is over we'll
have some allies with terrific headaches,
but at least they'll still be alive."
Weenn looked
uncertain. "Won't they suspect?"
"I don't think so. With their
thoughts and intentions being jostled in so
many different directions at once they won't
have time to sort through the confusion. Later they'll ascribe their
feelings to Amplitur manipulation under combat conditions. In any case we have
no choice. We can't let the Amplitur
influence our allies at will."
The sub-officer
nodded understanding and hurried to rejoin his own
troops.
Despite being
fully restored, despite everything Ranji had learned and experienced, it was hard
to set aside a lifetime of conditioning. The
childhood awe in which he and his
friends had held the Teachers lingered in his emotions if not his mind.
It wasn't so very long ago that he had stood with pride before his parents and
relations in the great hall of Kizzmat,
waiting to receive honors from the Teachers themselves. So it was that he
advanced uneasily knowing that one
of the Amplitur was near. Cossinza
was no less edgy.
Defenders and
attackers advanced and retreated within the staging area,
shooting and screaming imprecations and defiance,
transforming the enclosed space into a fiery farrago of
death and confusion in which it was difficult to tell friend from foe despite the aid of advanced technology. Occasionally confused but ever courageous, the Massood stumbled forward. It seemed to some among them that the Amplitur were
not so effective now as they had been when first their
influence had been felt. The evident waning of this
particularly insidious threat impelled the tall warriors to greater effort. This
in turn further inspired the Humans who fought
alongside them.
Both the battle for
control of the staging area and communications complex and the one for the
minds of the relentless Massood were waged
simultaneously. The small group of
restored Humans monitored both. For the Amplitur, Ranji mused, confusion must
be near complete.
Certainly that was
the case for Sigh-moving-Fast. Though to its Ashregan
escort the Teacher appeared calm and in complete control of
the situation, inwardly their leader was appalled and
stunned by what was sensed.
It seemed that individual Massood
soldiers were responding readily to suggestion, but after moving on in search of others to push and then reaching back
to check on those initially
persuaded Sigh-moving-Fast was shocked to
discover that their original belligerence had reasserted itself. From this irrefutable and disconcerting
conclusions could be drawn.
Something or
someone was countermanding his influence.
That unique mind
reached out, probing the maelstrom of conflicting
thought impulses that energized the room far more
thoroughly than could mere primitive weaponry. The notion
of a renegade Amplitur was never considered. One might as well anticipate a
reversal of entropy.
The Weave had been
studying the Amplitur for hundreds of years. Had they finally made
their long-hoped-for scientific breakthrough and succeeded
in duplicating the Amplitur ability to touch minds via
physical instrumentation? If so, then Amplitur
counterintelligence was in worse shape than anyone had imagined, for no
inkling of any such development had recently been brought to the attention of the
ever-alert servants of the Purpose.
Yet what other explanation could there be?
Crigolit and Ashregan kept watch, weapons
ready to fend
off any attack as they maintained a protective mobile barrier around the
single Amplitur. The Teacher had joined the defense of the staging area because it
was the only portion of the headquarters complex where the enemy had penetrated
dangerously far. If they could drive them out, it would unbalance and possibly
signal an end to the entire Weave assault. Hence the willingness, yea, even of a Teacher to expose
its august person to the possibility of physical harm. Particularly in such close
quarters, a little mental persuasion was worth many guns.
Sigh-moving-Fast tried without success to
isolate the source of reactionary influence. To do so effectively and quickly the presence
of two additional colleagues was demanded. None were presently available, as
they were currently engaged
in directing the installation's overall defense.
Therefore, the burden of discovering the source of the unexpected interference fell squarely upon Sigh-moving-Fast.
Despite the concern of the mixed-species
escort, the Teacher urged them onward, that exceptional mind relentlessly seeking,
hoping by accident if not intent to encounter and confront the mystery. Substantial
physical and mental differences notwithstanding, Crigolit and Ashregan responded instantly
to their leader's orders, forming a seamless unit that gouged a distinctive
salient out of the attackers' line, advancing and retreating as though they were all of one mind.
Sigh-moving-Fast's original shock was as
nothing compared to the emotions that shook the cephalopodian quadruped when the
source of countervaling influence was finally located. It emanated not from some
intricate apotheosis of Weave technology but from several of the advancing Human soldiers!
A greater horror could not be envisioned.
Alarmed but desperate for elucidating confrontation,
the Amplitur
bade its anxious escort remain behind, lest their presence induce this
special quarry to retreat before vital information could be obtained. Of all the
minds working to countermand Amplitur influence, one was noticeably more penetrating and
persuasive than the rest, and it was on those thoughts that Sigh-moving-Fast
attempted to focus.
Having been slowed by determined resistance, the Weave attack fragmented. It enabled the Teacher to
advance without fear of
intersecting a large body of enemy troops.
By the same token its own path of retreat was far from assured. It was a situation that called for
some daring. Understanding of the
phenomenon was worth more than
control of Ulaluable itself, and without proof even the least sanguine
colleagues would be reluctant to believe.
Sigh-moving-Fast could scarce credit its own senses.
Could the mind which was so effectively if
crudely affecting the thinking of hostile Massood also influence Crigolit, or Ashregan?
Sigh-moving-Fast had no way of knowing, but continued to advance quite conscious of how much was at stake.
It was vital to the Purpose that at least one such specimen be obtained.
When the disagreeable alien consciousness
seemed on the verge of merging with its own, the Amplitur gingerly extended a hesitant
mental query. Sigh-moving-Fast knew that if the target was truly Human, the biped's ill-understood neurological defense mechanism might
strike back at the probe with
paralyzing fury. But no other way could
be envisioned. Dangerous or not, this had to be attempted. Without contact there could be no enlightenment. The Teacher extended.
Touched.
Contact engendered no cataclysmic response.
Ravening primate
insanity did not erupt outward to overwhelm and destroy. A tense-Sigh-moving-Fast was
calmly elated. ThisHuman and a few like it could mind-touch, but as a consequence of
developing that capability it seemed they could no longer instinctively strike back
at what they themselves had acquired. In that respect they were as neurologically
defenseless
as the carefully bioengineered Human-Ashregan soldiers of Cossuut.
At the light-speed of awful realization the
import of unpleasant
coincidence abruptly replaced the fear in Sigh-moving-Fast's mind.
At present it was no more than a preliminary
supposition,
but one that could not be dismissed out of hand. It was widely known
that a distressingly large number of the special soldiers from Cossuut had been lost
in the battle for Ulaluable. It was not impossible that some had survived death. Certain
implications of this line of reasoning were most unpleasant. A specimen and
answers were demanded—preferably both.
Though skills and ability of long standing
were utilized, it was clear that the Human was immune to their influence, just as it was clear
that it was unable to retaliate via the fearful reflex all its kind were supposed to
possess. This contradiction was full of threat and promise.
Emboldened by continued consciousness, the
Amplitur attempted to probe further. Surely there were limits to the depths it
could push.
Ranji stiffened slightly and found himself
placing his rifle on the floor. Next to him Cossinza was doing the same. Both straightened and
took several steps backward.
"Ranji?" she stammered. "You
feel it, too?"
"Amplitur," he muttered without
hesitation. "Trying to get inside." He squeezed his eyes shut until
tears started from the corners. When he opened them again he found he was able to
retrace his steps and recover his weapon. With his help she was able to do likewise.
"It's like a commanding headache."
She winced. "It hurts, Ranji. I can't make it go away."
"Concentrate on something else," he
urged her. "Anything else. Try to push yourself the
same as you'd push a Massood or Hivistahm. You have to.
Because of Amplitur bioengineering our nervous systems
don't have the ability to fight back. You have to resist with your mind." He twitched visibly as a particularly strong probe
ventured the suggestion that he stick
the muzzle of his weapon in his mouth.
If he could resist with his mind, he
thought angrily, perhaps he could strike
back the same way.
The Amplitur
stumbled, nearly losing its balance, all four legs gone suddenly shaky as the
incoming mental blast interrupted the
orderly flow of electrical impulses in its brain. Two nearby Crigolit
gazed horrified at the half-crumpled
Teacher, but Sigh-moving-Fast hastened to inform them that all was well. Thus reassured, they chose to advance to their right, seeking the enemy.
Momentarily left to
itself amid grounded vehicles and mountains of
supplies, the stunned Amplitur struggled to equiponderate its
equilibrium. It was not concerned by its momentary isolation; the Amplitur were
quite self-contained, and used to being
alone.
It was both shocked and repelled by what
had happened. The specimen had struck back. Not in the blind, reflexive fashion of its kind but much as another
Amplitur would have. It was a unique
development, replete for Sigh-moving-Fast with a deliciously horrific
fascination enhanced by the drug of unprecedence. There were no guidelines for what to do next. Procedure would
perforce have to be invented from
moment to moment.
Using the
tentacles on either side of its mouth, the Amplitur steadied itself. Now that
its awareness had been raised it would not
again be so easily influenced. While briefly
effective, the force of the push had been diffused due to a concomitant
lack of direction. Its wielder had demonstrated
power but not sensitivity, strength but not skill. Talent without experience.
Intrigued beyond
caution, Sigh-moving-Fast continued to move forward, heedless of any personal
danger. The Teacher kept probing, searching, trying to acquire a feel for attitudes and
sensations that finally convinced it of the truth it had suspected: the projective
Humans, or at least the pair it was in contact with, were indeed renegades from the Cossuut
project. The weight of evidence had finally passed the point of denial.
But how? What had changed them so, what
within them had been altered to such an inconceivable degree? Their Ashregan orientation
and their desire to serve the Purpose had apparently been destroyed, to be
replaced with a restoration of their Humanity . . . and something else.
Something
more. Explanations had to be obtained.
If control, however tenuous, could be
established over such gifted individuals, much might become possible. Properly guided and
directed, a Human who could push, could suggest, would be far more valuable
than one simply educated to
believe it was Ashregan. Slipped back in among
their own kind they could wield influence enough to advance the cause of the
Purpose by hundreds of years.
From the first moment of contact
Sigh-moving-Fast had sensed that great possibilities were in the offing.
Awareness
induced in the clumsy, bulky form a permeating well-ness. Resolve was
strengthened.
At approximately that time a new, third
mental presence impinged on Sigh-moving-Fast's consciousness: a Mas-sood, hyper with
xenocidal ferocity. What startled the Amplitur to the point at which it was
necessary to pause and analyze was that the Massood's hostility was directed not toward any of the
enemy but at the Humans around him, and in particular the two Humans with whom Sigh-moving-Fast was
already in contact.
Astonishingly, therefore, the modified male
and female were being stalked by enemy and ally alike. Why this should be so could
not be imagined. Anxiously seeking answers, the Teacher had unearthed only
another question.
The Amplitur had survived and prospered by
bending evolution
itself to their needs. Sigh-moving-Fast did not hesitate to reach out and touch the
mind of the new arrival, inducing synapses to fire in a desired pattern. There was
hesitation on the part of the Massood, then a resumption of movement.
While quite capable of proceeding alone, Sigh-moving-Fast was perfectly
happy to make use of whatever tools might happen to proffer themselves.
Gunecvod ducked behind a towering ceramic
cylinder the color of rotting teeth. Inclining his lanky six-foot-six-inch frame slightly to
the right, he was able to see the two Humans where they crouched behind cover of
their own. Around him the vast staging chamber was still afire with death and
destruction.
Several other preoccupied Massood darted
forward to the left and behind him. At the moment they and the two Humans were the only
other ones in sight.
His quarry had not observed his approach.
Whiskers twitched
violently as his lips drew back to expose his full complement of teeth.
Now was the moment to end the threat to civilization, to protect his own kind! Raising
his rifle,
he took careful aim at the female, letting the automatic sight lock in
on the back of her skull.
He hesitated.
Something was not right. The Humans looked
alert, but not as though they were keeping watch for advancing enemy. They held their
weapons casually, almost indifferently. Yet their attitudes were completely
focused. It was not only unnatural and unsoldierly, based on all that Gunecvod had observed
of the primates previously; it was quite inHuman.
The female staggered, clasping her head in
both hands. Gunecvod growled in astonishment as her companion laid his weapon aside and moved to embrace
her comfortingly. His fingers quivered near the trigger as he temporarily disengaged the sight
Sock. What was going on here?
Until he found out it might be better simply
to wound, to
incapacitate them. The three of them were isolated in this corner of the staging chamber. He would have time for hasty but effective interrogation. His knowledge of Human physiology would permit that.
He raised his rifle a second time. As he
did so fresh thoughts rippled unbidden
through his mind. Was he going mad?
The threat needed to be terminated, not studied. He was in a combat situation, not a lab. He wondered
at his hesitation, at the second
thoughts.
He was certain the
Humans were not the source of his confusion. There
was no guile in their indifference. They were truly unaware
of his presence, much less his resolve. Why then this
sudden faltering? His thoughts were at war with his
intentions, and the result was most disturbing.
Trembling with the effort it required,
he stepped out from behind the cylinder and
advanced slowly. His spasms and
contortions were not the product of normal Massood hyperactivity. The rifle's muzzle swung through
wild arcs, as if it had taken on a
life of its own. Gunecvod gave every appearance
of a creature fighting desperately for control of its own neuromuscular system.
Out of the corner of an eye Ranji saw
the Massood approach. He turned, a startled
expression slowly spreading across his face as he watched the swaying soldier
aim his rifle.
As Gunecvod touched
the trigger a flurry of tiny contradictions seemed
to explode inside his brain, blurring his determination
along with his vision. The shot went wild.
Cossinza was right behind Ranji as he
dove between stacks of metal tubes. She was not quite quick enough. The second energy bolt struck her hip and was
only partly dissipated by her light
armor. She didn't collapse so much as
sit down heavily.
He'd only wounded
her, Gunecvod saw. Excellent! decreed one part of
his brain. Horribly inadequate, insisted another. Grabbing his forehead as if he
could somehow squeeze out the confusion
that was tearing him apart, the snarling soldier fired again in the male's
direction.
The shot struck nowhere near the
retreating Ranji.
Warily hefting his sidearm, he turned up the
amplification on his translator.
"Soldier, are you out of your mind?
Have you forgotten your Lineage? I'm Special Staff Officer Ranji-aar, temporarily assigned to
the 84th HS battlegroup!"
"I know who you are!" the
Massood's translator roared. It was loud, but not as loud as the pain in his head. He
staggered
but stayed erect. "I know all about you!"
Ranji was not very familiar with Massood
mannerisms, but it was clear enough that this particular individual was unbalanced. Right now
the sole objective must be to distract him and draw him away from the injured
Cossinza.
"We're Human! We're your friends, your
allies."
The Massood bared sharp teeth, resisting the
pounding in
his skull as he scanned his surroundings. "Not you, Ranji-aar! Not you
and your mutant friends! You have to die, all of you. You are too dangerous to
let live. You may have fooled everyone else, but not I, not Gunecvod! I know you for what
you are, offspring of the Amplitur. I will not let you play with my mind. I defy
you!" Cossinza flattened herself against the floor and covered her head as
the
soldier fired blindly into the stacks of supplies and equipment, his rifle
crackling.
"You're crazy!" Ranji kept moving
as he spoke.
Gunecvod whirled and scorched the floor where
his quarry had been standing an instant earlier. Wheezing Massood laughter
bubbled from his throat.
"I think not. I know what you can do
because you've done it to me. The water. Remember the water!" He fired again, obliterating
a stack of lubricating injectors. Alien stink stained the air.
"Even if you're not imagining things,
what does it matter?" Ranji yelled from cover. "We're Human, we're your allies!"
Gunecvod turned slowly, searching. "Are
you? I do not know what you are. I know only what you can do, and that cannot be
allowed. Cannot! You have to die. All of you have to die."
Abruptly Ranji realized what must have
happened. "Listen to me, Gunecvod of
the Massood! This isn't you thinking, these aren't your thoughts. I know
that there's an Amplitur close by. That's who wants us dead. That's why you're acting like this!"
Gunecvod stood
swaying, blinking uneasily. The Human was trying to
trick him. The decisions he'd reached had been arrived at well beyond the
range of Amplitur influence. What;/one of
them was nearby? It didn't matter.
Certainly the creature would delight in seeing one ally kill another . .
. but he'd determined that these modified Humans were not allies, could not be
allowed to live. If that put him on the side
of the Amplitur, it was only temporary
and coincidental . . . wasn't it? He reached up and pressed long fingers
against the side of his skull. Kill, wound only, support . . . there was too
much going on inside his brain. Cognitive
space was limited, perception was
limited, reality was far too open to speculation.
What was happening to him? Which of his
thoughts were his, which those of the
modified Human, which those of the
Amplitur? They were crowding him out, these irresistibly subtle deep probers, shoving the mere proprietor of
the mental field of battle aside. When they had concluded their contest and
one had emerged the master of persuasion, would there be anything left of
Gunecvod? Truth eluded him like a fast-moving
insect.
A cross between a
scream and a sob emerged from his trembling mouth.
His nose twitched uncontrollably, and spittle dripped
from the lower jaw.
Taking a
calculated chance, Ranji slowly rose from behind the replacement landing skid
he'd been using for cover.
"Look at me,
Gunecvod of the Massood. I'm Human. I'm your friend.
It's the Amplitur who's putting these evil thoughts in your head."
"No!" The end of the rifle
gyrated. "No, I made up my mind before this! My own mind. I reached conclusions.
I vowed ... I ..."
"There are
only a few of us." Ranji stood ready to dive behind the
protective skid again if the muzzle of the weapon
rose any higher. "I won't deny that we can do . . . certain things. That doesn't make us any
less an ally of the Massood. Are you
so sure that we're dangerous to you? Are you completely convinced? Think,
Gunecvod! We could be the critical
link in the ultimate destruction of the Amplitur. In saving your own people from the Purpose. Don't throw that chance away. Who are you
to make a decision of that scope?''
"Who am
I?" Gunecvod blinked as he attempted to focus
painful consideration on the suddenly confusing subject. "I am
... I am .. ."
It was true. He was
only a simple soldier. Not a S'van, not a Turlog. An
ordinary warrior of unspectacular lineage.
Was that movement
behind him? He whirled, searching wildly for bulging
eyes on weaving stalks, for a large, soft body armed with questing tentacles and
irresistible thoughts. Alone; he was so alone.
With his wavering determination, with his cataclysmic thoughts.
The Human female
lay nearby, half-paralyzed by his weapon. He took a
wavering step toward her. "I ... I am
sorry. I do not understand, I didn't ..."
She looked up at
him, anxiety and compassion colliding in her expression.
"I understand. You didn't know what you were doing. It's all right."
She looked sharply to her left. "There is an
Amplitur here."
Suddenly he was
very calm. He knew, with the clarity of perfect certainty, exactly what it was
he had to do. He raised the muzzle of his rifle. Behind him,
a reluctant Ranji drew his sidearm and aimed.
As Cossinza
screamed good soldier Gunecvod gripped the muzzle of his weapon in his teeth
and, as a warm and welcoming peace took possession of
him, thumbed the trigger.
She was still
staring at the smoking body when Ranji knelt beside her.
' 'I didn't mean for him to do that. I didn't mean for
that to happen. When I reached out to him I was just trying to make him feel
better, to ease the pain that was
tormenting him and making him act this way.''
He helped her find
a place to sit up. "Meanwhile I was pushing him to
withdraw and the Amplitur was pushing him to shoot, and
in the midst of all that you hit him with a double dose of sympathy and
understanding, the one thing he wasn't
expecting and didn't know how to handle. The contradiction between what he started out to do and what he was feeling from you was too much for
him. He couldn't take it anymore." He glanced in the corpse's direction.
' 'I guess he was
tired of arguing with himself, of trying to decide which
were his thoughts and which were being imposed from outside. So he resolved it
the easy way. Damn. This wasn't what I wanted." He rose to survey their surroundings.
"You need
medical attention. This far out in front I'd rather not use a communicator.
Might be picked up and targeted by the other side." He
eyed her speculatively. "I could carry
you."
She shook her head.
"Fighting's moved deeper into the mountain. Hand me
my rifle." He did so and she cradled it in her lap.
"You can find help a lot faster without me. I'll be all right here."
"Sure?"
She managed a wan
smile. "Just don't stop for a sandwich on the way back.''
He nodded, turned, and started off
toward what he hoped was the center of the
advancing Weave force.
Twenty strides and several thoughts
later he rounded a corner . . . and there
it was. A glistening, glutinous shape resembling a shift loader encased in
amber. One eyestalk and one
quadruple-digited tentacle swung lazily toward him. Horny mouthparts clacked rhythmically while iridescent
blobs of color pulsed and contracted within the smooth epidermis, chromatic indicators of their progenitor's emotional state.
Once it had been an
object of respect; indeed, veneration. A Teacher. Now it was as alien to
him as a living creature could be. In place
of the visceral hatred that veneered
his spirit old memories, old teachings, old admiration threatened to overwhelm him.
He blinked,
smiling to himself. Cold realization burst the narcotizing
bubble of nostalgia.
You move fast, he thought, but that won't work on me. Not now. Not anymore. I'm ready for you. My whole life has been spent preparing for this.
Having identified
Ranji as one of those unsettling modified Cossuutian
Humans capable of pushing, the Amplitur followed its
reflexive defensive reaction with more subtle suggestions. Why did Ranji fight
so hard to deny his heritage? Why not allow the pain to be
banished? Follow and return. Abandon this foolishness, the
confusion that was tormenting him. Return to the peace of the Purpose. The harmonizing, calming, reassuring tranquillity of the Purpose.
Ranji felt as if someone were trying to
stuff his head full of thick, cottony
insulation, to muffle not only sound but
thought. He swayed slightly but held his ground, neither advancing nor retreating. Cossinza needed
medical attention. A moment ago that single thought had commanded his actions. Now it was fusing with a pastel
mental bubble as inconclusive as a
drunken sunset, its importance muted by unanticipated indecision. He felt he
would need all the concentration he could muster, every iota of energy, simply to move his limbs of his own volition.
How had this
happened, Sigh-moving-Fast wondered? Where had the
great experiment failed, and whence this extraordinary and
utterly unexpected biological development? Of one thing
there was certainty: this remarkable individual had to be obtained for study,
alive and intact. Alongside that the taking of Ulaluable faded
into insignificance.
The Human appeared
poised to flee. While simultaneously reaching, pushing, cajoling with
its mind, the Amplitur spoke aloud,
utilizing the translator positioned beneath
its mouthparts. Anything to hold the biped within range.
"Stop! I know
what you are, Human. You must come with me."
A hesitant Ranji slowly shook his head,
a gesture the Amplitur sadly recognized as
Human and not Ashregan. "My
companion is injured and needs help."
"Come with
me," said the Amplitur soothingly. "Medical assistance will be provided, wellness guaranteed."
"The kind of
wellness you brought to the real world of my birth? No thanks." He was
smiling now. Aware of what the Amplitur was
trying to do, he was able to resist, brush it aside, fight it off.
"You can't do anything to me or mine
anymore. Your experiment is a failure. We're going to beat you, you
know. Maybe not in my lifetime, maybe not in
my children's, but the end is inevitable."
"All that is inevitable is the
triumph of the Purpose." The Amplitur sounded tired. "Do you not
realize that when they learn of your
capabilities your own allies will annihilate you? Just as the single Massood
intended?"
"This is all still new to us and we
were lazy. That's what made the soldier suspect. It won't happen again. We'll be careful."
"Be careful as you will; such power
cannot be concealed forever. I implore
you: share what you have become,
share your great and accidental gift, with those who best understand its import. We can teach you, show
you how properly to make use of it. You and your kind can still be part of the Purpose. A vital part."
"No thanks. I
don't want to be a part of anything anymore, except
Humanity and eventually a family. Keep your damned Purpose. I
prefer independence. I prefer Humanity. I prefer me.''
"That is unfortunate.
You and those like you are dangerous. You must be studied, appropriately supervised, and if that is not possible, contained."
"Sorry. Some
of us are out of the cage you built for us, and we're not going back in. You can't
stop me. If you could I'd be following you
meekly back to your lines right now."
"You are
wrong." The Amplitur reached into the pouch that was
slung between its head and forelegs and extracted a small angular plastic shape. Ranji couldn't keep himself from staring.
"What is an Amplitur,
the self-proclaimed epitome of higher civilization, doing with a gun''
"I am not
sure. This is quite an anomaly, is it not? But the gun is real. It feels real to
me. If I am compelled to use it the effects
will be real to you. So you see, you are after all my prisoner."
"You won't use that on me,"
Ranji observed firmly. "You're not
capable of it."
The Amplitur
pointed the pistol at a stack of small oblong crates and fired. The crates
exploded.
"You know
that my eyesight is excellent. It is equal to my resolve.
You will come with me voluntarily or if need be I will
destroy your limbs and drag you."
"This is very un-Teacherlike
behavior," Ranji commented, trying to
determine his next move.
"These are
very unusual circumstances. Extensive mental discipline
and training allows me to temporarily subvert those natural inhibitions which would paralyze a Hivistahrn or T'returian caught in a similar situation. Externally I realize that my actions verge on the unstable, yet through the Purpose I am able to overcome this. Presently I am functioning within a self-induced psychosis.
"The actual
methodology of the cerebroethical gymnastics required to
accomplish this remarkable feat need not concern you. Concentrate instead on
the weapon and the danger to your person, and respond
appropriately to my instructions."
Ranji eyed the
gun, thinking hard. "I'm not going anywhere without Cossinza."
"By the
Wellness, bring her. I calculate that you possess the
necessary physical attributes and the distance is not far. I promise you that she will receive immediate and expert medical attention."
Could he make it to
cover? How much of the Amplitur's threat was backed by resolve and how
much was bluff? Judging from the brief demonstration, the tiny gun was powerful
enough to blow his legs off at the knees. Of course,
the Amplitur could regenerate them later, but that didn't make the prospect any
less pleasant.
In any civilized
being thought must precede action. The homily was
nonetheless applicable for all that it was Teacher
training. Ranji put up his hands.
"All right. I'll go with you.
Anything to help Cossinza. "
"Now that," said the Amplitur
as it gestured with the gun-wielding
tentacle, "is a sensible response."
Ranji approached
the Teacher. "Have any of you ever remarked on the cyclical nature of your
reasoning? 'The Purpose is
everything, so anything can be used to justify the Purpose.' "
"Humankind is a young race, and
therefore prone to oversimplification. But
I have great confidence. With proper education you will mature."
"What you call education I've
learned through bitter revelation is
something else. You utilize the same tortured logic to cripple semantics as you do independent thought.''
"Both of you, freeze!"
Eyes on stalks and
eyes in sockets looked leftward. A single Human soldier stood behind a
loading ramp, his heavy cassion rifle
trained in their direction. He was male, young, confused, and scared. The bad combination froze Ranji immediately.
The heavily armed
youth was staring wide-eyed through his visor at the Amplitur. "I heard
about the squids. I studied 'em. But I
swear to Gaea I never thought I'd see one in person."
A field soldier's thought processes are
necessarily straightforward. To him the
relative positions and spatial relationships of gun, tentacle, and hands were
all the explanation the tableaux before him required. He addressed Ranji without taking his eyes off the Amplitur.
"Are you all right, sir?"
Ranji turned
slowly. "No problem."
"You there,
thing. You're my prisoner. Put down your weapon." His finger was taut on the
rifle's trigger, the muzzle focused
unswervingly between the two eyestalks.
Sigh-moving-Fast
hesitated, trying to apportion attention between the
mature Human and the young warrior. Two subtentacular
digits tensed on the firing mechanism of the angular
pistol.
Ranji saw. Too far
to jump. His stomach contracted to a small, hard
ball.
"You're just in time,
Tourmast," he said quickly. "It knows
all about us."
Instantly the
Amplitur's mental focus shifted fully from the prisoner to the newcomer, hoping to
mute hostile thoughts and induce the Restoree to lay his rifle aside. If necessary it would
try to push first one, then the other. At worst, if the soldier started to fire
then Sigh-moving-Fast could still react rapidly enough to kill one if not both
of them.
A forceful probe impinged on the soldier's mind.
It brought forth a cataclysmic shriek of
raw, uncontrolled energy, a concentrated eruption of fear, horror, loathing, and
primitive primate hatred. The Amplitur shook violently. All four legs gave way
simultaneously and it collapsed, managing to get off a single shot before blacking out. The
pistol's explosive shell blew a hole in the staging chamber's distant ceiling.
Startled, the soldier had also fired once,
missing badly. Now he leaned up against a fuel cell of Segunian design, his rifle dangling
from one hand as he flipped up his armor visor with one hand and pressed against his
forehead with the other. Sweat poured through his fingers.
Ranji had thrown himself to the floor. After
checking to make sure he hadn't been hit, he rose and approached the flaccid body of
the Teacher. Limp, rubbery tentacle-tips yielded control of the handgun.
Walking up to the fuel cell, he put a
comforting arm around the younger man's shoulders.
"Shit." The soldier shakily set
his rifle aside and cradled his head in both hands.
"Bad?" Ranji inquired
solicitously.
"Going away now." The younger man
took several measured deep
breaths. "I heard about that, too." He nodded in the Amplitur's direction. ' 'Not going anywhere soon, is it?"
"Not for a while, no."
"Good." He shuddered slightly at
the memory of it. The sensation was slipping away like foam on a befouled tide. "Creepy,
when it tries to get inside your mind like that. Feels . . . unclean. Like the most
embarrassing thing that's ever happened to you blown up a thousand times bigger for everyone
to see. Didn't it know something like this would happen if it tried that?''
Ranji regarded the
slack, comatose form. "It thought you were something else."
The soldier's gaze
narrowed. "Something else? And who's this
Tourmast character?"
"Someone else.
Why don't you take charge of our prisoner here?"
"What, me?"
"Amplitur
prisoners are pretty rare. You'll probably get a promotion out of it, maybe even
a commendation." Ranji looked past him. "Where's the rest of your
unit? I've got an injured colleague and I'd
rather .not use a communicator to
call for help this near to enemy hostiles."
"They should
be over that way, sir." The soldier adjusted the communicator built into his
visor. "Enemy's been pushed back pretty
far. I think we're safe in calling in."
Ranji considered,
then nodded. "I'll rely on your judgment. I'll go tell
my friend help is on its way. We're back over here." He pointed, and the
younger man indicated his understanding.
Lying immobile on its side, the Amplitur
didn't look very frightening, the trooper reflected as he studied his prisoner. Soft and slow. One bulging, golden eye
gazed vacantly in his direction. It was about the ugliest thing he'd ever seen, and since he'd joined up with the
Human battleforce that was aiding
the Weave he'd encountered some
remarkably ugly things. Ashregan, Crigolit, Molitar, Acuria, Massood and Hivistahm, Wais and Lepar.
Ally or enemy, it didn't much matter.
Each was a greater paragon of ugliness than the next, and he wasn't especially
enamored of the facial features of
some of his drinking buddies, either.
He shifted his rifle to a more
comfortable position, pleased that like the rest of his friends back home he'd chosen to take part in the great conflict. What
more could a man want out of life
than the opportunity to eliminate some
of the ugliness from the universe?
The Amplitur
sensed that its paralysis would fade, but until then it would have to suffer the feral
attention of the biped as well as a certain amount of physical discomfort. Unable to move more
than a few extremities, Sigh-moving-Fast shifted one eye to track the departure
of the Human Restoree. There was no help to be had, no other brethren within range. It had
taken but a moment for its personal status to change from that of captor to
captive.
Tricked, and cleverly so. The Restoree had
seen and seized
a chance to make use of Sigh-moving-Fast's unfamiliarity with combat conditions. But
in his haste to aid and comfort an injured companion the Human had forgotten one thing.
Secrets could still be divulged, confusion spread, discord sowed.
"Listen to me." The translator croaked enticingly.
"That man is no longer wholly Human. He has been changed. He is now more like me than you."
"Yeah, right." The soldier's
expression was pensive.
"This is true! He has been modified.
First by my kind, subsequently by something else. He can influence minds; he can push, just as
can I. He is dangerous."
"You're telling me. All of us Human
folk're dangerous, squid. As you're finding out. You know, I picked up a lot about your
species in studies, but they never told me you had a sense of humor."
"You must believe me!" The
primitive biped's indifference to logic was infuriating. "If you have studied
my kind,
then you know we are incapable of prevarication."
"Unless that's a lie, too. Our
specialists don't completely trust everything the Weave tells 'em. One thing
they're far from sure about is you. Don't know enough about you yet to be
sure of anything. So they're withholding judgment." He gestured with the tip
of the cassion rifle. "So am I. If you want to turn me against one of my own kind, you're
gonna have to dream up something a lot less silly than that."
Sigh-moving-Fast raged impotently, but try as
he might, he
was unable to give the Restorees' secret away. The Weave
strike force took the headquarters complex, capturing or
killing all but a few of its inhabitants. Human and then
Hivistahm physicians dealt efficiently with Cos-sinza's
injury. With the aid of an implanted neuromuscular stimulator, she was up and walking within a few days.
He'd always been able to talk to Saguio,
Ranji knew, but this was different. It was wonderful to finally have someone to share with, in matters of intimacy as
well as friendship. Cossinza did
more than merely listen. She understood. Heida Trondheim
had been sympathetic, but no more. What existed now between him and Cossinza
went much deeper. He felt fulfilled.
With time now to
relax a little and contemplate things besides combat,
other Restorees were also pairing off, developing liaisons,
getting to know one another. The special
characteristic they shared made it natural as well as necessary.
Their secret
remained inviolate. The one Amplitur who had learned the
truth had made a desperate break for freedom while being
escorted from the captured staging chamber to a waiting
sled, only to be shot down by impulsive Human guards before
the officer in charge could intervene. It perished ranting,
spouting mental and verbal gibberish about unsuspected
threats to the stability of civilization. The exact nature
of its dying diatribe went unreported, as no recorders happened to be operating in
the vicinity at the time.
Wherever they were
sent, the Restorees would have to stay in contact with one another, Ranji
knew. To report any changes or permutations in the Talent, as they had come to call it; to provide support and
understanding for one another; to
better assist other deceived and debased Cossuutians in regaining their
stolen birthrights, and so they could, if
and when necessary, act in concert.
It was good to be
Human and have Human friends, he knew. Assuming he
and his fellow Restorees were Human, and would not become something else.
Actual determination of that was going to take time. He was certain they had much to
learn.
For example, had the severed neural
connections between the Amplitur nexus and the rest of his brain ceased growing? That was
but one of many things that would have to be watched.
/ am mine own experiment, he thought. As such he intended to monitor its progress very carefully.
Their plan and intentions exposed, the
Amplitur abandoned the great project on Cossuut. Their modified fighters could no longer
be trusted in battle, not when every opponent knew and could reveal to them the
truth of their origins. Many died natural deaths on that unhappy world, until
the end believing themselves to be Ashregan. Others perished in battle.
The fortunate ones were captured.
As was only natural, following the requisite
surgery the newly Restored were assigned for repatriation to a reeducation group
composed of fellow Restorees.
After participation in many battles, Ranji
and Cossinza and those of their friends who had survived multitudinous conflict were
retired with full honors, the grateful sympathy of the Weave, and the melancholy
compassion of their kind. The name of their true devastated homeworld became yet another in
a long line of rallying cries and watchwords by which the soldiers of the
Weave fought.
In due time offspring were born to those who
had survived
the ministrations of the Amplitur. They appeared in every way to be normal,
healthy children.
Their parents monitored their maturation
with the utmost care.
*******************************************************
Born in New York City in
1946, Alan Dean Foster was raised in Los Angeles, California. After receiving a
bachelor's degree in political science and a Master of Fine Arts in motion
pictures from UCLA in 1968‑69, he worked for two years as a public
relations copywriter in a small Studio City, California, firm.
His writing career began in
1968 when August Derleth bought a long letter of Foster's and published it as a
short story in his biannual Arkham
Collector Magazine. Sales of short fiction to other magazines followed. His
first try at a novel, The Tar‑Aiym
Krang, was published by Ballantine Books in 1972.
Foster has toured extensively through Asia and the isles of the Pacific. Besides traveling, he enjoys classical and rock music, old films, basketball, body surfing, and karate. He has taught screenwriting, literature, and film history at UCLA and Los Angeles City College.
Currently, he resides in
Arizona with his wife, JoAnn (who is reputed to have the only extant recipe for
Barbarian Cream Pie).